Articles by alphabetic order
A B C D E F G H I J K L M N O P Q R S T U V W X Y Z
 Ā Ī Ñ Ś Ū Ö Ō
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 0


Difference between revisions of "Aaa"

From Tibetan Buddhist Encyclopedia
Jump to navigation Jump to search
Line 1: Line 1:
short then just the one time making this [[offering]] and in one time they are gone in.
+
before, with three faces and six arms. So the description of the details we have had already before, so we [[visualize]] that. Now from there, from the {{Wiki|forehead}} and neck, that is the location of the [[feeling aggregate]] [[transforming]] into a [[red]] [[AH]], not [[feeling aggregate]], it's a [[perception]] [[aggregate]] [[transforming]] into a [[red]] [[AH]], changes into [[Amitaba]] [[red]], with three faces and six arms. From the neck to the [[heart center]] then the [[consciousness]] [[skanda]] or [[consciousness aggregate]] takes the [[form]] of a [[HUM]] blue. So this [[HUM]] changes into [[Akshobya]] with blue {{Wiki|color}}, three faces and six arms. Now from there, from the [[heart center]] level, that is right across the nipples, just from there to the level of the {{Wiki|navel}}. The [[feeling]] [[skanda]] transforms into [[letter]] SO, [[yellow]] [[letter]] SO. So it changes into [[Ratnasambhava]]. Now from there...[...]...of [[Sanskara]] [[Skanda]], [[volitional]] [[skanda]] [[aggregate]], half in [[green]] {{Wiki|color}} which changes
  
[...]  
+
into Ammogasiddhi [[green]]. So that is starting from the {{Wiki|navel}} up to the [[root]] of the thigh or end just where the thigh begins and up to the end of the hip. So those are the [[five Buddhas]], Tatagathas. Then the [[four elements]]. Now in the {{Wiki|navel}} there is Chirma, white [[body]]. If one [[visualizes]] just a [[deity]] in some parts of the [[body]], that's not called [[body mandala]]. The meaning of the [[body mandala]] is for example when we [[visualize]] Chirma in the {{Wiki|navel}}, then we should think that this Chirma is in fact it is the [[nature]] of the [[earth element]], {{Wiki|solidity}} [[element]] of our [[body]] and we should see it as one. It is just a [[form]] of our [[earth element]]. If we integrate the [[deity]] with our [[element]], then it is called [[body mandala]], not just simply [[visualizing]] a [[deity]] in some parts of the [[body]]. Then in the [[heart center]], all the [[water element]] of our [[body]] takes the [[form]] of [[letter]] MUM, which changes into Mamake. Then in the next center of the heat [[element]] or
...that is [[symbolic]] of when one attains the [[enlightenment]] and one of the [[auspicious signs]] of [[Buddha's body]] is there is this {{Wiki|light}} [[connection]] between the fingers. There is the web, webs also are quite high and connected with {{Wiki|light}}. So that [[symbolizes]] that these fingers are more close to another. The [[Buddha's]]  
 
  
[[auspicious]] sign of the hand is the web is rather high, but then it is not like a duck, you know with ornaments he wears, for example like a ring, then again it is quite deep. The [[offering]] [[deities]] they are in different colors, although the details are too difficult to [[visualize]] one should take these first two groups, the two types of [[water]]. The [[offering]] [[deities]] are [[white color]] and very beautiful, transcending completely the [[beauty]] of the [[human world]], all in [[celestial]] [[form]] with extreme agreeable [[form]]. So these [[offering goddesses]] endow the [[beauty]] transcending the [[human]] [[beauty]] and they are very beautiful [[form]] and not too heavy not to skinny, sort of slim with a slim waist and with the breasts all full, not sort of fluffy hanging down, but they are raised and full
+
[[fire element]] of our [[body]] takes the [[form]] of Kirkarma, [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. Then on the [[crown of the head]] ones [[air element]] taking the [[form]] of [[letter]] THAM, [[green]] which changes into [[Tara]], [[Green Tara]]. Now in our [[eyes]], the [[eyes]] themselves take the [[form]] of [[letter]] KLIM which changes into [[Bodhisattva]] Chittagharba in our [[eyes]], which are our [[eyes]]. Also in the [[eyes]] ones, the [[form]] that is [[sense object]], [[visual object]] [[form]] aspect, the [[appearance]] aspect, takes the [[form]] of [[letter]] ZA and changes into Vajraform [[goddess]]. So two Chittagharbas and two Vajraform [[goddesses]]. So those two the {{Wiki|male}} and [[female deities]] in there, the [[Bodhisattva]] and the [[goddess of form]], sit together embracing each other. Then in the {{Wiki|ear}} {{Wiki|organs}} inside transforms into [[OM]] and they change into [[Vajrapani]], two [[Vajrapanis]], [[yellow]] {{Wiki|color}}. Also the [[sound]] aspect of our [[body]] takes the [[form]] of [[letter]] [[HUM]] which changes into the Vajrasound [[goddess]] as the [[consort]] of the [[Vajrapani]].
  
and also straight and broad shoulder and also very beautiful hips and then the beautiful face and all these qualities, youthful, not old [[form]], but youthful [[form]] about 16 years. Half of their [[hair]] is made into a very beautiful [[knot]] on their head and the other half falling down gracefully falling down on the back loose. All crowned with [[precious]] full {{Wiki|crown}}, as well as they are adorned with various other [[precious]] ornaments, the earrings, necklace, and so on, clad in very beautifully fine silken garments, upper and lower garments. The {{Wiki|nose}} is not crooked or too big or too small, but it is right size and very fine and the lips are also very fresh and [[red]] like the cherry. The [[eyes]] are like the petal of the Upala [[flower]], with that sort of shape and all the white
+
They are embracing. Inside the {{Wiki|nose}}, the [[smelling]] {{Wiki|organ}}, changes into a [[letter]] [[OM]] which transforms into the Akashagarva, blue in {{Wiki|color}}. Then the {{Wiki|smell}} aspect of our [[body]] changes into the Vajrasmell [[goddess]], [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. Akashagarva is not blue, it is [[yellow]], and the [[consort]] is [[red]]. They are embracing. At the [[root]] of our {{Wiki|tongue}}, the {{Wiki|tongue}} or the gastritory {{Wiki|organ}} itself changing into [[OM]], [[letter]] [[OM]], which changes into Avalokitshvara in [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. Then at the same place, the {{Wiki|taste}} aspect of our [[body]] takes the [[form]] of a hull (?) [[green]], which changes into Vajrataste [[goddess]], [[green]] [[body]]. We should [[visualize]] these [[deities]] very small ant like {{Wiki|reflection}}, not something which is very concrete, giving discomfort in the [[body]], but something like a {{Wiki|reflection}}, very fine and [[subtle body]]. Now in the [[heart center]] the [[mental]] {{Wiki|organ}} taking, [[transforming]] into [[HUM]] which changes into [[Manjushri]] [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. He is alone there. At the end of the secret {{Wiki|organ}}, {{Wiki|sexual}} {{Wiki|organ}}, right at the end, then in the {{Wiki|tactile}} [[sensation]] or the {{Wiki|tactile}} then the [[body]] {{Wiki|organ}} the [[physical]] {{Wiki|organ}} then [[transforming]] into the [[letter]] HA which changes into Sarwanewana, not HA but [[OM]] 42
 +
 +
changes into Sarwanewana becomes being the [[Bodhisattva]] like that at the end of the {{Wiki|organ}}. And at the same place the {{Wiki|tactile}} aspect of our [[body]] takes the [[form]] of Vajratouch [[goddess]] at the same place down there. So this Sarwanewana becomes being is [[green]] and Vajratouch [[goddess]] is blue, they are in union. Now
  
and dark parts are all very {{Wiki|distinct}} and very clear. So one should try, in short one should [[visualize]] as beautiful as one can and the details would be too much to explain, altogether there are 64 beautiful qualities on their [[body]]. One can offer these different [[objects]] separate individually first sending the group for the [[water]] [[OM]] SARVAGATA DATA ARGHAM then (this was too fast for me to understand) then they come back and then the next like that, individually all, one can send all of them together, so when we recite the [[mantra]] together [[OM]] SARVAGATA DATA then ARGHAM, PADYUM, PUSHPE, DHUPE, ALOKE, GANDHE, NAIVIDYA, SHABDA then all these [[offering goddesses]] go out together and make all the [[offerings]] and at the end they come back together. This {{Wiki|rule}} of process
+
in all the joints, the joints themselves [[transform]] into {{Wiki|sun}}, the {{Wiki|color}} of the {{Wiki|sun}} is [[green]] and they [[transform]] into [[Samantabadra]] [[green]] [[body]] in all the joints. So there are 360 Samantabadras in us. Then on the [[crown of the head]], the {{Wiki|nerves}} of the veins taking the [[form]] of changing into [[letter]] MAE which transforms into Matraya, white Maitraya on the [[crown of the head]]. So all the [[peaceful deities]] are already complete. Now there are still the croadas. So we have [[visualized]] the Yamandati in our right hand before, but that time only just [[visualizing]] the [[deity]] just there, inside there; but now we should think
  
is to be applied each time whenever these [[offerings]] come. So through setting the material [[offerings]] as best as one can, as clean as one can, through this we [[accumulate]] [[merit]]. Then at the same time we create more [[offerings]] from one’s [[mind]] and offer them. From that also we [[accumulate]] very much [[merit]]. Then doing the beautiful gesture or the [[mudra]] of the hands, that is also another type of [[offering]] and also helps us to [[accumulate]] [[merit]]. We apply our [[understanding]], our [[realization]] of the [[shunyata]] on all the [[objects]] in this [[offering]] process, as [[Rinpoche]] explained this morning, then that is also called 11 [[offering]] of the practice 11 that also is very beneficial. Whenever we offer something our [[mind]] should be free from [[avarice]], sort of [[miserliness]], [[attached]]  
+
that the right hand itself is [[transforming]] into a [[HUM]] which changes into the Yamandati. In the left a [[letter]] [[HUM]] which is of the very [[nature]] of our left hand, then [[transforming]] into Rajanadati. Then the {{Wiki|mouth}}, the [[HUM]] which is the [[nature]] of our {{Wiki|mouth}}, transforms into Hyergliva or Phenmandati at the [[root]] of our {{Wiki|tongue}}, [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. In the secret {{Wiki|organ}}, the secret {{Wiki|organ}} itself changing into a [[HUM]] which is the [[nature]] of the secret {{Wiki|organ}} itself, then [[transforming]] into Benadati or [[Amritakundalini]]. So in the [[secret vajra]] or in the secret {{Wiki|organ}} that [[three deities]]. Although they are [[three deities]], three different in [[appearance]] there are [[three deities]], but in [[nature]], in [[essence]], they are three different aspects of ourself.  
to these [[offerings]], that is one [[obstacle]]. Secondly we should not have any {{Wiki|hope}} for reward. May I offer these then I wish something for return. That must be, those two are [[obstacles]] of [[offering]]. Also when you offer material [[offerings]] we should do it with a [[mind]] free of [[avarice]] and free of [[doubt]]. One should not {{Wiki|hope}} for any ordinary fruit from such an [[offering]], like to get a better [[rebirth]] in the [[samsara]] and to become rich or to become wealthy in the {{Wiki|future}} and so on. 21
 
 
   
 
   
These are all [[obstacles]]. So if our [[mind]] is free from all these kind of [[hindrances]] and if we make the [[offering]] in the proper way, then the [[offering]] is a
+
First there is the Asavveranabecombeni which is one of the [[Bodhisattvas]] which is the [[physical]] {{Wiki|organ}} of ourself, who is embracing with the [[goddess]] who is called Vajratouch. So this is the [[touching]] aspect, the {{Wiki|tactile}} aspect of our [[body]]. Then there is now this croada, [[Amritakundalini]], or the Benadati which is of the [[nature]] of the {{Wiki|organ}} itself. So there are [[three deities]], three different [[appearances]] with the three different [[essences]]. Now the right shoulder, the
  
very great way to [[accumulate]] a great amount of [[merit]]. So the [[mudra]] for [[argham]] is like this, that means you are presenting this [[water]], bringing that [[water]] and for padyam then you on this hand then you open the right hand. That means you are pouring the [[water]] over the feet of the [[deity]], with the [[flower]]. Then for the [[flower]], gesture for the [[flower]] is [[pushpe]] like this, that means you are throwing [[flower]]. Then comes dupe. Dupe is {{Wiki|fragrance}} [[incense]]. Actually the {{Wiki|smell}} is [[offered]] two times here as a [[perfume]] and the difference is the first {{Wiki|smell}} comes from burning and the second is just to put on the [[body]], so it must be [[offered]] separately. So dupe is kind of {{Wiki|smell}} which comes through burning. So the gesture of dupe is like this. That means that you are throwing the
+
[[letter]] [[HUM]] which is the [[nature]] of the right shoulder, changing into Achela, blue. On the left shoulder the [[HUM]] which is of the [[nature]] of the shoulder itself [[transforming]] into Taglandsa, blue. In the right knee the [[HUM]] which is of the [[nature]] of the knee itself transforms into Aneladanda, also blue. In the left knee a [[HUM]] which is of the [[nature]] of the knee itself [[transforming]] into [[Mahabala]], [[dark blue]] {{Wiki|color}}. The [[crown of the head]] a [[HUM]] which is the [[nature]] of that part of the [[body]] itself, transforms into Ushnishachakravati. The two HUMs in our two heels which is the [[nature]] of the heels themselves transforms into two Sambaranzas. Those [[deities]] remain in these different locations in our [[body]] and we should think that they are in [[appearance]] of the [[deity]], but in fact they are the parts of our [[body]]. So that is the [[body mandala]]. After that comes the [[blessing]] of the [[body, speech and mind]]. So further we should [[visualize]] on
  
powder, the [[incense]] powder into the [[incense]] pot which is made from very beautiful [[jewels]] and so on, where there is a [[fire]]. In that you are pouring so the gesture is like this. These [[offering goddesses]] here, they all have four arms. The two hands are holding the pot where they must burn it and the two other hands are putting the [[incense]] in it. The gesture for the [[lamp]] or the {{Wiki|light}} is like this. So these two thumbs [[symbolize]] {{Wiki|sun}} and [[moon]] [[symbolize]] [[precious]] [[jewels]], radiant [[jewels]] and {{Wiki|light}} flames and so on. So gesture is made like this. Again that is to for [[perfume]], that is to rub the [[perfume]] on the {{Wiki|chest}} of the [[deity]]. In the two lower hands are holding the actual container and the two upper hands take [[perfume]] from there and then rubbing it, that is why the
+
the [[crown of the head]] under the {{Wiki|skin}} in between the {{Wiki|skin}} and the [[skull]] a little [[moon disc]], with [[OM]] in the center, white [[OM]] in the center. This [[OM]] is radiating out five colored rays. These [[rays of light]] coming from that [[OM]] send a lot of countless Chenma, one of the first of the four [[goddesses]], the four [[consorts]] of the [[Buddha]], the Chenma, countless [[forms]] of Chenma [[emanating]] from these [[rays of light]], and they go out in every [[direction]]. They invite all the [[Buddhas]] n the [[form]] of [[Vairocana]]. So we should [[visualize]] this [[Vairocana]] as coming in a big assembly with one central figure with a [[consort]], embracing with a [[consort]], and the rest of the [[Vairocanas]] around this central figure without [[consorts]]. So now we are sort of in front of that [[Vairocana]]. Now so [[Vairocana]] is in front of us so we make a request to [[Vairocana]] with the following verse, asking the [[Vairocana]] to bless our [[body]] and to turn our [[body]] into the [[vajra body]]  
  
gesture is like this. For [[food]], nividae, the gesture is like this. Like for example if somebody gives something and we take it like this, but the two index fingers are slightly bent, so it is like this. So that is [[offering]] various {{Wiki|tastes}} from the [[skull]], from upholding in the [[skull]] this amritas and giving it to the [[deity]]. [[Shapta]] gesture is like this. Actually [[shapta]] consists of various musical instruments that string instruments and also [[drums]] and also the trumpets and flutes and so on, now all different kinds of instruments. So to as a sign a [[symbol]] was like playing, beating the [[drums]] or playing the [[cymbals]] or like that, gesture is made in this way. After these [[eight offerings]] then follows the [[offering]] of the [[five sense objects]]. So the first for [[form]] and a
+
of the [[Buddha]]. So the [[Vairocana]] is the [[form]] of the [[body aspect]] of all the [[Buddhas]]. [[Amita]] of the {{Wiki|speech}} and [[Akshobya]] of the [[mind]]. So here we are making a request to the [[Vairocana]] saying "Oh glorious [[Vairocana]] you are the [[holder of the vajra]] [[body]] of the [[Buddha]] and I am a [[practitioner]] or the developer of the [[non-duality]] of the [[body, speech and mind]] of the [[Buddha]], so therefore bestow upon me the [[blessings]] of the [[body of Buddha]]. Then there is the next verse which says "All the glorious [[Buddhas of the ten directions]], again bless me with the same" the rest of the lines are the same "bless me with the [[vajra body]], turn my [[body]] into [[vajra body]], I am the developer or [[practitioner]] of the [[non-duality]] of the three aspects of the [[Buddha]]". The first request is made to the central figure [[Vairocana]]. The second request is made to all the other [[emanations]] of the [[Buddha]]. So we make the request to all of them together. So now as
  
very beautiful [[mirror]] is [[offered]], a [[mirror]] which is double sided and in that [[mirror]] appears the whole [[universe]], the whole [[world]] appearing in that [[mirror]] and such [[mirror]] is shown to the [[deity]] which is framed in a very beautiful [[precious]] golden and jeweled decorations with a handle. So that is [[offered]]. So the gesture is like this. So that is the [[mirror]] and that is holding from the handles. That is [[form]]. Sort of RUPA. The [[mantra]] is RUPA. After that, once again SHAPTA like for the [[music]], the gesture is saying, the [[mantra]] is saying that is for [[sound]]. Then comes {{Wiki|smell}} and that is GANDE the same as [[perfume]], like the rubbing gesture. For {{Wiki|taste}} again the same gesture is made like the one for the [[food]], except the [[mantra]] is different. The [[mantra]] instead of NIVIDAE it is
+
we have created before a lot of Chenma, which is the [[consort]] of the [[Vairocana]], a lot of them. From the [[rays of light]] we have created a lot of them filling the [[space]]. So all the rest of the [[Vairocanas]] who are without a [[consort]] and they all embrace with the Chenma that we have created. So by this embracing and the union with these [[consorts]], then the [[Buddhas]] and their [[consorts]] they completely melt, blissfully melt in the {{Wiki|light}} and flow of [[amrita]]. Or if it is easier to [[visualize]] that they dissolve in {{Wiki|light}} and they all become {{Wiki|light}}. They all dissolve into [[white light]] and that [[white light]] absorbs through the {{Wiki|crown}} of our head. Our [[body]] is filled with this [[white light]]. Then it purifies all the [[obstacles]] and in particular all the [[physical]] [[obstacles]] and it turns our [[body]] into the [[vajra body]] of the [[Buddha]]. So with this [[mantra]] [[OM]] SAWA...is a first verse and that means that is like in a [[prayer]] [[form]] that "may my [[body]]  
  
RASSA. Then for {{Wiki|tactile}} [[sensation]] a very beautiful garment is put on the [[deity]], a shawl is put on the [[deity]] and the gesture is like this, that means you place on the [[deity]], PARSHA. Those are the [[outer offerings]] and then there is the [[inner offering]]. Inner [[offerings]] are complete in the [[offering goddesses]] themselves. For example, a [[beautiful appearance]] of the [[form]] is the [[offering]] of the [[form]]. They are singing a very melodious [[chant]], melodious singing is an [[offering]] of the [[sound]]. The natural {{Wiki|fragrance}}, the {{Wiki|smell}} coming from the [[body]] of these [[offering]] [[deities]] and from the {{Wiki|smell}}, the {{Wiki|fragrance}} of the Upala [[flower]] for example, coming from the {{Wiki|mouth}} of the [[deity]], [[offering]] [[deity]], that is the [[offering]] of the {{Wiki|smell}}, [[inner offering]] of the {{Wiki|smell}}. Also when the [[deity]]  
+
become the [[vajra body]] of the [[Buddha]] and so on". Then there is [[OM]] SAWA TATAGATHA KAYA [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA ADMAGO KAYA GO [[HUM]]. With this [[mantra]] we think "I have become the [[embodiment]] of the [[bodies]] of all the [[Buddhas]]." SARWA TATAGATHA, all the [[Buddhas]]. KAYA means [[body]]. [[VAJRA]] is [[vajra]]. SOBAWA is the [[nature]], the [[entity]]. ADMAGO [[HUM]] means I am. So ¬ I am the [[entity]] or the [[nature]] of all the [[vajra]] [[bodies]] of the Tatagathas, of all [[Buddhas]]. So we should hold this [[divine pride]] that "I have become or I endow this [[vajra body]] of all the [[Buddhas]]." Now for the {{Wiki|speech}}, then again on [[red lotus]] on our {{Wiki|tongue}} a [[red]] [[letter]] [[AH]] appears and which sends five [[rays of light]], five colored [[rays of light]]. So these [[rays of light]] send out countless [[forms]] of Klerkarmo, that is the [[consort]] of the [[Amitaba]]. A lot of them go out in all [[directions]]. So this invites all the [[Buddhas]] from every [[direction]] in the [[form]] of [[Amitaba]], [[red]] [[form]] [[Amitaba]], with one  
engages in the [[art]] of [[loving]], [[art]] of [[love]] with these [[offering]] [[deities]] and in the [[art]] of kissing and so on, then it gives the very great, very [[pleasant]] and very [[blissful]] {{Wiki|taste}}, very [[blissful]] [[sensation]] of the {{Wiki|taste}}. So that is the [[offering]] of the {{Wiki|taste}}, [[inner offering]] of the {{Wiki|taste}}. Then the {{Wiki|touch}} of their [[body]], just a {{Wiki|touch}} is already so [[blissful]] that one can attain the [[highest bliss]] even just by a {{Wiki|touch}}. So these [[offering]] [[deities]] have such qualities which is the [[inner offering]] of the {{Wiki|tactile}} [[sensation]]. So those are the [[inner offerings]] which are all complete on the [[body]] of the [[offering]] [[deities]]. When one makes these [[mudras]] ones arms should not be raised too high, too much, so one will end up doing like this. One should keep the two hands at the level of your {{Wiki|chest}}. So
 
  
this would be enough for an explanation concerning the [[offering]]. In the actual text in the [[sadhana]] there is only [[outer offerings]] mentioned, [[inner offerings]], secret [[offerings]], and other levels of [[offering]] are not mentioned there, but it is contained in there. After that comes the praise and [[prostrations]]. [[Praise]] and [[prostrations]] go together. One prostrates to these [[deities]], to the [[guru]], by praising the qualities. So they go together. So the praise is rather long in this [[sadhana]] and it would be too long to explain all the meaning. [[Je Rinpoche]] will just recite it and maybe some points he will mention.  
+
central figure which is already embracing with [[consort]] and the rest without. Here again we make request. Two verses. First verse to the central [[Amitaba]], the second to the entourage. So it says again, "Oh Glorious One, the glorious one who holds the vajraspeech of the [[Buddha]], the very [[dharma]], One who holds the [[essence]] of the [[dharma]], then again asking for the same requests." It says "I am the [[practitioner]] of the [[non-duality]] of the [[three bodies]], the three aspects of the [[Buddha]], the [[body, speech and mind]]. Therefore please bless me and turn me, turn my {{Wiki|speech}} into the very {{Wiki|speech}} of the [[Buddha]]." After that again dedicating to the entourage we sing "Oh Tatagathas of the [[ten directions]]" and we make the same request. So the [[essence]] of the request is " I am trying to develop this kind of trying to achieve these three [[attributes]] of the [[Buddha]], so therefore please bless me and [[transform]] my {{Wiki|speech}} into the  
 +
 
 +
[[Buddha's body]] and {{Wiki|speech}}. After that those Klerkarmos that we have sent out which went out from the [[letter]] [[AH]] in our {{Wiki|throat}} they enter in union with the Amitabas and with very great [[bliss]] they completely melt into the {{Wiki|light}}. So all the [[deities]] and their [[consorts]] their [[bodies]] completely melt into the [[red light]] and that [[red light]] comes down and absorbs through the {{Wiki|tongue}} in our {{Wiki|mouth}}, and it spreads all over in the [[body]] and it purifies all the {{Wiki|speech}} [[obstacles]] and [[attained]] the power of the [[Buddha's speech]]. We recite the [[mantra]] [[OM]] SOBAWA 43
 
   
 
   
PRAISE
+
TATAGATHA WOKA [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMAGO [[HUM]],
  
 +
that means "I am the [[nature]] of the [[vajra speech]] of all the [[Buddhas]]." There is a [[mantra]] and a verse which has the same meaning except this time it is all for the {{Wiki|speech}} of the [[Buddha]]. And we should hold the [[divine pride]] that one’s [[self]] is the [[embodiment]] of the {{Wiki|speech}} of all the [[Buddhas]]. Now we should [[visualize]] a [[HUM]] in our {{Wiki|chest}} which changes into a {{Wiki|sun}} disc, and another little [[HUM]] appears on top of the {{Wiki|sun}} disc which sends out again five colored [[rays of light]]. So these [[rays of light]] create a lot of Mamake or the [[consort]] of [[Akshobya]] and they go out again, like before, and they invite again a big assembly of Akshobyas in front of us. Like before the central figure is with [[consort]] and the rest is without and we are now sitting right in front of the assembly, and we are calling "Oh Glorious One who holds the vajraspeech of the [[Buddhas]], and I am the [[practitioner]] of the [[non-duality]] of the three [[attributes]] of the [[Buddha]]. So Glorious One bless me and turn my [[mind]] into the [[vajra mind]] of all the [[Buddhas]]." After that same request is make to the rest of the assembly by
  
So in the [[prostration]] and the praise then one is praising all the qualities, secret qualities of the [[guru]] which means all the [[aggregates]] and the [[sense organs]] and so on. All the parts of the [[gurus]] are of the [[Dhyana]] [[Buddhas]] and their [[consorts]] and their guardians and so on, 32 [[deities]] of the [[Guhyasamaja]]. After this follows the {{Wiki|confession}}. So we confess, very deeply and sincerely, as like if we have taken, as {{Wiki|sincere}} as if we have taken some {{Wiki|poisonous}} [[food]], like that with great [[regret]] and repentance to confess all the [[unwholesome actions]] we have [[accumulated]] in our [[bodies]], {{Wiki|speech}} and [[mind]], in front of the [[guru]].  
+
calling them "The Tatagathas of the [[Ten Directions]]". So altogether we are asking their help, their [[blessing]] to {{Wiki|purify}} the [[obstacles]] of our [[mind]] and to turn our [[mind]] into the [[omniscient]] fully [[enlightened mind of the Buddha]]. After that, all the Mamakes that we have created and the invited Akshobyas, they enter in union, and they [[experience]] [[immeasurable]] [[state]] of great [[bliss]]. So by this extreme, [[experience]] of this extreme [[joy]] and [[bliss]] [[physical]] and [[mental]] [[joy]] and [[bliss]], they melt into a dark {{Wiki|light}} and that {{Wiki|light}} finally absorbs into the center of our {{Wiki|chest}}. So this dark {{Wiki|light}} which enters through our {{Wiki|chest}},
  
This line begins with the Kunshe, the One, so this refers to one’s [[self]]. Kunshe torme, torme means "[[beginningless]]" so that shows the time of [[accumulation]] of this [[karma]], one hasn't started committing these just yesterday or day before, but we have been doing those nonsense a very long time' from [[beginningless]] time. Then simensual and so on, so that shows the place of the [[samsara]]. Since [[beginningless]] time we have [[accumulated]] all this [[karma]] where? In this place, the place of the [[samsara]], in going through the [[six realms]] of the [[samsara]]. So why we have [[accumulated]] or for what [[reason]] we have [[accumulated]]. As it says CHOU DUN KU DU that means out of distorted conceptions such as [[ignorance]], [[attachment]] and the [[hatred]], etc. all the various types of [[mental]] [[distortions]]. Out
+
completely spreads through all parts of our [[body]] and it completely purifies all the [[obstacles]], in particular that of the [[mind]] and we also [[experience]] very great [[bliss]]; and we should think that we have received the [[vajra mind]] of all the [[Buddhas]]. Again we make this [[prayer]] that the [[Buddha mind]] which is [[omniscient]], which is all [[wholesome]], all [[virtuous]], so "May my [[mind]] also become like that," is the [[essence]] of this little [[prayer]]. Now the [[body, speech and mind]] are all complete. So now we should think that we have become the very holder of all three aspects of the [[Buddha]]. So there is a [[mantra]] of this  
 +
 
 +
particular [[mantra]] like for the [[mind]], that is [[OM]] SAWA TATAGATHA CHETA [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMOKO [[HUM]]. So CHETA means [[mind]] and also [[heart]], so that is the [[mind of the Buddha]]. That means "I am the [[embodiment]] of the Cheta or the [[mind]] of all the [[Buddhas]]". So now we become the very [[embodiment]] of all three [[attributes]] of the [[Buddha]]. So this is not just only a few [[Buddhas]], one or two [[Buddhas]], but we have become the [[embodiment]] of all the [[Buddhas]] and received the [[blessing]] of the [[mind]] of all the [[Buddhas]].
 +
 +
Then we should recite this [[mantra]] again [[OM]] SAWA TATAGATHA...Now this time we should say all three, [[body, speech and mind]] [[OM]] SAWA TATAGATHA KAYA WOK CHETA [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMOGO [[HUM]], "I have become the [[embodiment]] of the [[body, speech and mind]] of all the [[Buddhas]]. The holder of the [[non-dual]] [[essence]], [[inseparable]]
 +
 
 +
[[essence]], [[entity]] of the [[body, speech and mind]] of the [[Buddhas]]." So we are from the generation of the [[Nirmanakaya]] or the [[Vajrasattva]] or the [[Nirmanakaya]] [[form]]. Until now we are in that same [[form]], with the [[form]] of blue [[Vajradhara]] or [[Vajrasattva]], with three faces and six arms. Now we should generate what is called the triple [[body]] of ourself. So our external [[body]] is in the same [[form]] as [[Vajradhara]], blue, and now inside the [[heart]] we should [[visualize]] in the center of the [[heart]] we should [[visualize]] a [[lotus]] with variegated petals, colored petals, with [[moon disc]] on top, and on top of the noon disc there is Jeanasattva in [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}, one face and two arms only, holding [[bell]] and [[vajra]], embracing with a [[consort]] of the same {{Wiki|color}}. That is called Jeannasattva. Our external [[body]] is [[Samayasattva]]. The external [[Vajradhara]] [[body]] is [[Samayasattva]]. So that is our external [[body]] and [[inner body]]. Now inside the {{Wiki|chest}} of the Jeannasattva there is a little [[moon disc]] with a tiny blue [[vajra]] on top, [[standing]] on the top. In its center there is again a very little blue [[HUM]]. This tiny little [[HUM]] is so
 +
 
 +
{{Wiki|distinct}}, so clear, and it is producing [[endless]] {{Wiki|stream}} of {{Wiki|light}} all the time. So usually the [[deity]] and this seat underneath, they are also, they are a union, it is a union already, a [[union of method and wisdom]]. There is always a [[union of method and wisdom]] everywhere so that is why some [[deities]] are sitting on the [[moon]], some others on the {{Wiki|sun}}. So our external [[body]], [[Samayasattva]], the blue [[Vajradhara]], is sitting on a {{Wiki|sun}} disc. So the {{Wiki|sun}} disc is the [[wisdom]] and the [[Vajradhara]] itself is the method, so here is again established that [[union of method and wisdom]]. Now inside this Jeannasattva, the [[red]] colored Jeannasattva, Jeanna means [[wisdom body]], so therefore because it is a [[wisdom body]] then it is sitting on a [[moon disc]] which is method aspect. So that again makes another [[union of method and wisdom]], [[deity]] the [[wisdom]] and [[moon disc]] the method, so [[union of method and wisdom]]. So the tiny little [[vajra]] and [[HUM]] inside the {{Wiki|chest}} in the innermost, that innermost [[body]] which is Jeannasattva. Now we should [[visualize]] the lord of the [[Family]] or the [[Guru]], the lord of the [[Family]]
 +
 
 +
on the {{Wiki|crown}} of our head. We should [[visualize]] the lord of the [[Family]] [[Vajradhara]] on the {{Wiki|crown}} of our head in white [[body]], holding [[bell]] and [[vajra]] and embracing with a [[consort]] of the same {{Wiki|color}}. So the [[consort]] is Vajradatishwari. So now the lord of the [[family]] [[Vajradhara]] and the [[consort]] Vajradatishwari enter in [[blissful]] union and then from the junction of the secret, their [[secret vajra]] and [[lotus]], from the junction of their two {{Wiki|organs}} then the [[rays of light]] and fluid of [[bliss]] run down, come down, and enter through the {{Wiki|crown}} of our head and gradually fills our whole [[body]] and makes a thorough [[purification]] throughout the [[body]] and we [[experience]] very great, our [[body]] filled with that and we [[experience]] very great [[bliss]]. So here we should make a short break.
 +
 +
So now that was the [[blessing]] for, process of [[blessing]] of one’s [[body, speech and mind]]. Next is the creation of [[deities]] in the [[mandala]]. Now we are in the [[form]] of [[Vajrasattva]] and this [[Vajrasattva]] is without [[consort]], this is without [[consort]], that we are now. Right now it is without [[consort]]. Now for the
  
of these, by the force of these [[delusions]] I have done them. KUN dorke nyopa nyopa means "contaminated", so completely contaminated by those [[distortions]], by the [[distortions]]. These [[distortions]] have distorted or disturbed completely ones [[mental state]], contaminated one’s [[mind]], and [[actions]] of [[body, speech and mind]]. Tuje [[chen]] that in front of the, under the [[attention]] of the great [[Great Compassionate One]], so referring to the [[guru]], the [[deity]]. "In front of your [[attention]], under your [[attention]] I will confess them, I [[repent]] of them." Then CHOGA SHEN DE SHABA JE that means in which way one would confess. Then CHOGA SHEN is as it is commented or as it should be done according to the {{Wiki|rules}}, according to the way. So according to the proper right or proper way means the proper way
+
creation of the [[mandala]], then the [[deity]] must have [[consort]]. Therefore, now we generate from our {{Wiki|chest}} a [[consort]], a [[female consort]], not particularly in the [[form]] of a [[deity]] yet, just a [[consort]], ordinary [[consort]] [[form]], a girl of about 16 years old like that, is produced from ones {{Wiki|chest}}, from the [[HUM]] in ones {{Wiki|chest}} and placed in front of us. So this [[consort]] then changing into [[void]], then takes the [[form]] of Vajratouch, the actual [[consort]] of the [[deity]]. So when it says "From my {{Wiki|chest}} I create a [[consort]] of my kind" so this means a [[consort]] which is [[inseparable]] from one’s [[self]]. So this [[consort]] then [[OM]] SHUNA...SOBAWA AMOGO [[HUM]] with this [[mantra]] then that [[consort]] becomes [[void]], completely [[void]] and [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]], becomes completely [[void]], not [[inherently existent]] [[consort]] but becomes completely [[void]]. So at the same [[moment]] the [[consort's]] [[body]] completely disappears. Then out of the [[voidness]] appears [[letter]] KUM, a blue KUM. That
  
of confessing or purifying the [[karma]] is by using the 4 [[antidotes]], by using the forces of [[antidotes]] and so therefore, one is saying I will confess them all through the 4 opponent forces. So these 4 opponent forces must be complete in our [[mind]] in order to {{Wiki|purify}} something. If the 4 forces are not complete, the [[karma]] cannot be [[purified]]. So first, the first opponent force is called [[Teng]] dop that means the power of the force of basis. The [[basis of purification]], on what basis is one [[purified]] the [[karma]] is on the basis of [[taking refuge]] and the generation of 22
+
blue KUM changes into blue [[vajra]] with KUM inside Then that [[vajra]] completely changes and then the complete [[form]] of the Vajratouch [[goddess]] appears, with three faces and six arms, blue {{Wiki|color}}, with [[Akshobya]] in the {{Wiki|crown}}, holding the same implements in her hand like ourself, with [[vajra]], [[wheel]] and [[lotus]] in the right hands and [[bell]], [[jewel]] and sword in the left hand, and half of the [[hair]] is made into a [[knot]] and half falling on the back, a very beautiful and very youthful and with radiance and all the beautiful complexion, and adorned in all the [[precious]] ornaments and garments and 44
 
   
 
   
[[Bodhichitta]]. So this is called the force of, sometimes the force of [[dependence]] also the force of the basis, or the force of the support. For example if we slip on the ground, if we fall on the ground, the ground is the basis and the only way to get up is again with the same support, with the same basis of the  
+
exactly like the YUB, exactly like the YUB, with all the ornaments. So now before entering in union with this [[consort]] we must place [[deities]] in the [[body]] of the [[consort]]. So although we place [[deities]] in the [[consort's]] [[body]] but it is not [[body mandala]]. So for a [[body mandala]] it needs a [[body]], a [[physical body]] as its basis, like we have to [[transform]]. Like we have [[transformed]] all our joints and {{Wiki|nerves}} and veins and limbs and so on like that, it needs a [[physical]] base.
 +
 
 +
Since this [[consort]] is created by us it is, the [[consort]] is, holds the [[essence of wisdom]], so therefore it is not a [[physical]] ordinary [[form]], so there is nothing really to {{Wiki|purify}}, to [[transform]], so the [[deities]] are simply placed in her [[body]]. So like ourself in the [[consort]] also from [[crown of the head]] to the {{Wiki|forehead}}, a [[letter]] white [[OM]] which changes into [[Vairocana]] with three faces, white [[body]], three faces and six arms, just like in our case. Forehead to the neck a [[red]] [[AH]] into [[Amitaba]]. From the neck to the [[heart]] under the {{Wiki|breast}} the [[HUM]], blue [[HUM]], changing into [[Akshobya]], so they are not like before, now like the [[aggregates]] or {{Wiki|organs}} changing into something, not like that. But simply the {{Wiki|syllables}} are [[visualized]] and they are [[transformed]] into these [[deities]] in her different parts of the [[body]]. From [[yellow]] SO, [[letter]] SO which is in between the [[heart]] and the {{Wiki|navel}}, it changes into [[Ratnasambhava]], [[yellow]] [[Ratnasambhava]]. From there up to the [[root]] of the {{Wiki|sex}} then there is the [[letter]] HA, from [[green]] HA then Ammogasiddhi in [[green]] [[body]]. Now here this is less complicated because one doesn't have to think that certain [[elements]] or certain {{Wiki|organs}} or certain parts of our [[body]] or [[body]] changing into the first [[letter]] then [[deity]], rather we
  
ground by, with the support of the ground one must get up. There is no way otherwise. So in the same way when we [[accumulate]] [[unwholesome actions]] the one type or category of [[unwholesome actions]] we have [[accumulated]] them, we have committed them on the basis or on the ground of the [[Triple Gem]], something in [[connection]] with the [[Triple Gem]], in [[connection]] with the [[guru]], the [[Buddha]], the [[Dharma]] or [[Sangha]] something like that in [[relation]] with the [[Triple Gem]] we have [[accumulated]] a lot of negative [[karmas]]. Most other [[unwholesome actions]] we have committed, they are in [[relation]] with the [[sentient beings]] the heaviest, for
+
are just placing the letters and they are changing into the [[deity]]. So [[LAM]] into Cherrna in her {{Wiki|navel}} then [[HAM]] into MAMAKE in her {{Wiki|chest}}, then PAM, [[red]] PAM changing into [[red]] Klerkarma in the neck, and [[green]] TAM changing into [[Tara]] in the [[Crown of the head]]. So in her two [[eyes]] there is the vajraform [[goddesses]] embracing with Kittagharba, [[Bodhisattva]] Kittagharba. So there is a difference in the YUB in the YUB when you [[visualize]] these [[deities]] they are the [[Bodhisattvas]], the {{Wiki|male}} figures as the [[principal]] embracing with the [[consorts]]. Now here it is the [[consorts]] which are embracing with the [[Bodhisattva]]. In the YUB there is the Kittagharba [[Bodhisattva]] in the [[eyes]] sitting facing in the same [[direction]] as the [[deity]] which is embraced with the vajraform [[goddess]]. Now here the vajraform [[goddess]] is the [[principal]] figure from the side of the [[consort]], so the vajraform [[goddess]] which is embraced with a {{Wiki|male}} [[consort]] that is Kittagharba. Now in the [[ears]], before it is [[Vajrapani]] embracing with vajrasound [[goddess]], now here is the vajrasound [[goddess]] embracing with [[Vajrapani]]. So in short, in the YUB, in the {{Wiki|male}} [[deities]] then when you place these inner [[deities]], then all the {{Wiki|male}} figures are facing like the [[principal]] [[deity]] itself, and
 +
the [[consorts]] are facing the opposite and embracing. Now in the [[consort]] in the [[goddess]], in the {{Wiki|female}} [[deity]] then it is the {{Wiki|female}} [[goddesses]] in different places which is by keeping the [[principal]] place and facing the same [[direction]] as the outer [[body]], and the {{Wiki|male}} [[deities]] are embracing facing opposite. So in the {{Wiki|nose}} then vajrasmell [[goddess]] embracing with Markashgharva. The [[root]] of the {{Wiki|tongue}} then the vajrataste [[goddess]] embracing with Lokitshvara. So in the secret [[lotus]] of the [[consort]], vajratouch [[goddess]] embracing with the [[Sarvanivarana]] become Bene [[Bodhisattva]]. So now in the limbs we have [[visualized]] before in the YUB there are the Mahakroadas. Here in the [[consort]] they are Mahakroadees that is the same thing but in {{Wiki|female}} [[form]], Mahakroadees. So in her right hand,
  
example, is like {{Wiki|killing}}. When you kill someone it is done in [[relation]] with the [[sentient being]], {{Wiki|killing}} a [[sentient being]]. And the same way with [[stealing]], it is also related directly with the [[sentient beings]]; [[stealing]] something of somebody. Also commit [[adultery]] or something, that is also done in [[relation]] with the [[sentient beings]], as an [[object]]. Also if one tells a lie, we do it either in [[connection]] with the [[Triple Gem]] or in [[connection]] with the [[sentient being]], to cheat, to try to cheat either one of them, the [[sentient beings]] or [[gurus]]. Also the gossiping or creating disharmony that also must be done between the
+
instead of Yamandati there is Vajravatali, it is a kroadee, it is one of the [[wrathful]] {{Wiki|female}} guardian, Vajravatali. In the left then Shangimetuma that is also a kroadee. In the {{Wiki|mouth}} there is Tonyacherma. Tonyacherma. In the secret [[lotus]] there is [[Ekazati]] and in the right shoulder there is the kroadee which is called "The Mother of all Tatagathas". In the left shoulder there is a kroadee Natsoenchenma, the variegated [[jewel]], this guardian. In the right knee that is Natsobema, variegated [[lotus]], that is the [[name]] of kroadee. So this Natsobema is not a [[flower]], it is the [[name]] of that guardian who, Vishuapadma. Then in the left, there is Vishukarma, so this is also a kroadee in the left knee. In the [[crown of the head]] then there is the Akashvajre, that is also a
  
[[sentient beings]]. Also it is use of [[foolish]] {{Wiki|speech}}, nonsense {{Wiki|speech}}, with which we spend very much time, which wastes one’s [[own]] time and the time of other [[beings]]. It is also done in [[relation]] with the [[sentient beings]]. Covetousness, the great [[greed]] that we have towards the possessions of others. That is also something to do with the other [[sentient beings]]. Then the [[ill will]] or the harmful [[thought]], negative [[thought]], such as to harm someone, to kill, to beat, to scold or anything like that, that is also we [[accumulate]] either in [[connection]] with the [[Triple Gem]] or in [[connection]] with the [[sentient beings]]. Then [[wrong view]], perverted view such as one completely rejecting the [[existence]] of the [[law of cause and effect]], [[existence]] of the [[Four Noble Truths]], [[existence]] of [[Liberation]], anything like this, this kind of [[wrong view]], then we can commit them in [[relation]] with the [[Triple Gem]] or [[sentient beings]]. If one rejects completely the [[Four Noble Truths]] or [[Law of Cause and Effect]], it is a direct, like a {{Wiki|disrespect}} or it is a [[wrong view]] about the [[Dharma]], so it is a {{Wiki|disrespect}}, it is an [[unwholesome]] [[action]] [[accumulated]] in [[relation]] to the [[Dharma]]. So those [[unwholesome karma]] [[accumulated]] with the [[Triple Gem]] should be
+
kroadee. Then in the two heels there are two [[forms]] of [[goddess]] of [[earth]]. So like the [[Vajradhara]] is endowed with all these [[deities]] encased in different parts of the [[body]], that [[consort]] is also endowed with the same number of [[deities]] in her. So now the two secret {{Wiki|organs}} of the YUB and [[YAM]] must be [[consecrated]]. So therefore, first the secret {{Wiki|organ}} of the YUB transforms into [[vajra]], blue [[vajra]] with five prongs and the central prong is like a passage and with a hole at the end. So outwardly it is the {{Wiki|male}} {{Wiki|organ}}. Inwardly it is like before for the {{Wiki|tongue}}. So here inwardly it is the [[vajra]] with a hole at the end. First a [[HUM]] then changes into a [[vajra]], that blue [[vajra]]. So when the [[blissful]] fluid comes down, then it reaches to the end of the [[vajra]] but does not emitted unless for
  
[[purified]] by [[taking refuge]] in the [[Triple Gem]]. Those [[accumulated]] in [[relation]] to the [[sentient beings]] can be [[purified]] by generating [[Bodhichitta]] towards the [[sentient beings]]. So this is something necessary now and any time in the [[practice of Dharma]]. So [[taking refuge]] and generating [[Bodhichitta]] is the first force, the force of the support. Then comes the next which is called the force of repentance. So that is one of the main forces in [[purification]]. One should have a very deep {{Wiki|sincere}} repentance. If one has a real {{Wiki|sincere}} and deep repentance towards what one has done in the {{Wiki|past}}, then that [[karmic imprint]] can be
+
some very particular {{Wiki|purpose}} like creation of [[mandala]] and out of drops and so on. Otherwise it is always held back at the end of it. Therefore, at the end it is closed with the [[letter]] PE, [[yellow]]. So both {{Wiki|organs}}, outwardly they remain as they are, but inside, inside the main {{Wiki|organ}} there is this [[vajra]] which has in the central prong there is a passage which is sealed with PE at the end. So now for the [[consecration]] of the {{Wiki|organ}} of the [[consort]]. The [[Bhaga]] or the {{Wiki|female}} {{Wiki|organ}} changes into, first it becomes [[void]], then it changes into [[AH]], [[red]] [[AH]] which transforms into a [[red lotus]] with 8 petals. Again, in the center of the [[lotus]] there is a passage which is the hole is again closed with the [[letter]] PE, [[yellow]] [[letter]] PE. So this is outwardly this is the normal {{Wiki|organ}} but
  
[[purified]]. If the force of the repentance is very strong, then the next force can automatically come. That is the force of [[determination]] not to indulge in the same thing again, because if someone has a very {{Wiki|sincere}} repentance, like if somebody has taken some {{Wiki|poisonous}} [[food]] and [[suffers]] very much, then he surely will have a very strong repentance for the mistake he has done. At the same time he is fully determined, has decided never to again to eat that [[food]]. So therefore, this repentance is very necessary. Then the force of [[determination]], that is not to commit again in the same mistake. Then the force of
+
inwardly there is this [[lotus]], [[red lotus]]. Both {{Wiki|organs}} are filled with the 5 colored [[rays of light]] inside completely. Now to engage in the [[sexual union]] with the [[consort]], then we should first hold, although our [[body]] remains the [[Vajradhara]] [[body]], or [[Vajrasattva]] [[body]], but we should hold first the [[pride]] of [[Ratnasambhava]], we should think that "I have become [[Ratnasambhava]]" all the [[body]] doesn't change. Then begins the actual act of the union, when one recites the [[mantra]] [[OM]] SARWA TATAGATHA ANRA [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMAGO [[HUM]]. So the [[reason]] why we must hold the [[pride]] of [[Ratnasambhava]] here is when the [[Guhyasamaja Tantra]] was [[taught]] in the [[divine]] [[mandala]] of the [[Buddha]], at that time this [[OM]] SARWA TATAGATHA ANRA [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMAGO [[HUM]], this [[mantra]] has been spoken or [[taught]] by
  
application of the remedy. So that is then whatever to apply the direct antidote, the practice of {{Wiki|recitation}} and so on, in order to clean away, {{Wiki|purify}} the [[obstacle]]. So if someone has a very {{Wiki|sincere}} repentance toward the [[karma]], then any [[practice of Dharma]], if it is [[prostrating]] or [[offering]] [[mandala]] or reciting [[mantras]] or [[meditating]] on developing [[Bodhichitta]] or [[meditating]] on [[Shunyata]], whatever ones practice, everything then becomes a very effective [[cause]] of [[purification]] of the [[karma]]. So that is the meaning of "I will confess or {{Wiki|purify}} them according to the way". "To the way" means the 4 opponent forces. So in
+
[[Ratnasambhava]]. Then there is the SARWA TATAGATHA [[PUJA]] [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMAGO [[HUM]], there is a second [[mantra]]. This has been [[taught]] by Ammogasiddhi. So therefore, we must hold here first for the [[pride]] of [[Ratnasambhava]] while we recite this first [[mantra]]. So as one begins the union, at that time we should recite [[OM]] SARWA TATAGATHA...while holding the [[pride]] of the [[Ratnasambhava]]. So this [[OM]] SARWA TATAGATHA means "all the [[Buddhas]]" ANRAG means the "[[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[attachment]]", ANRAGNA or [[desire]], [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMAGO [[HUM]] "I am the [[embodiment]] of the [[vajra]], the [[attachment]] or the [[vajra]] [[passion]] of all the [[Buddhas]]". So with this one begins the act and when, by beginning the act then one starts to [[experience]] [[bliss]], the great [[bliss]], then we must again change back not changing [[form]] but
  
the next verse we are generating a very {{Wiki|sincere}} rejoice towards all the [[virtuous]] qualities of the Fully [[Enlightened Ones]] of the [[Bodhisattvas]] and other [[Aryas]]. "Other [[Aryas]]" means [[arhats]], sharvakayas, and prateyakas as well as even ordinary [[sentient beings]], all the [[virtuous]] qualities of all [[beings]], sincerely rejoiced without [[jealousy]].
+
changing the [[pride]] back into [[Akshobya]]. So with holding the [[pride]] of [[Akshobya]] we must recite the [[mantra]] [[HUM]]. So the [[HUM]] is like singing, like the [[sound]] of singing, a natural [[sound]] coming by the [[experience]] of the [[bliss]]. So by continuation of the act of [[love]], then the [[experience]] of the [[bliss]] increases. After that with holding the [[pride]] of the Ammogasiddhi, then we must recite the [[mantra]] PE SARWA TATAGATHA [[PUJA]] [[VAJRA]] SOBAWA AMAGO [[HUM]]. So by the act of the union, then one [[experiences]] a very great [[bliss]] and by the heat of the great [[bliss]] spreading throughout the [[body]] then all those [[deities]] of the [[body mandala]], inside our [[bodies]], they all melt into the fluid of the [[bliss]], and they all melt and fall down. So they all melt in the [[blissful]] fluid, the fluid 45
 
   
 
   
At the end CHENZU ZHINGZEN WA, that means "I will dedicate them all for the [[attainment]] of [[enlightenment]]". That means that we dedicate all the [[merit]] that we [[accumulate]] through other practice, all for the one goal, that is to [[attain enlightenment]] for the [[benefit]] of [[sentient beings]]. That is the [[dedication]]. So that completes the 7 limb [[puja]]. So then follows EGALA TAMI LATA... (I couldn't make out the rest of this-too fast)
+
of [[bliss]], and run down. Then through the [[vajra]] of ourself then they all go into the [[lotus]] of the, secret [[lotus]] of the [[consort]]. So the drop which falls into the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]] divides first as one drop then that divided into two. One part of the drop [[forms]] the [[mandala]], the external [[mandala]], the mansion.
 +
 
 +
First it becomes a DRUM, [[letter]] DRUM, then changing into [[divine]] mansion inside the [[lotus]]. Except for the side, it is just like the [[mandala]] in which we are living, square with [[three doors]] and everything, with all its [[deities]], with seats of the [[deities]] and everything. So the [[mandala]] is in the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]], so therefore, the [[direction]] which faces you, that side of the front of you, right in front of you, that [[direction]] is again [[East]]. Then the second, the other half of this drop then divides into 32 drops and then they settle on those seats, two on the central seat and one on each of the other seats, so 32 drops. So the position of all these drops are just the same as the position of the [[deities]] in the [[mandala]]. So the two drops right in the center, the
 +
 
 +
central seat. Then there are 8 drops around the Tatagathas and their [[consorts]]. Then again there are four drops in each corner that is for the four [[goddesses]], the [[form]], [[sound]] and so on. Then again there are 8 drops, two at each door one at each side of the door, so there are 8 drops for 8 [[Bodhisattvas]]. Then there are 4 drops into the four corridors for the kroadas and also 4 drops in each corner, for more kroadas. Then one drop up there under the {{Wiki|canopy}} for one more kroada and one under the [[deity]] for one more kroada. So altogether 32 [[deities]]. So these radiant drops which are now on the feet of the [[deity]] they first [[transform]] into 32 {{Wiki|syllables}}, then the 32 {{Wiki|syllables}} into 32 implements, then into the [[deities]]. Then after that so these drops change into the {{Wiki|syllables}} of each [[deity]], placed in between [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]]. So [[OM]] [[OM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[AH]] HUM...like that for each [[deity]] there is one {{Wiki|syllable}} placed in between [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]].
 
   
 
   
So then this next verse in the four lines contains the actual [[refuge]], [[refuge]] to the [[Buddha]]. So during the {{Wiki|recitation}} of those three verses, then one is [[taking refuge]] in the [[Buddha]], the [[Dharma]] and [[Sangha]], it is the same by praising the qualities of those [[Triple Gem]]. In [[the fourth]] line, one generates the [[Bodhichitta]] and in each line it explains the qualities of [[Bodhichitta]], how [[Bodhichitta]] is developed through the [[great compassion]] and [[love]] and taking the  
+
On the central seat there is [[OM]] [[AH]] that is the [[mantra]], [[OM]] [[AH]], then [[HUM]] [[HUM]]. [[HUM]] is the {{Wiki|syllable}} for [[Akshobya]]. Right in front of it for the [[consort]] [[OM]] [[AH]], CUM H1IM, the CUM is for the Vajratouch. So that is not very difficult to [[visualize]]. As one recites these [[mantras]], then one [[thinks]] that these [[mantras]] or {{Wiki|syllables}} are there on the different seats. Then for the Tatagathas [[OM]] [[AH]] [[OM]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] SO [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[AH]] [[HUM]], and [[OM]] [[AH]] HA [[HUM]]. Now for the [[goddesses]] [[OM]] [[AH]]
  
{{Wiki|responsibility}} of the {{Wiki|welfare}} of [[sentient beings]] upon one’s [[self]] and so on. Such a [[Bodhichitta]] which is complete, which is fully developed and we are generating that for the [[enlightenment]]. So in the next verse, then we are taking a [[vow]] to sincerely engage in the practice of the [[Dharma]] to fulfill the goal. So as it says the giving, etc. and also the ten white [[virtues]] and so on. So that means giving etc. means all the [[paramitas]] as well as the full collection and the [[ten virtues]] and so on, all these conducts of the [[Bodhisattva]] in order to fulfill the goal for all [[sentient beings]] I will accomplish
+
[[LAM]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] MAM [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] BAM [[HUM]], Otl [[AH]] TAM [[HUM]] in the same [[direction]]. That is the inner circle. Now for more [[goddesses]]. Now the {{Wiki|syllables}} for those four [[goddesses]]; are ZA [[HUM]] BAM HO, therefore [[OM]] [[AH]] ZA [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] BAM [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] HO [[HUM]]. Then starts the [[Bodhisattva]] starting from Matriya [[OM]] [[AH]] MA [[HUM]], then [[OM]] [[AH]] TELE [[HUM]] for Chittagharva, Now for [[South]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[OM]] [[HUM]]; [[OM]] [[AH]] [[OM]] [[HUM]]. Now the [[West]] door there are [[Manjushri]] and Avelokitishvara, [[Manjushri]] is with [[HUM]], and Avelokitishvara is [[OM]], so [[OM]] [[AH]] HUtl [[HUM]], and CM [[AH]] [[OM]] IIUM. Avelokitishvara is first, Otl [[AH]] [[OM]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]]. Now at the [[Northern]] gate there are two [[Bodhisattvas]], that is Sarvanievarana becomebeni and [[Samantabhadra]]. Nievarana becomebeni is [[HUM]] [[HUM]] and for [[Samantabhadra]] is SOM
  
them. I will accomplish all these practices, all these conducts of the [[Bodhisattva]]. So this is like taking [[vow]]. After that was SANGI CHANGACHUNBAK CHUN from there, begins the taking the [[tantric]] [[vow]]. So here one is not taking a new [[tantric]] [[vow]], but we are generating this, we are remembering these [[vows]] once again here. This is also a kind of [[offering]]. It's considered as [[offering]], the [[offering]] of the practice. We are making the [[offering]] of the practice to the [[guru]]. This taking [[vow]] and taking all these [[samayas]], then this is a way to please the [[guru]]. It is a proper [[attitude]] to please the [[guru]], so therefore, this
+
liUM All the Mahakrodhas they all have the same {{Wiki|syllable}} that is [[HUM]], so it says in the text then then HUMs with [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]]. So that is [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] IIUM [[HUM]], Ot '1 [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]] like this each place for the krodhas. So in the text instead of repeating ten times, it says ten HUMs. So now the {{Wiki|syllables}} must be changes into the [[symbols]] or the implements, then back into the [[deity]]. Then we are almost complete constructing the construction, then it won't be very difficult. So here we will stop for tonight.
 +
 +
So [[Je Rinpoche]] first gave a brief review of yesterday's [[teaching]]. Now we have reached the what is called the "Right of the [[Mandala]]", the [[khyil]] 'khor rgyal mchog, that is the [[Rite]] of the [[Mandala]] [[King]], [[Mandala]] [[King]]. Then after that comes the Right of the [[Karma]] [[King]], or [[action]], will follow after. Now the Right of the [[Mandala]] [[King]] or Lord of the [[Mandala]], or [[King]] of the [[mandala]], stage now. We have entered in union with the [[consort]] and then all the [[deities]] in our different parts of the [[body]] melt into [[blissful]] fluid and they reach the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]] and the one drop which divides into two, one becomes the
  
is also included in the [[offering]], the [[offering]] of the practice. After this [[tantric]] [[vow]], then we say SO CHEN AVENUS CHEBARU, that means "the field of the [[merit]] departed to their natural abode". So this completes the [[guru yoga]]. So the invited guests or the [[guru]] [[mandala]] is departed to the natural abode. There are [[three ways]] of departure of the [[field of merit]]. One way is the [[field of merit]] absorbing into one’s [[self]]. Another way is leaving it just the way it was and later when we make the whole {{Wiki|environment}} [[empty]], just before creating the [[mandala]], then that [[moment]] this [[field of merit]] also becomes [[empty]]. The third
+
[[mandala]] and the other one divides into 32 drops and they settle down on the seats which are already there and first...So here the generation of the [[deity]] is called "Three stage process of generation", like before when we generate as the [[deity]], it was 5 stage process of generation; first becoming a [[moon]], then {{Wiki|sun}} and {{Wiki|syllable}}, then implements then becoming the [[deity]]. Now here these [[deities]] are generated in 3 stage process. So they first change into the {{Wiki|syllable}}, between [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]]. So first they are four {{Wiki|syllables}} for the 5 [[Dhyana]] [[Buddhas]]' that is [[OM]] [[AH]] CUM [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] HA [[HUM]], ON [[AH]] SA [[HUM]], that is for the 4 [[Dhyana]] [[Buddhas]] and then there are the [[LAM]] [[AH]] PAM TAM, again in between [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] for the [[consorts]]. Then ZA [[HUM]] BAM HO, again these 4 {{Wiki|syllables}} in between [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] for the 4 [[goddesses]].
 +
 +
Then there are the 8 [[Bodhisattvas]], MAM TALEM [[OM]] and a [[HUM]]. So there are Bodhidisattvas two at each gate there are the {{Wiki|syllables}} which [[Rinpoche]] has given yesterday. [[Bodhisattvas]], and then 10 [[HUM]] So they change into these {{Wiki|syllables}} for the Be in place of [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]], like that for the Mahakrodhas. I made a mistake; they are not out yet in the actual [[mandala]], they are still in that little [[mandala]] inside the [[womb]] of the mother. There the drops change into the {{Wiki|syllables}} and settle there on their respective seats. So this [[lotus]], the [[inner lotus]] of the secret place of the [[consort]], it [...]  
 +
 +
[...]  
 +
...is the [[womb]], actual [[womb]] of a Mother. It is just the same location where a normal [[womb]] is, so it is just below the {{Wiki|abdomen}}. So some [[people]] may think [[AH]] [[OM]]-- that is not very-- how can such a [[mandala]] with so many [[people]], so many [[deities]] and so on can fit into there, and it would be very suffocating or something. But that is only our [[own]] unnecessary {{Wiki|worry}}, with our normal usual conceptions. There is no such difficulty. Although it is in the [[womb]] of the
  
way is to let it depart with the natural abode. So the first method is generally applied to the Chakrasambharva practice and the second method is applied to the [[Yamantaka]] and the third one is applied to this practice, that is the [[field of merit]] at this 23
+
[[consort]], but it is still in that very place, the [[mandala]] and [[deities]] and everything and fits in and also without any pressure, without any pressure. So it is like if one looks through a little hole in the needle, from that little hole you can see the whole mountain and whole valley and you can see --like that, in the little place one should think that the whole [[mandala]] fits into there. So also when we offer [[mandala]], for example, the [[mandala]] base is very small, it is just something round which can be held in our two hands. However when we offer the [[mandala]] we should think that this can hold the whole [[universe]] with all the continents and [[Mt. Meru]] and everything can fit into that. This is something which must be created by your [[mind]]. If we think that we have a small [[mandala]] base in our hand and then a very large 46
 +
 +
something which is outside of that, around us or something, that is not the way to offer. One should think in such way the everything can fit into that little base of the [[mandala]]. So that is same. So starting from the front in the [[womb]] of the [[consort]], then the front side of the [[consort]] that is the Eastern [[direction]] which is facing to you; it starts from there. So the first appears [[East]] there are two [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]], for the [[central deity]] and his [[consort]] so these turn into two [[vajras]] on the central seat. Then for Varircana [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]], that changes into [[a wheel]], then in the [[South]] a [[jewel]] 7 [[precious]] [[jewel]], and in the [[West]] a [[lotus]], and in the [[North]] a sword. So a little {{Wiki|correction}} for Ammoghasiddhi not a sword, but a cross [[vajra]]. Now the [[consort]], starting from the [[Southeast]], [[Southwest]] and so on are [...]  
 
   
 
   
[[moment]] departs to the natural abode, so it goes away. So here we need to know very precisely, a precise [[knowledge]] of our [[birth]], [[death]] and [[bardo]]. It is very helpful, very important in this practice. So generally in the [[samsara]], we always go through these three {{Wiki|processes}}, these three stages. It is like the hands of the clock, it goes over the numbers, it goes around and around, there is no end. So like that we go through these stages of [[birth]], [[death]] and [[bardo]]  
+
[...]
 +
...the {{Wiki|syllables}} [[LAM]] MAM PAM TAM PETRIM [[OM]] HUMs, change into, respectively change into [[wheel]] [[vajra]] and Utala [[flower]] and again a crossvajra. Then the four [[goddesses]] of [[form]] and so on, their {{Wiki|syllables}} ZA [[HUM]] BAM HO change into [[mirror]] and a string instrument, something like [[vena]] and then a [[conch]] filled with [[perfume]] and a [[precious]] container filled with [[food]], that one can [[visualize]] like very [[celestial]] {{Wiki|fruits}} or [[nectar]] or something like that.
 +
 +
Now the 8 [[Bodhisattvas]], starting from the Eastern door, so Eastern door there is Maitraya and Chittagharba both generate from [[wheels]]. There are two [[wheels]]. There is a slight difference. The [[Maitreya]] holds in his hand [[a wheel]], but not just [[a wheel]] itself, but a nagabresha , it is a kind of, it is called the "[[naga tree]] " kind of plant, [[flower]] which supports [[a wheel]] on top. So -therefore this is, the [[Maitreya]] is generated from [[a wheel]] supported on a little
  
endlessly. So in the [[samsara]], whatever [[karma]] we create [[unwholesome]] or [[wholesome karma]], it always gives fruit within the [[samsara]], unless one has a [[pure]] [[renunciation]], one directs ones [[thoughts]] and [[actions]] toward [[liberation]]. Then all the [[samsaric]] [[actions]], [[virtues]] and [[non-virtues]], they all end of giving of fruit within the [[samsara]]. So these [[karmas]] which are the direct [[cause of rebirth]] in the [[samsara]] itself is not {{Wiki|independent}}. So there is no power; [[karma]] has [[no self]] power, not {{Wiki|independent}} power. It is naturally rises, it is created because of the [[mental]] [[distortions]], because of the [[delusions]]. Since the [[delusions]] are there, the [[karma]] has no power to not to be created. It is automatically created by the [[cause]]. So the origin of the whole process is the [[ignorance]], the inborn, this [[ignorance]] which [[grasps]] very strongly to the {{Wiki|independent}}, in the [[inherently existing]] [[self]] or [[ego]]. So that is the [[root]] of all the trouble, the
+
branch of this nagabresha, this plant. The other, the Chittagharba with simple [[wheel]]. Then the other [[Bodhisattvas]] of the [[South]], [[East]] and [[North]], they are all, on the [[South]] they are two [[jewels]], in the [[west]] two [[lotuses]], and in the [[North]] two crossvajras -not the crossvajras, but swords. So the [[reason]] the Maitraya [[Bodhisattva]] is holding this nagabresha in his hand is when Maitraya [[Bodhisattva]] will show the [[deed]] of fully [[enlightenment]] in the {{Wiki|future}}, as a coming [[Buddha]], after [[Shakyamuni]], he attains his [[enlightenment]] under the [[tree]], that particular [[tree]] of nagabresha. Like it is the Princadhata has [[attained]] the [[enlightenment]] under the {{Wiki|present}} [[Bodhi tree]] or the Ashoga [[tree]]. So in the same way the Maitraya attains his [[enlightenment]] under a nagabresha - that is why he is holding that in his hand. So it is a great wish or [[prayer]] of Maitraya [[Bodhisattva]] that when [...]  
 +
 +
[...]  
 +
...he attains, when he shows in the [[world]] the [[deed]] of [[attaining]] [[full enlightenment]] at that time he would {{Wiki|liberate}} all those [[sentient beings]] who has received a seed of [[dharma]] in the [[teaching of Buddha]] [[Shakyamuni]], whoever they are and whatever level they are, even if they are, by those who have taken various [[vows]] about [[refuge]], [[upasaka]], or shamanara or [[bhikshu]] or any other [[vows]] that one has taken. Whoever has taken those [[vows]] and practiced as received a
  
process and on the basis, when we have this [[grasping]] to the [[self]], to [[inherent]] [[existing]] [[self]], then it naturally one develops this very strong [[mental]] [[delusion]] or this [[attitude]] of cherishing the [[self]] so much or holding it something very [[precious]], defending it and helping, try to defend it and help it by all means. So this [[self-cherishing]] [[attitude]], naturally comes and when we have that, and we have it very strong, then other [[distortions]] has to come, such as [[attachment]] to one’s [[self]], [[attachment]] to one’s [[own]] side and [[hatred]], it is all based on this [[self-cherishing]] [[attitude]], to help one’s [[self]] and to defend one’s [[self]] from the harms, from the [[danger]], so we reduce the [[hatred]] against other [[sentient beings]], then other [[mental]] [[distortions]]. When such all these kind of [[distortions]] in the [[mind]] have taken place and have arisen, then [[karma]] has no power to stop, so they are naturally produced. So therefore, the [[root]] of all
+
seed of [[dharma]] in their [[mind]] in the [[teaching]] of [[Shakyamuni]], then whatever they are, even if they have fallen into unfortunate [[realms]] by doing a mistake, it is the wish or [[prayer]] of Maitraya [[Buddha]] to {{Wiki|liberate}} all those [[sentient beings]] when he appears in the [[world]], so we are [[fortunate]] enough to be at least that we have still a big {{Wiki|hope}}. So [[Je Rinpoche]] says that if one of course if one practices earnestly if one practice well and make good [[effort]], of course one doesn't have to wait that long, one can attain [[full enlightenment]] before that, or attain certain stages without waiting so long. However if one really
  
the [[samsara]] or [[rebirth]] cycle is [[ignorance]] which is the [[grasping]] for the [[self]]. So in the [[Paramitayana]], in order to completely uproot this [[ignorance]] then one puts all ones [[effort]] in the [[realization]] of the [[shunyata]], on the [[meditation]] of [[shunyata]] which holds completely the opposite view of the [[ignorance]]. [[Ignorance]], because [[ignorance]] [[grasps]] for the self-existence, for the {{Wiki|independent}} or [[inherent existence]] of our [[self]], then the [[wisdom]] which realizes [[shunyata]] tries to realize just the opposite, the [[non-existence]] of that, such as [[self]]. In the [[skillful]] [[methods]] of [[tantra]], instead of practicing something which opposes completely to the [[ignorance]] and the [[root]] of the [[suffering]], instead one practices something, one practices a process of [[meditation]] which corresponds to the process of [[rebirth]], to the process of the [[rebirth]] in the [[samsara]], the [[birth]], the [[death]] and the [[bardo]]; something which is not completely opposing but
+
couldn't make that much [[effort]] and sort of still remains wandering around in the [[samsara]], still if one has received an imprint, a good imprint of [[dharma]] in one’s [[self]], then that is still the last chance for us. So we still have something, one can still have full [[confidence]] in. The Maitraya [[Bodhisattva]] had taken many of such [[vows]] and generated many great; wishes like that for the [[benefit]] of [[sentient beings]]. For example, he also has taken the [[vow]] that even if a [[person]] who makes a statue of [[Buddha]], like [[Shakyamuni Buddha]], just about the size of ones thumb, so little one who makes such a statue in the [[teaching]] of  
  
which corresponds to it. So in the practice of [[tantra]], then in the practice of [[Annutara tantra]] then one should [[meditate]] on the process of, similar process-of [[death]], [[bardo]] and [[rebirth]], [[transforming]] them, by [[transforming]] them into the generation of [[Dharmakaya]], [[Sambogakaya]] and [[Nirmanakaya]]. They are called the "Three Transformations", [[transforming]] [[death]] into [[Dharmakaya]] [[state]], and [[bardo]] into [[Sambogakaya]], and [[rebirth]] into [[Nirmanakaya]]. So in order to [[transform]] these things, first we must know properly, [[recognize]] properly the [[death]] and [[bardo]] and so on. So now we should, [[Je Rinpoche]] will now explain this first about the [[death]], on the basis of a [[person]], a [[human being]], with the [[5 elements]]. So for a [[practitioner of tantra]] then one must have a [[body]] with what is called "the [[body]] with the [[5 elements]]". That is the [[body]] like ours, who is born from a mother and not something which has miraculously taken place or something like
+
[[Shakyamuni]], that [[person]] will be established to the [[liberation]] when I appear in the [[world]]. And so it is to make [[statues]], [[to construct]] [[forms]] of [[Buddha]] is very beneficial, but also to make wrong use of them is again a very [[unwholesome karma]] such as using for commercial {{Wiki|purpose}}. So this is just external instruction or [[teaching]] which is not to be [[visualized]] or practiced in the [[sadhana]]. So there are the 8 [[Bodhisattvas]] and from these different [[symbols]], generated from these [[symbols]], and after that Mahakrodhas from all those HUMs change into their respective implements, what they hold. The first implement
  
that, but born from a mother, which consists of [[4 elements]] plus the [[nadis]] and the contents of the [[nadis]], so there are [[5 elements]]. So when such a being, such a [[human being]], when he reached the end of his [[life]] and is going to [[die]], then first all these [[elements]] of the [[earth]], [[water]], [[fire]], [[air]] and [[wind]] and the [[consciousness]] gradually will dissolve. When like now, when the [[4 elements]] are in [[balance]] and when they are in a harmonious [[state]], then we remain healthy, we are in a healthy [[state]]. When something goes wrong in them, then when they become unbalanced and [[disharmonious]], then we [[suffer]] from [[sickness]] of different kinds. During the process of dissolution it starts from the [[earth]], [[water]], [[fire]], [[wind]] and [[consciousness]]. Also the [[five aggregates]] that [[form]] the [[feelings]], the [[Wikipedia:Volition (psychology)|volition]], [[perception]], and [[Wikipedia:Volition (psychology)|volition]] and [[consciousness]]. Actually there is a very detailed explanation about all these [[aggregates]] and also how, all the
+
in their right hand whatever they are the stick, the [[vajra]], sword, and again a [[vajra]], and again a [[vajra]], and again. For example into the four gates there is a stick, a [[vajra]], and a [[lotus]] and a crossvajea. So now from [[Southeast]] at the four corners there is a sword then a [[vajra]], then a blue stick with a [[vajra]], and a black stick with a [[vajra]]. And for USHNESCHA CHAKRAVATI on top and the SUMBARANZA below there are two [[vajras]]. So those are the [[symbols]]. First the letters then the [[symbols]] from which the [[deities]] will be generated and if one can [[visualize]] them clearly that is very good. If not, one should just think
qualities of the [[body]] how they dissolve, but that would be too much, too complicated, too much confusing. So the [[essence]] is that the first thing which disintegrates is the power of the [[earth element]]. This stage is called "The [[earth]] dissolves into the [[water]]". But actually, the [[earth]] doesn't dissolve into the [[water]], there is no such thing, but it is called that way because the [[water]] follows next and the [[earth]] is in fact losing its power, its power to support. So at that [[moment]] there is an external sign and an inner sign. The external sign can be observed from outside, so that is the dying [[person]] then has no more, cannot support his [[own]] [[body]], cannot for example stand up or sit up, has no control. He [[experiences]] as if he is sinking into something or falling into something. So usually often [[people]] ask to help to rise or to pull and that is only an inner [[experience]], [[not falling]] into anything. That is a
 
  
sign. The inner, the [[mental]] [[experience]] which occurs in the [[mind]], exclusively in the [[mind]] of the dying [[person]] at that [[moment]] is that he [[perceives]] a kind of {{Wiki|atmosphere}} filled with [[mirage]], like all just moving, like {{Wiki|light}} waves in [[mirage]]. So the [[mirage]] can be seen on the dessert when there is a very [[hot]] {{Wiki|sun}}. Some [[people]] and [[animals]] often mistake a [[mirage]] into a real [[water]] when they are really dying of [[thirst]] and [[suffer]] disappointments. The dying [[person]] at that [[moment]] doesn't {{Wiki|perceive}} this kind of [[experience]] of [[mirage]], not visually, he can't see any more visually, but inwardly in his [[mind]] is going on. Then also at the same time the [[person]] loses, his [[mind]] loses this capability. Like nowadays when we are living, one [[mind]] can remember lots of [[activities]], what one must do, lots of [[objects]]. So this kind of [[activity]] of the [[mind]] will disappear. After that then comes the [[water element]] which looses its power to support the
+
that. They are all there, although one can't see them precisely. So then these [[symbols]] then change completely into 32 [[deities]]. They become, they take the complete [[form of the deity]]. On the central seat there is [[Akshobya]], [[peaceful form]], [[dark blue]] [[body]], embracing with Vajratouch and then starting from the [[East]], [[Vairocana]], [[Ratnasambhava]], [[Amitaba]], and [[Amoghasiddhi]]. And then [[Southeast]] and so on, the four semi-directions, there is Chenma, Amamake, Kirkarrna and [[Dolma]]. So outside of this inner, circle, outside where the pillars are there is still another circle and then again there are the four [[goddesses]]; [[goddess of form]], [[sound]], {{Wiki|smell}} and {{Wiki|taste}}, they are around, [[Southeast]], [[Southwest]] and so on. On the side of the Eastern door there is a Maitraya and a Chittigarbha. On the two side of the Southern door there is a [[Vajrapani]] and Akashagaba. On the [[Western]] door Avalokitshvara and [[Manjushri]]. At the [[Northern]] gate, [[Northern]] door there are Samantrabadra and [[Sarvanivarana]] Becomdeni. Then into the four corridors there is Yamandati and then there, is Prajnadati, Hairagiva or Branjadati, and then Benidati.
 +
 +
Then in the four coroners there is [[Achala]], Turkiranza, then Nilandanda and Amabala. Then on top is Ushneshachakravati facing to the central figure, and down below there is 47
 +
 +
Sumbaranza which is facing the same way as the [[central deity]]. And we should think that these [[deities]] are not somebody else, somebody
 +
 +
One should think they are still a part of one’s [[self]], they are still one’s [[self]] in these [[forms]], because they have been created by ourselves, they are the production of the union of [[bliss]] and [[void]] and they have generated from the very fluid of [[bliss]]. So therefore one should think they are all a part of our
  
[[consciousness]] and next the heat [[element]] becomes more evident. At this [[moment]] then all the moist in the [[body]], in the [[eyes]], the {{Wiki|mouth}} and the [[body]] they start to dry up. This [[causes]] then shrinking of the face and so on. As the natural sign of the coming of the [[fire]] and at that [[moment]] the dying [[person]], in his [[mind]] he [[experiences]] an {{Wiki|atmosphere}} filled with smoke, lots of [[violent]] (violet ?) smoke coming up, moving, but {{Wiki|atmosphere}} filled with the smoke. And then in the next stage then that heat [[element]] dissolves into the [[wind]]. So at that [[moment]] then all the warmth of the [[body]] starts to fade away. Also the [[person]] cannot [[feel]] any more, heat and cold and so on, and the inner experimental [[experience]] is an {{Wiki|atmosphere}} filled with little moving [[fire]] sparks. As soon as the [[fire element]] starts to dissolve into the [[consciousness]] and the [[outer breath]], the respiration stops. At that [[moment]] then this moving [[fire]] sparks and {{Wiki|atmosphere}}
+
[[self]]. So therefore in this stage of [[mandala]] [[king]] or the lord of [[mandala]], the [[ritual]] of lord of [[mandala]], which is a practice that to help [[sentient beings]], work for the [[benefit]] of the [[sentient beings]], so therefore if we think we are external remaining quietly just sort of taking rest, and all so many external [[deities]] from outside they come and do all this work, then it is not a real practice of ourselves. So therefore, one should think all these are created from
  
stops to move and he [[experiences]] an {{Wiki|atmosphere}} with dim {{Wiki|light}}, with a very {{Wiki|stable}} dim {{Wiki|light}}. So here is actually the end of the respiration, the outwardly is like really [[dead]], but inwardly the dying [[person]] is still continues, is still some more few stages of [[experience]]. The first [[experience]] is an {{Wiki|atmosphere}} filled with very whitish {{Wiki|light}} like at dawn or something like that. So the [[consciousness]] has, at this [[moment]], has reached a very fine and {{Wiki|subtle}} level so all the gross level of [[consciousness]] has already stopped functioning, so no more this {{Wiki|concept}} of [[object]], various [[object]] ones [[family]] and all the relatives friends, everything is 24
+
ourself for the [[benefit]] of the [[sentient beings]]. So one’s [[self]] is fully engaged in the act. So in the [[sadhana]], if you read the [[sadhana]], each time is says in the central seat is one’s [[self]] in the [[form]] of that, on the [[East]] one’s [[self]] and always one’s [[self]], one’s [[self]] is always emphasized. That is to assure that one doesn't think that it is someone else. And after this then one should reflect on all [[sentient beings]], and generate a very deep [[compassion]] of all [[sentient beings]] by [[seeing]] their [[sufferings]]. We should also generate a very {{Wiki|sincere}} [[motivation]] to {{Wiki|liberate}} all these [[sentient beings]], to separate all these [[sentient beings]] from their [[sufferings]] and the [[cause of suffering]], which is the [[karma]] and [[delusions]] and imprints.
 
   
 
   
finished. The only thing what is functioning and this [[experience]] is that [[consciousness]] which [[experiences]] this kind of {{Wiki|atmosphere}}. So first, whitish {{Wiki|light}} like at dawn then that changes into slightly reddish {{Wiki|light}}, just before the sunrise, like that. That is called the reddish [[experience]]. So this whitish
+
So at this time we should, when we generate the [[compassion]], not only for generating our wish, not only just wishing or praying for it, one should in addition, to wishing and praying for that, one should take the [[vow]], like take a [[vow]] make a [[decision]] to take this {{Wiki|responsibility}} of separating, freeing the
 +
 
 +
[[sentient beings]] from their [[suffering]], upon one’s [[self]]. Then we take the central figure the [[Akshobya]], through the secret; [[lotus]] of our [[vajra]] and come up through the [[central channel]] to the [[heart level]]. Then we call him Vajradrak and that is like calling him, calling his [[attention]]. So we call and say Vajradrak there is exhortation and as soon as we say that then it goes out, multiply in countless [[forms]] and go out in all [[directions]]. So then they go out
 +
 
 +
and reach all [[sentient beings]] and {{Wiki|purify}} their [[obstacles]] in general, in particular the [[hatred]] aspect of all [[sentient beings]], and so by [[manifesting]] in various [[forms]] giving [[teaching]] of [[dharma]] and performing [[miracles]], even [[touching]], sometimes [[touching]] and [[blessing]] with their hand on, [[touching]] their [[body]] and giving teachings or showing various [[miracles]], and sending [[rays of light]] and [[amrita]] on them and so on, many many different ways they have [[purified]] the
  
[[experience]] is called the "Whitish [[Appearance]]" and the "Reddish Increase", then comes a stage where no more lights, no more any lights, just goes completely dark. This is called the "Darkish Close [[Attainment]]" stage. So first part there is sort of a darkish [[experience]] and after then [[person]] goes completely [[unconscious]], no more any [[object]], just goes completely [[unconscious]]. So then one after abiding in that [[state]] for awhile, then one will awake. The [[mind]] will awake once again. Then one [[experiences]] a very clear and [[very empty]] [[experience]], clear and [[empty]], like in the autumn when there is no clouds and no [[rain]] and so on, then early in the morning, after midnight, early in the morning if you look up in the sky there is a [[very empty]] [[feeling]], very clear, completely clear and [[empty]] [[feeling]]. So something similar to that, [[mentally]] not visually, [[mentally]], [[empty]] and [[clear appearance]]. So that clear [[experience]] is just like
+
[[sentient beings]] from their [[hatred]] [[Turning the wheel of dharma]] for the [[sentient]], in particular {{Wiki|purify}} their [[hatred]] and then all these figures they absorb into one, they become one [[Akshobya]] as they come back to the [[mandala]]. They so this [[Akshobya]] is integrated with all the Akshobyas in all the [[Buddha fields]], and also this [[Akshobya]] has another [[Akshobya]] on its head as the lord of the [[family]], and who is in union with a [[consort]]. This [[Akshobya]] received [[empowerment]] from the [[blissful]] union of its lord on the head and so a {{Wiki|stream}} of {{Wiki|light}} and [[amrita]] going into its [[body]] and receiving the [[empowerment]]. Then it comes straight through the [[mandala]] and comes in front of us. So now this one has not any separate place reserved for him because the place is where we are sitting as [[Akshobya]] and we are not, it is not going back into the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]], so it just remains there in front of us.
 +
 +
So then after it absorbs into our {{Wiki|chest}}, one’s [[self]] in in the blue [[Vajradhara]] [[form]], so this is absorbed into our {{Wiki|chest}}. By this {{Wiki|integration}} with this [[Akshobya]] coming in then our aspect changes. He are first [[Vajradhara]], although they are not one [[nature]], but we are in aspect of Vajrahara and now changing ,
  
when a [[meditator]] [[experiences]] realizes [[shunyata]] or has a similar [[experience]]. They are the same, but an [[ordinary person]] cannot [[recognize]] it. The [[experience]] comes, occurs and it just passes and comes and goes without any [[recognizing]] what is really going on. So if someone is already well trained during the [[life]] and has practiced the [[stage of generation]] in his [[life]] correctly well, that when he reaches that stage of [[emptiness]] then there is a possibility to immediately [[recognize]] this [[experience]], to apply his [[realization]] of [[shunyata]] into this [[experience]]. So this [[experience]] is something which occurs to everybody when they [[die]]. At the last stage, then this clear [[empty]] [[experience]] is apprehended. But like ourselves, in our [[lives]] in the {{Wiki|past}}, we have gone through many times through such [[experience]], so this [[experience]], [[Clear Light]], is called the "[[Mother Clear Light]]" or the "Basic [[Clear Light]]". Then a [[practitioner of tantra]] in the [[stage of generation]] [[meditating]], very intensively [[meditating]], on the stages of dissolution and although one is not dying, but is [[meditating]] of these {{Wiki|processes}} of dissolution and through [[meditation]], one goes through all these stages of dissolution similar to what occurs at the time of [[death]]. Then there is the chance again that this similar "[[Clear Light]]" [[experience]] is apprehended and that [[Clear Light]] so this kind of [[Clear Light]] [[experience]] which occurs as a result of one’s [[tantric meditation]] in the [[stage of generation]], that is called the "[[Son Clear Light]]", the Mother or Child [[Clear Light]]. Such a [[practitioner]], if he [[dies]] before accomplishing the goal, then that [[practitioner]] will definitely [[recognize]] when the [[Clear Light]] actually occurs. If that [[person]] has accomplished the [[stage of generation]] and have reached a [[state]] of completion up to a level of what is called "[[solitude]] of the [[mind]]" and then if
+
into [[Vajra]], what is called the Vajrahatred, we change into the aspect of Vajrahatred. So now the [[Akshobya]] is sitting on a [[moon-disc]] and ones -{{Wiki|correction}}-- so when we take this aspect of the Vajrahatred as we remember when before we first we are sitting on the [[moon disc]], we remember there was this [[moon]] at the beginning, on top of the {{Wiki|sun}} there was this [[moon]] and we were sitting on that as [[Vajradhara]] or [[Vajrasattva]] and now when we change into Vajrahatred this [[moon]] is absorbed into the {{Wiki|sun}} disc which is under it, so then our seat is no more [[moon]], it changes into {{Wiki|sun}} and also the [[appearance]] is slightly changed from
  
he has to [[die]], if he [[dies]], then he has a possibility to integrate the "[[Mother Clear Light]]" and the "Child [[Clear Light]]". Through this {{Wiki|integration}} of the [[Clear Light]] then that [[person]] has no more {{Wiki|future}} [[samsaric rebirth]], even there is no ordinary [[bardo state]], because he can [[transform]] the [[bardo]] into the [[Illusory Body]]. Even if one cannot accomplish the [[stage of generation]] or completion, but if one practices the [[meditation]] properly, and acquaint one’s [[mind]] with the [[practice of meditation]] and with this kind of stage of dissolution, process of dissolution, then at the time of [[death]] when these things really take place, one will be [[conscious]] of these stages and will be able to [[recognize]], "Now I am in that stage and the next stage will be this', and like that, one will be [[conscious]] of the [[experiences]]. In such a way if we can [[die]], if we [[die]] in such a way with control over these [[experiences]], then all the normal
+
[[very peaceful]] into slightly [[wrathful]], Also before we are in sort of a blue {{Wiki|color}} [[Vajradhara]], now by [[absorption]] of this [[Akshobya]] it gets darker very [[dark blue]] [[form]], and the same number of faces, 3 faces and 6 arms. The [[Vajra]] in the first hand is now changing into a [[vajra]] with 9 prongs and the rest are all the same. Sitting in a [[red]] [[Wikipedia:aura (paranormal)|aura]] of {{Wiki|light}} and this [[Wikipedia:aura (paranormal)|aura]] is slightly agitated, not completely [[calm]] this {{Wiki|light}}. So after that now again from the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]] we take in the Vajratouch, that is the [[consort]] of [[Akshobya]] which is left. Which has not gone out with the [[deity]]; it is still there. Now we take
  
confusions and {{Wiki|fears}} which arise at the [[bardo stage]] will be cleared away, then one will have the chance to choose ones {{Wiki|future}} [[rebirth]]. But for a very [[ordinary person]] who has no [[knowledge]] of this, then still these [[experiences]] occur and they just come and go. So after first the [[Clear Light]] [[state]] occurs and after some time it goes away and immediately the next [[moment]] the [[bardo body]] already came into [[existence]]. So [[Je Rinpoche]] would like to stop here for this evening. So tomorrow the [[bardo]] and [[rebirth]] will be explained.  
+
that, the Vajratouch to our [[heart]], and we say her [[name]] calling, Sparshavajra, and she goes out and fills the whole [[space]] and reaches all [[sentient beings]], then she purifies the [[obstacles]] in general and in particular the [[attachments]] to the {{Wiki|tactile}} [[sensations]] and also makes [[offerings]] of [[blissful]] {{Wiki|touch}} to all the [[Buddhas]], and it finally absorbs into one [[body]] and that is integrated with all the Vajratouch in all the [[Buddha fields]] and also it receives the [[empowerment]] from [[Akshobya]] on its head. Then she comes in the [[mandala]] and absorbs into the [[consort]] on our lap. So then after that we are taken the same way,
 +
 
 +
each of these [[deities]] one by one up first into the [[heart]] then send out and go to all [[sentient beings]] and perform, each one has a particular {{Wiki|responsibility}} putting that and integrated with the respective [[deity]] in the [[Buddha field]] and they absorb into one, they are [[empowered]] from their [[own]] respective [[lords]] of the [[family]] and then they come back and settle on their respective seats in the [[mandala]]. The [[Vairocana]] comes to the [[heart]] and we call Zinnazig, Zinnazig -- and as soon as we say Zinnazig, then it goes out, and fulfills the [[duty]] for the [[sentient beings]]. So the particular [[duty]] is to {{Wiki|purify}} the [[ignorance]] of all
 +
 
 +
[[sentient beings]] and also for doing various other things, come into one, integrated with all the [[Buddhas]], [[Vairocanas]], [[empowered]] by the lord of the [[family]]. So it settles down on the seat on the Eastern [[direction]]. So that is just in front of us. This way then all go out and do the work and settle down on their places. When all 32 [[deities]] are complete, then the [[mandala]] in the [[womb]] of the Mother is now [[empty]]. After that this [[mandala]] is also, the mansion is also taken in, up to the [[heart]], and with the [[mantra]] [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] it goes out and multiplies in countless [[forms]]. So those [[deities]] has each one fulfilled the [[duty]],
 +
 
 +
the general [[duty]] and particular [[duty]] to {{Wiki|purify}} the particular [[obstacles]] of the [[sentient beings]], that different [[delusions]] and different [[aggregates]] and so on. Now here the [[mandala]], the mansion goes out and purifies all the [[impurities]] of the [[world]] and of the places, the [[impurities]] of the plains, the [[mountains]] and [[water]] and [[elements]] and all the [[world]] all the [[mountains]] and ocean and so on, everything. All the [[impurities]] are completely [[transformed]], their ordinary [[appearance]] is completely [[purified]], they all turn into real [[Buddha field]] holding the [[essence]] of the [[Wisdom]]. And all the [[disagreeable]] [[appearances]] of the places are completely [[purified]], they are no more [[existent]], such as all 48
 +
 +
the dirt, the pollution and also in the landscape the things which are [[dangerous]], which are not agreeable which are rough, which has undesirable things growing and so on. All these kinds of aspect of lands is completely [[purified]]. So all these [[divine]] mansions that are created are absorbed into one, and it also integrated with all the [[divine]] mansions and [[Buddha fields]] of all [[directions]]. Now this one has no [[empowerment]] of the lord of [[Family]], the mansion has not- So it is finally absorbed into the mansion in which we are living.
 +
 +
If you have a practice which is an [[essential]] received the [[teaching]] in [[Lam Rim]] or in [[Lo Jong]] then there is is called "[[Thong]] Len" that is "[[giving and taking]]". So this is an [[essential]] practice in the [[Lam Rim]] [[meditation]] where one takes all the [[suffering]] and all the undesirable qualities of the [[sentient beings]] in the [[form]] of like a pollution, like a smoke or sort of taken in or absorbed into us and then we send out the [[rays of light]] which are of the [[nature]]
 +
 
 +
of our [[happiness]], our [[merit]] and all the good qualities, [[virtuous]] qualities to giving all [[sentient beings]]. This is an [[essential]] practice -in [[lam rim]]. So this [[visualization]] which is being done now is somewhat similar to that. Here also when we send out these [[deities]] and so on, each time we should do it out of generation of [[pure]] [[motivation]] out of [[compassion]] to all [[sentient beings]], [[seeing]] all [[sentient beings]] endowed with these particular difficulties and [[obstacles]] and so on, so out of very [[compassion]], [[great compassion]] then we send out these [[manifestations]] in order to free the [[sentient beings]] from their respective [[delusions]] and all the difficulties.
 +
 +
So if one can, at the beginning of each of these [[deities]] if one can generate the [[motivation]] for the particular kind of difficulty of the [[sentient beings]], that is very good. If that is too complicated then at the beginning one should generate a very {{Wiki|sincere}} [[motivation]] to {{Wiki|purify}} all the [[sufferings]] and the [[cause of suffering]] of the [[sentient beings]] and out of that [[motivation]] then we send out all the [[deities]]. When the [[duty]] is fulfilled, when the work is done, at the end we should always rejoice very deeply for what could do, for what one has done. If one does this [[meditation]] with that kind of [[motivation]] it is one of the best [[methods]] to [[accumulate]] [[merit]]. So this completes what is called the '[[Ritual]] of the [[Mandala]] [[King]]" or the "Lord of the [[Mandala]]".  
 
   
 
   
We have completed up to the Sog [[Chen]], the [[Field of Merit]] and at the end of all the [[pujas]], the [[Field of Merit]] has already departed. Now we should clear the  
+
Now we should start the [[ritual]] the [[rite]] of the [[king]] of the [[action]]. So now begins the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]]. We have to recite 32 [[deities]], 32 [[mantras]] of 32 [[deities]], so each time we should [[visualize]] that all these [[deities]] they have in their [[heart center]] the [[mantra]] circle, their respective [[mantras]] around the {{Wiki|syllables}}, their [[own]] {{Wiki|syllables}}. To be precise one should [[visualize]] the particular [[symbol]] like [[jewels]] or [[vajra]] and so on, in their [[heart center]]. If one can
  
[[Protection]] [[Mandala]] or the [[Protection]] Fence and for that first we should [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]] with the following [[mantra]]: [[OM]] SOBAWA SHUDA SARWA [[DHARMA]] SOBAWA SHUDA [[HUM]]. [[OM]] SOBAWA SHUDA SOBAWA means [[entity]], the [[nature]], SHUDA means [[pure]] or completely [[void]], and SOBAWA SHUDA SARWA [[DHARMA]] SARWA means all, [[DHARMA]] means [[existence]]. So ALL [[EXISTENCE]] FREE OR VOID OF OWN ENTITY or SELF ENTITY. At that point we are [[meditating]] by integrating our [[mind]] with the [[voidness]], with the [[Universal Voidness]], that is the [[nature]] of all [[phenomena]], our [[mind]] becomes completely emerged in the complete [[voidness]] of every [[phenomena]]. So [[shunyata]] is generally sort of divided into the so called ''[[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]]". That means the [[voidness]] and the [[signless]] and [[desireless]]. The [[reason]] why they are called "The [[Three Doors]] to [[Liberation]]" is because without entering or without [[realizing]] these three aspects of the [[shunyata]], there is no way
+
[[visualize]] the different implements with the {{Wiki|syllables}} in them and then surrounding with the [[mantra]] that is most precise, it also has a great significance.' If that is difficult one can [[visualize]] simply the {{Wiki|syllables}} surrounded with their [[mantras]] in the [[heart]] of each of these [[deities]]. So in general there are six different [[japas]] or six different {{Wiki|recitation}} ways of reciting the [[mantras]] and the way of the {{Wiki|recitation}} [[mantra]] here is called ''[[samaya]] [[japa]]''
  
to attain [[liberation from samsara]]. There, is no any other way to attain [[liberation]] from the [[samsara]] [[nirvana]] [[state]] without going through the way of [[shunyata]], the [[realization]] of [[shunyata]]. Although [[shunyata]], the actual [[shunyata]] cannot be divided into many, but this [[division]], this three [[division]], so called [[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]] is divided not not a [[division]] of the [[nature]] of the [[shunyata]], the [[nature]] of [[shunyata]] is always one, but depending on the basis of the [[shunyata]] such as the [[shunyata]] of [[cause]] and fruit and the [[nature]], and the [[shunyata]] of [[subject]], [[object]] and [[action]] so this way they are divided, according to the basis. It is the [[Prasangika's]] view, [[Nagarjuna's]] view, that they assert these [[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]] which is an uncommon or exclusive view, not an ordinary one. According to [[Prasangika]] or [[Nagarjuna's]] view then these three [[voidness]] are established in this way. For example; on the basis of
+
{{Wiki|recitation}}. And also that is called "chorypa [[deva]]" that means like the {{Wiki|recitation}} of establishment and then "chongu [[deva]]" that is complete or comprised into one. So all these circles of [[mantra]] in these [[deities]] they are all very radiant. So each {{Wiki|syllable}} of the [[mantras]], letters of the [[mantra]] is very radiant like a bolt of {{Wiki|light}} a flame like this, and inside there is the shape of the [[letter]]. So all these {{Wiki|syllables}}, the letters of the [[mantra]] should be [[visualized]]  
  
the [[vase]], then that [[vase]] is free of completely [[void]] or [[empty]] of its [[inherent existence]]. So that is the {{Wiki|negation}} of [[inherent existence]] on the basis of the [[vase]] is called the [[voidness]], "[[nature]] of [[voidness]]", the First Door of [[Liberation]]. So this of the [[vase]] is, now the second [[voidness]], that is the [[Signless]] on the basis of the [[vase]] is that the [[vase]] is produced by a [[cause]] definitely, but not produced by an [[inherently existing]] [[cause]]. So that [[vase]] is free or it is completely [[void]] of production of [[inherent]] [[cause]]. So that aspect of that [[vase]] is called [[Signless]]. Also that [[vase]] produces its [[own]] fruit, its [[own]] {{Wiki|future}} moments, produces its fruit but it can never produce an [[inherently existing]] fruit. So therefore, that [[vase]] is completely [[void]] or free of the function to produce an [[inherently existing]] fruit. That aspect of the [[vase]] is called "[[Desireless]]". It is also [[shunyata]].
+
very radiant like a bolt of {{Wiki|light}}. So when the [[mantra]] has not many {{Wiki|syllables}} like [[OM]] [[AH]] [[VAJRA]] DEK [[HUM]] [[HUM]], then such [[mantras]] are not long, so we should [[visualize]] each [[letter]] like a bolt of {{Wiki|light}} [[standing]] like this. So all the circles of the [[mantra]], they are [[standing]] on a [[moon disc]] or on {{Wiki|sun}} disc according -to on the disc on which the [[deity]] is sitting. So if the letters of the [[mantra]] are many, then each of the letters are like a bolt of {{Wiki|light}} individually and sometimes if the [[mantra]] is with many letters, then there is a ring of {{Wiki|light}} on the disc and inside that ring of {{Wiki|light}} like you see in the ball these wires
  
 +
inside, in the flame, you see the wires like that, then there are the letters of the [[mantra]] in the ring of {{Wiki|light}}. Then [[rays of light]] go out from these [[mantras]] and also at the end of the [[rays of light]] coming from these letters are many [[deities]] [[manifest]]. So when we exhale then all these [[deities]] go out from the {{Wiki|syllables}} and go out in many [[forms]] and help the [[sentient beings]] and when we inhale then they come back in to the [[mantra]]. So first of all one must do so called [[vajra]] visitation. So the {{Wiki|syllables}} are [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]], but this is not a [[verbal]] {{Wiki|recitation}}. So the [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} is neither a [[verbal]] {{Wiki|recitation}} nor a
  
 +
[[mental]] {{Wiki|recitation}}. It is {{Wiki|recitation}} of the respiration. So one keeps quite. Shut your {{Wiki|mouth}} and then very [[calmly]] and quietly aspirate. The actual [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} is something practiced in the [[state]] of completion. So as a preparation to that you should practice here a few [[vajra]] [[recitations]]. So without any {{Wiki|movement}} of the {{Wiki|mouth}} or the {{Wiki|tongue}} or anything like that just then one should think that one's respiration the [[breath]] {{Wiki|inhalation}} and {{Wiki|exhalation}} and the holding of the [[breath]] has the [[sound]] of [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]]. For example the very good [[bell]] made of very good material, when if it is hanging somewhere then the [[wind]]
 +
 +
blows very strongly on it and it gives kind-- so in a similar way without any real loud [[sound]], a very clear loud [[sound]] then when we inhale then one should [[imagine]] this [[air]], [[breath]] coming in has the natural [[sound]] of [[OM]], so something which you can hear from inside. At this [[moment]] we are in the central figure of the, [[deity]] with a [[mantra]] circle inside with a [[HUM]] {{Wiki|syllable}} in the center. We should at this [[moment]] think that we are inside that [[HUM]], we are inside that central {{Wiki|syllable}}. So as the [[breath]] comes in, then we are here in our {{Wiki|chest}} in the [[HUM]], the [[HUM]] is one’s [[self]], so one should think that a draft is coming
 +
 +
from a window, from the ventilation or somewhere like that, the [[wind]] is coming from above because we are in the [[heart]], so that is like blowing on your head, like that the [[breath]] is coming from the top. So it is like the draft or the [[breath]] is coming through the [[central channel]] and sort of glowing on us, oneself as a [[HUM]], and then one hears from there is a [[sound]] OMMMM of that [[wind]]. We should not let it out immediately and must maintain keep that for a while. So during its -- settles, the [[breath]] settles inside, it settles with the natural [[sound]] of AHHHHH. And when it leaves when it does out then -- it
 +
goes out with the [[sound]] of HUMMMM, with the natural [[sound]] of HUMMMM, a long HUMMMMMMM. So OMMMM it comes in, with AHHH it rests, and with the HUMMMM it goes out. That is called [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}}. And there are some more positions if one can, then when the [[breath]] goes out HUMMMM then it goes out and helps [[sentient beings]] and makes [[offerings]] to the [[Buddhas]], but however if it is too difficult, it is not indispensable. After one can do this about three times and then one should begin the [[verbal]] {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]]. So this [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} is a very powerful one. One can do it several times and after it, then when one begins the [[verbal]] {{Wiki|recitation}} [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]] the first [[mantra]]. So not [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]]
 +
 +
- it is [[OM]] [[AH]] BENZADIK [[HUM]] [[HUM]] that is the [[mantra]] of the central figure and while this -- and if one recites this loud it is called the [[krodha]] {{Wiki|recitation}}, the [[wrathful]] {{Wiki|recitation}} when 49
 
   
 
   
So [[Je Rinpoche]] was explaining in some detail, some [[philosophical]] discussions between the [[four schools of Buddhism]] concerning these three Doors of [[Liberation]]. [[Prasangika]] asserts that only [[extraordinary]] [[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]], exclusively, with just this [[extraordinary]] [[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]], while the Satantra they assert two types, the [[extraordinary]] and ordinary; also the [[Theravadins]] and the two other schools of Vivashkra and [[Sutra]] only assert the ordinary, the ordinary [[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]] which is applied to the Four [[Noble]] 25
+
one recites it loud. At this time then one should think of [[rays of light]] coming out from the {{Wiki|syllables}} and bringing all the fulfilling the work of helping [[sentient beings]] and so on. If it is done in a group then everyone together can recite loudly [[OM]] [[AH]] BENZADIG [[HUM]] [[HUM]] or the [[chant leader]] begins out loud [[OM]]  
 +
[[AH]] [[HUM]] [[HUM]] then everyone remains quiet and quietly recites [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]]. If one is doing a [[retreat]] or the practice {{Wiki|individual}} alone, the [[sadhana]] or something, then one should recite quietly not making a lot of noise, quietly recite [[OM]] [[AH]] BENZADIG [[HUM]], quietly. It should not be so loud that other [[people]] can hear. But if it is too quiet, too low that one can't hear what one is saying, then it is again a fault. And if one does it too slowly, like if one does it [[OM]] [[AH]] BENZA that, that's again a fault.
 
   
 
   
[[Truths]]; while the [[egolessness]] and also the [[impermanence]] and these qualities, the 16 qualities of the [[Four Noble Truths]] and they accept that as the basis of the [[Three Doors]] of [[Liberation]]. However, in the [[Prasangika]] it is applied exclusively to this [[void]] [[shunyata]] [[nature]], the [[shunyata]] aspect. That is the non-
+
...too speedy, that's also fault And, if one recites correctly with the correct {{Wiki|speed}} and so on, but with very little use, so reciting very powerful [[mantras]] with a [[mind]] which is fully engaged into business and to [[conversation]] with the [[people]] and visiting places and so on, then there is not very much power. Otherwise, if one does it, and fit in it, the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]] is a very powerful method. So if we cannot do very much [[visualization]] of [[rays of light]] going out from the {{Wiki|syllables}} and going out reaching [[sentient beings]] and purifying, making [[offerings]] to the [[Buddhas]]. If this is too difficult, then one should [[concentrate]] one's [[mind]] and very deeply pray to one's [[guru]] which is [[inseparable]] from the [[deity]], to the [[guru]] [[deity]], [[concentrate]] on one's [[guru]]
 +
[[deity]], and deeply pray to the [[guru]] [[deity]] for the [[blessing]] and [[empowerment]] with this [[state of mind]], if one recites [[mantra]] that is also very effective. And after reciting this three times, then we move to the next [[mantra]] [[OM]] PRASHA VASACOMBUM, so that time we are {{Wiki|concentrating}} in the [[mantra]] in the [[consort's]] [[heart]]. So [[OM]] PRASHA VASACOMBUM so next [[mantra]] is [[OM]] AZENERGY OMMO, that is in the {{Wiki|chest}} of Variochana. Each time when we do this we are, one [[concentrates]] on the [[mantra]] circle in the {{Wiki|chest}} of each [[deity]]. We are not [[thinking]] this is someone else, we are just looking into the hearts of somebody else, but one
 +
 
 +
[[thinks]] that one is that, that is still part of ourself. Because one's [[self]] is the chief, as well as one’s [[self]] is the entourage. So therefore, it is all [[inseparable]]. So therefore, we all the time we should follow this {{Wiki|unity}}. And then [[OM]] AZENERGY, [[OM]] ARENIDEK, SO [[HUM]] ARENIDEK SO [[HUM]] then [[OM]] AROLIK [[AH]] [[HUM]], [[OM]] AROLIK [[AH]] [[HUM]], SO RANASAMBAWA and so on, all these 32 [[mantras]] one should recite a few times like that. And when we reach to the last [[mantra]], that is [[OM]] ASUMARANZA [[HUM]] [[HUM]], that is there are [throdat] down there, then all 32 [[mantras]] have been recited and then we should recite [[Vajrasatva]] [[mantra]], the 100
 +
 
 +
union with the [[consort]]. Then by union with the [[consort]] then one [[experiences]] very great [[bliss]], and in that [[bliss]] one's [[body]] dissolves into {{Wiki|light}}. So by dissolving into light...the [[consort]] first dissolves into one's [[self]] then one's [[body]] also dissolves into {{Wiki|light}}. So one's external [[body]] which is Samasatva dissolves into {{Wiki|light}} and absorbs into the [[inner body]], reaching Anasatva the [[red]] one, with one face and two arms and the {{Wiki|chest}}. And that Anasatva [[red]] one is absorbed into the Ranasatva [[HUM]], the [[vajra]] with the [[HUM]] in his [[heart]]. And it dissolves further and after a while a little [[HUM]] remains, only [[HUM]] remains, and the [[HUM]] starts to dissolve from the bottom, first the U sign, the subju into the [[body]] of the HA, the [[body]] of the HA into the head of the HA, the
 +
 
 +
headline of the HA, the headline of the HA into the crescent, the crescent into the dot, the dot into the little flame, the first curve, second curve, third curve and then completely dissolve into [[emptiness]]. Now the 30 [[deities]] are still there but the central figure has disappeared. So now there is a request of some verses and we should think that each verse is being sung by those four [[consorts]], the Ginma, that one on the [[southeast]], [[southwest]], and so on the Ginma, Mamake, Kerkomo, and [[Dolma]], these four [[consorts]] by having seen the chief, the central figure having disappeared, then they long to see the [[deity]] again, so they make the request. They sing this verse of request for reappearance. So explanation of this verse will take a very long time. So now after
 +
 
 +
these requests of the four [[consorts]], then instantly on generate again on one's [[form]] as the [[deity]], reappeared there and by this reappearance of the [[central deity]], all the [[deities]] in the [[mandala]] are very [[pleased]], they are all very [[pleased]] and overjoyed by the [[appearance]] of their Lord, then after the great [[joy]] then they make a few more praises then also make the [[offering]], [[outer offering]] and [[inner offering]], that's all. So at this [[moment]], the praise is not done by those [[deities]] around by themselves, or one is reciting it, so there are five verses of the praise then four praising then one send out again many [[deities]] and [[goddesses]] out, praising [[goddesses]] out, and they from outside praise to the whole assembly they make these five verses of praise. After the praise then
 +
 
 +
[[offering]] comes. And then [[offering]] [[deities]] are generated from one's {{Wiki|chest}} and they go out and they make [[offerings]] of the arghum to the whole assembly in the [[mandala]]. So after completing all the external [[offerings]] after the [[music]] and then [[inner offering]] is made. So although in the text it says that one's left thumb turns into the great ocean and one's left ring finger into [[Mt. Meru]] then taking, stirring the, [[Mt. Meru]] stirring the ocean and so on, but that is not to be [[visualized]], it is just [[symbolic]] of that. Then we put our ring finger in the [[inner offering]] and take one drop and sprinkle it and say [[OM]] CHERDO. [[OM]] I offer. So this first sprinkle with [[OM]] CHERDO is something like t sting a [[food]] before it is served. It is something like that. It is actually a cook's job.
 +
 
 +
After that then we take the container, the bottle or whatever we have, take it in our two hands. So there are two ways of [[offering]], [[offering]] with the [[bell]] in the left hand, holding the [[bell]] then sprinkling it with the [[sound]] of the [[bell]], or without anything in the hand. As soon as we, when we sprinkle like that then we should think from one's {{Wiki|chest}} immediately Vajrataste [[goddess]] that [[form]] with four arms, a lot of them go out and they offer to all the [[deities]] the [[offerings]], the amritas, to all the [[deities]]. So the [[inner offerings]] are made first to all the [[gurus]] and so each time when these [[offering goddesses]] bring it to all the [[gurus]], then these [[objects]], they send out a tube of {{Wiki|light}} from their {{Wiki|tongue}}, from their vajratongue, and then taking from the [[skull]] the
 +
 
 +
[[essence]] of this [[amrita]]. So we should [[visualize]] at this time all the [[lineage gurus]], they are [[gathered]] into like a big cloud inside the [[mandala]] this in front of us, a little above us, a little in front of the oshnishchakrabody. So the first [[offering]] is made to one's [[root guru]] which is in the [[form]] of Vajradana, so with the first line of [[prayer]] which says, "to the [[root guru]] who is the [[embodiment]] of all the [[Buddhas of the ten directions]], and so on...at that time we are [[offering]] it, taking it up on the level of the {{Wiki|crown}} of our head and sprinkle one time then at that time we offer our [[root guru]] who is in the center above all. Then hold it in the level of our {{Wiki|forehead}}, [[offering]] it to Vajradara, that is Vajradara who first turned the [[wheel of Dharma]] of the [[Vajrayana tantra]], and then who is a [[manifestation]] or different [[form]] of [[Buddha]] [[Shakamuni]] and so Vajradara and then to all the other [[lineage gurus]], the [[Vajrapani]] and Indrabodi and so on, to the rest of the [[gurus]]. So the [[reason]] why one's [[root guru]] is placed in a [[highest]] of all, in the center of all, that is needless to say in the practice of [[tantra]], even in the paramitrayana one's [[root guru]] should be respected as the [[highest]] of all as the most kindful and most [[precious]] of all. We should also remember that one's [[root guru]] is the very {{Wiki|personification}}, the very 50
 +
 +
[[embodiment]] of all the [[Buddhas of the ten directions]] and three times. Also who is the source of all the 84,000 aspects of the [[teaching]] of [[dharma]] and who is the chief of all the [[great assembly]] of [[sangha]], the aurea [[sangha]]. So is the one [[form]] of the [[triple gem]]. So to that [[precious]] [[root guru]] we offer with [[OM]] [[AH]]
 +
 
 +
[[HUM]]. So then we offer to the rest of the [[gurus]] and when we complete all of them then we offer to the [[deities]]. So all the [[deities]], the [[meditational deities]], the yidims, they are all included into 32 [[deities]] of the [[Guhyasamaja mandala]] and they are [[visualized]] in the front corner of the giant triangle in which our [[mandala]] is. In the front this is like that, there is one point is in front of us, and two in the back, so in front there is a [[space]] there and there in the [[space]] we [[visualize]] the 32 [[deities]], so we offer one by one VAJRADEEK ASATRA.
 +
 +
Then after completing all these names of each of the 32 [[deities]] then there is a passage which said, "other than that all the yidims, all the [[deities]] of all [[four tantras]], we make [[offerings]]". So at that [[moment]] we think that all the other [[forms]] of the [[deities]] of the [[four tantras]] Anatarayogacharya and Kyriatantra,
 +
 
 +
all the [[deities]], such as [[Yamataka]], [[Chakrasamvara]], Avilokitishvara and so on, all the [[deities]] in a big assembly, and we make [[offering]] to them. And then after that [[visualizing]] all the [[dharma protectors]] on the [[lotus]] on which the [[mandala]] is, on the [[lotus]], big [[lotus]] with 64 petals. On those petals then one [[visualize]] all the [[dharma protectors]], those who are the [[protectors]] of the [[dharma]], who have seen the face of the [[Buddhas]] and who have taken the [[vow]], to [[protect the dharma]] to his, [[practitioner]] of the [[dharma]] to {{Wiki|protect}} the [[sangha]] and so on. So all those [[dharma protectors]] are [[visualized]] there in a big assembly and we make [[offering]] to them.
 +
 +
Then outside the [[fire]] in the fence, outside there, we [[visualize]] all the [[worldly gods]] and [[devas]] and [[nagas]] and [[suras]] and so on, all types of [[spirits]] and [[gods]], [[deities]], [[gods of the mountains]], the [[river]], the [[earth]] and one's [[own]] place, and all kinds of [[spirits]] and [[gods]] and [[pretas]] and so on, and all kinds of [[spirits]], as well as all [[sentient beings]]. They are all [[transformed]] into [[Guhyasamaja]], they are all there in a big assembly and to them we sprinkle [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] and at that time they all receive this [[blessing]], this [[offering]] that purifies them completely and gives them great [[experience]] of [[bliss]].
 +
 +
So that is [[inner offering]]. Now there are still the secret [[offerings]] and so on and dissolving of the [[mandala]] which we will do this afternoon.
 +
 +
So after the {{Wiki|recitation}} of the [[mantras]] then the [[deity]] disappears and the four [[consorts]] sing the request for the reappearance of the [[deity]]. The [[deity]] appears again, then praise and [[offering]] of outer and [[inner offerings]] are already made. So there are, the names of the [[gurus]], one can find them in the text. There are a few [[Indian]] [[gurus]] and then some [[Tibetan]] [[gurus]]. In the [[Tibetan]] [[gurus]], there are two who are called DOK something, DOK something, there are two
 +
with DOK like a [[family]] [[name]] and this DOK and this DA and NA in [[Tibetan]] looks very similar. So there are many [[people]] who say that it is WAK, but it is not really WAK. The [[reason]] why a lot of [[people]] tend to say WAK is because there are a few great [[Tibetan masters]] like WAKLASAR FEWSHERAP and so on a few great [[translators]] with the [[name]] WAK. That is why they think they are really like that, but W AK is a [[name]] of the country that is in the Central part, [[East]] part
 +
 
 +
of [[Tibet]], Central-East [[Tibet]] and this DOK is in sung in the [[west]] and [[people]] don't know and so they often say WAK instead of DOK. So in the [[lineage]] of the [[gurus]] that there are two [[lineages]] of this [[tantra]], starting from [[Vajradhara]] and there is one [[lineage]] of [[Vajradhara]], [[Vajrapani]], then Indrabodi. Indrabodi is a great [[tantric]] [[king]] at the time of [[Buddha]]. So the great conqueror Indrabodi had made a request, a very special request of [[Buddha]] to teach him a [[dharma]]
  
[[inherent]] [[existent]] [[nature]] of the thing itself and also the thing also has the aspect that it is not produced by an [[inherent]] [[existing]] [[cause]]. Also the thing itself holds the aspect that it cannot produce an [[inherently existing]] fruit. So that is [[Signless]] and [[Desireless]]. Why it is called [[Signless]] is in general a sign or there are two types of [[signs]], a sign which produces and a sign which gives [[birth]] and a sign which gives the [[standing]] or [[knowledge]] and sign which gives [[knowledge]] is like {{Wiki|reasoning}}; like {{Wiki|perfect}} {{Wiki|reasoning}}, fruit of {{Wiki|perfect}} {{Wiki|reasoning}} then one gets through {{Wiki|perfect}} {{Wiki|reasoning}} then one gets [[understanding]], certain [[understanding]] through for example, {{Wiki|inference}}, valid {{Wiki|inference}} through {{Wiki|reasoning}} and so on and sign which gives [[birth]] that is the actual [[cause]] of whatever the [[object]] is. So that is why they are called [[Signless]] and [[Desireless]] is because [[desire]] is applied to the {{Wiki|future}} to the fruit, because [[desire]] is when we we are always [[desiring]] something to happen this, to get this and that. It is always in the {{Wiki|future}}, some fruit or goal that we are seeking which is
+
which isn't very hard and he is unable to {{Wiki|renounce}} his [[kingship]], his entourage, his queens and surroundings, so he asked [[Buddha]] to teach such a [[dharma]] where one can still [[attain enlightenment]] without renouncing, without taking the part of the [[detachment]]. So Indrabodi proved to be a very great [[fortunate]] being who is a real, the best kind of [[disciple]] of [[tantra]], with the [[power of mind]], with the [[fate]] and everything. So therefore [[Buddha]], appearing in the [[form]]  
  
also free of [[inherent existence]], therefore it is called [[desire]]. So when we recite in the [[prayer]] where it says "all [[dharma]], the [[nature]] and the [[cause]] and the fruit of all [[dharma]] or all [[phenomena]] are [[void]] of [[inherent existence]]. At that time we should [[meditate]] on these three aspects of every [[phenomena]]. So [[Je Rinpoche]] said that [[shunyata]], this [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[nature]] of every [[phenomena]] is one of the most {{Wiki|subtle}} points, the most difficult, most profound and {{Wiki|subtle}} points. So therefore, it is not an easy thing for everyone to realize that very {{Wiki|subtle}} point. That is why there are so many different [[views]] have developed, different assertions, [[philosophical]] assertions have [[realized]] through which has actually also differentiated or divided these [[four schools of Buddhism]]; The Visnavadins and the Madyimika, within Madyimika also there is Lasandra, [[Prasangika]], and Vivishaka Sukantricka. Each one holds different [[views]] and different divisions about this. However, the most profound and the view which is free from error which is the [[perfect view]] about [[shunyata]] is the [[Prasangika's]] view.
+
of [[Vajradhara]], then gave him the [[teaching]] of [[Guhyasamaja Tantra]]. So [[Buddha]], in the [[form]] of [[Vajradhara]], gave this [[teaching]] of [[Guhyasamaja Tantra]] to Indrabodi and other great many very [[extraordinary]] [[disciples]] of [[gods]] and [[human beings]] and so on, and this [[teaching]] has been the [[teaching]] collected, all the [[tantra]], like most of the [[tantra]] is collected by [[Vajrapani]], or some other, and this is collected by [[Vajrapani]] and compiled by [[Vajrapani]] and so first we
  
So therefore, when we practice here in the [[tantra]], the [[meditation]] on these aspects of [[shunyata]], we should take the [[Prasangika's]] view of the [[shunyata]] and apply it in here. Actually, to understand it is very helpful to have some [[understanding]] about all those different [[views]] about [[shunyata]], different [[views]], [[philosophical]] [[views]], that all will contribute very much for our correct [[understanding]] and why [[Prasangika's]] view is the subtlest and is the most correct, then we will come to understand. However there is no time now to go through these different [[views]] and details. However, in the {{Wiki|future}} if you can learn something about those different [[views]] it will contribute very much also in our [[practice of meditation]]. At the beginning of this [[meditation]], a very special {{Wiki|emphasis}} is given on this [[meditation]] on [[shunyata]]. It comes before anything else. Because it means that this transforms our whole view about what we are going to [[meditate]]. So we must carry this view throughout the whole [[meditation]]. If we first [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]] at the beginning, and afterwards when we
+
offer to [[Vajradhara]], then to [[Vajrapani]] and Indrabodi and Nindrama, another [[yogini]], and so on, that's one line. So the Indrabodi, the great Indrabodi, then he had a son who is also called the Jr. Indrabodi and they are all [[attained]] through the [[path]] of the [[tantra]], the [[state]] of [[Vajradhara]], the [[state of enlightenment]] in their very [[life]] and the Indrabodi finally, not only himself, but all the whole being in his {{Wiki|kingdom}} all [[attained]], being led to the field
  
create the [[mandala]] and so on, if we again hold them as [[inherently existing]] as our usual view of the [[phenomena]], then they do not become a real antidote for the [[ignorance]]. The [[nature]] of [[shunyata]], there is no difference; the [[shunyata]] of the [[paramitayana]] and [[shunyata]] of the taratantra. There is no difference. The kind of [[shunyata]] which we must realize, for example in [[Lam Rim]] [[meditation]] and the [[shunyata]] which we must realize here, it is exactly the same. There is no higher or lower shunyatas. The [[tantra]] is {{Wiki|superior}} to the [[Paramitayana]], not because there is a difference in the [[shunyata]] that we must realize, but in the [[methods]] of this [[realization]] of the [[shunyata]]. For example, the changing of the ordinary [[views]]; for example the change, the complete [[transformation]] of ordinary [[appearance]]. In [[tantra]] we [[transform]] in the ordinary [[appearance]] already now in advance, we [[transform]] them already into the [[Buddhas]] and in the [[form]] of [[Buddhas]] and so on which is something that will be actualized in the {{Wiki|future}}. But we already take it in advance, so that is the difference. That makes a  
+
of Akinishta and let alone the [[people]], even the cows and [[dogs]] and so on in that {{Wiki|kingdom}} all [[attained]] a [[state]] of Akinishta and the whole {{Wiki|kingdom}} has become completely [[empty]]. In the one of the daughter, the daughter of [[king]] Indrabodi, had been afflicted with {{Wiki|leprosy}} and she asked the help of Indrabodi, although Indrabodi was very powerful [[yogi]], he could admittedly cure this very great problem, but there was a very great {{Wiki|purpose}} so he sent her, gave a [[direction]],  
 +
and sent her towards the [[East]]. And she after became a Vachuni, she has taken [[ordination]] as a Vachuni and she after became a great [[siddhi]] herself, who was called [[Palmo]], so Galmo [[Palmo]], Vachuni [[Palmo]]. So she left her place and went very far towards the [[East]] and her [[personal deity]] was Avilokitishvara. She was always praying to Avilokitishvara and reciting always her [[mantra]] [[OM]] PADME [[HUM]]. One time she reached in the mountain and [[forest]], she reached a big rock with
  
difference, great difference. Although [[shunyata]] is a very difficult thing, a very difficult [[subject]], one must really learn first about it very correctly and then apply the [[meditations]] and so it is not easy. However, as soon as we begin the practice of [[tantric meditation]], one is obliged to [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]], there is no other way. Without the [[shunyata]] [[meditation]], the [[tantric meditation]], has no meaning. To realize the [[shunyata]] which means that the [[voidness]] of [[inherent existence]] of the [[phenomena]] is of course it is a most important thing to realize, and even if we cannot really realize now, but to make an [[effort]] in that [[direction]], try to analyze, that is indispensable for the practice of [[tantra]]. According to the view of [[Prasangika]] here, all these different terms applied to the [[shunyata]] is all synonyms; such as free of [[true existence]], [[inherent existence]], or [[selflessness]] and [[egolessness]], all these different terms that I use are all synonyms, they all means [[shunyata]]. These different terms have different [[reasons]] and sudden different implications.
+
the figure of Avilokitishvara with a [[natural formation]] of Avilokitishvara on it. She went there and she prayed and prostrated and so on, and there were a few, there was like a little house, little [[temple]] nearby where a few [[monks]] were living. So she used to go there to do her [[prayers]] and [[prostrations]] and so on. The [[monk]] let her stay there during the day, and then in the night he always had to leave and go away somewhere, because it was a [[monastery]]. And then
  
However the meaning is always the [[shunyata]]. So usually to our [[mind]], all the [[appearances]], [[phenomena]] [[appearances]], they appear to our [[mind]], our {{Wiki|present}} [[mind]] as if they [[exist]] {{Wiki|independently}} by themselves, objectively from their [[own]] side, [[inherently existent]]. That is how we apprehend everything normally. So this kind of view that we have or this [[grasping]] that we have, apprehension that we have in our [[mind]] of these [[phenomena]] is called the "[[grasping]] for the [[true existence]]" or "[[ignorance]]". First before [[realizing]] [[shunyata]] it is important for us first how we what is that view how we really apprehend this [[phenomena]] and how we [[grasp]] without [[understanding]] that, if we sort of [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]] and if we come to the conclusion that there [[exists]] nothing any more. Then we have completely fallen into the extreme of [[nihilism]]. For example, there are certain [[views]] which say that things are neither [[existent]] nor non [[existent]]. But this {{Wiki|sounds}} very [[interesting]], but it doesn't have much [[sense]], because if something is not [[existing]], is not [[existent]], then automatically is [[non-existent]]. So
+
she, after she didn't [[feel]] very well at this place, then she went somewhere else again. She saw a rock with a [[form]] of [[OM MANI PADME HUM]] on it. So then she day and night prayed to Avilokitishvara, just staying never leaving that place, and then from the 8th of the 4th [[lunar month]], the 4th [[lunar month]], that is the month of [[Buddha's enlightenment]] and that month from the 8th to the 15th the [[full moon]], she continued in one session completely sitting there, [[meditating]] and praying to Avilokitishvara non-stop. And that [[full moon]] night, at midnight then 51
 +
 +
Avilokitishvara with a 1,000 head and arms the glorious [[form]] Avilokitishvara then appeared to her. When she opened her [[eyes]] from [[meditation]] she saw this most magnificent [[form]] of Avilokitishvara in front of her and then that gave her very great [[bliss]] and very great [[happiness]] and she [[attained enlightenment]] on that night. So she, her {{Wiki|disease}} was all completely cured and she became more, very again very radiant and youthful and radiant and so on and outwardly she
 +
looked like a [[yogini]], a great [[yogini]] who has had the [[vision]] of the Avilokitishvara and was an [[extraordinary]] [[yogini]], from outside. But inwardly she has [[attained]] the [[state of enlightenment]] and [[attained]] the [[state]] of [[Vajrayogini]]. All the damage that had been made to her [[body]], to the fingers and limbs and so on, everything fully restored and she became more youthful and more beautiful, even much more that how she used to be when she was still a {{Wiki|princess}} at the palace. So when she went again, when she appeared in public the [[people]] saw this big change in her and they [[thought]] maybe she is no more a Vachune, she is
 +
no more doing any of her hard practices, her [[asceticism]] and maybe she has lost all her [[chelas]]. Then the [[Bikshus]] in those days used to carry what we call cursil. The cursil is kind of walking [[staff]], piece of [[wood]] then with metal at the bottom and metal at the top with a little statue on top and a few rings which when shake would make some [[sound]]. Then she went out in the town and then in front of a great public she said "if my [[chela]] has broken, if I am no longer a [[bikshu]], if my [[chela]] has broken, then may I [[die]] immediately, if my [[chela]] is still [[pure]] and faultless, may I continue to live." And, saying this,
  
this kind of thing, [[no existence]] nor [[non-existence]] is only a {{Wiki|terminology}} game. Because even if one [[meditates]], one [[thinks]], on the for example on the [[non-existence]] the opposite of [[existence]], if we [[meditate]] on that and [[non-existent]] is [[identical]]. There is one can't apprehend those two in a different way. Even if, for example in the [[conversation]] or even in our [[own]] narrow [[thinking]] or [[conversation]], if someone asks "Is there such and such", you say, "there is not" or it doesn't [[exist]] or is [[non-existent]] means the same, it doesn't have any other, we can't understand it any differently. In the same way [[non-existence]] for example the opposite of [[existence]], no opposite of [[non-existence]] and [[existence]] is again [[identical]] and we cannot understand it any differently. So in the text, in the [[sutras]] and so on where it says "The [[Middle Way]]" everything is on the [[middle way]], free from the extreme of [[existence]] and [[non-existence]]. It doesn't mean that they are neither [[existing]] nor non [[existing]]. It means that they are not [[inherently existing]] [[phenomena]]. They do not [[exist]] inherently.
+
calling the work of the [[truth]], she cut her head with a knife and she put her head on that walking [[staff]] and stood holding it in her hand. She didn't, of course she didn't [[die]], and the head again joined, connected to the [[body]] and performed lots of [[miracles]]. Everybody was very surprised and repented very much for {{Wiki|disrespect}} and despising and so on. She has [[attained]] the [[state]] of the [[Vajrayogini]], particular that aspect of [[Vajrayogini]] who is called "beheaded
  
Although they are not [[existing]] inherently, they are not completely [[non-existent]]. They still [[exist]]. The meaning is there. It doesn't mean literally that they are neither [[existent]] nor [[non-existent]]. It has a meaning there. For example, usually when we think of ourself, when we apprehend ourself, our [[own]] personal [[self]] or [[ego]], then we always hold it, apprehend it as {{Wiki|independent}} as sort of [[inherently existing]] in us. So actually, [[Je Rinpoche]] says that what we are doing now is just like somebody in the last minute, somebody who is going to a meeting or something, then at the last meeting, just before 26
+
[[Vajrayogini]]", that is a [[form]] of [[Vajrayogini]] which has her head in one of the hands. We can take the [[initiation]] of this too, and there is a whole complete practice of that particular [[Vajrayogini]] where one [[meditates]] on one's [[body]] without a head, with the head in the hand, and the three [[nadis]] coming up from the neck and from each [[nadi]] then different energies...
 
   
 
   
the arrival of the guests, just running here and there for shopping. Because the [[understanding]] of [[shunyata]] is something which we must have already long before very well established in our [[mind]], then begin the [[tantric meditation]]. That is how it should be, but so it is not really the right time to explain,
+
[...]
 +
...faces on that [[deity]], so she has [[attained]] this [[enlightenment]] through that way. So in general the [[meditation]] of praying to Avilokitishvara and {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]] [[OM MANI PADME HUM]] is very beneficial and a very powerful practice which is good for every {{Wiki|purpose}} and in particular for curing the {{Wiki|disease}} of [[suffering]] of [[people]], of [[sentient beings]], like {{Wiki|diseases}} like {{Wiki|leprosy}} and so on. It has a very special effect and also to {{Wiki|protect}} from interference and so
  
to establish [[shunyata]] right from the beginning. However it is necessary to understand correctly. For the practice of [[tantra]], then from the beginning we should have a good preparation in our [[mind]] about [[understanding]] of the [[shunyata]] by studying, really by going through a good study about it and analysis about it. In addition to that sort of {{Wiki|certainty}} about the [[shunyata]] then also we should have the preparation or {{Wiki|certainty}} in our [[mind]] of [[renunciation]] and [[Bodhichitta]], based on [[refuge]], a firm [[refuge]] and proper [[understanding]] of the [[Bodhichitta]]. That is also a necessary preparation for the practice of [[tantra]]. So if we have these things already ready in our [[mind]], as soon as one begins the practice of the [[meditation]], or for example if one recites alone or in a big group, a [[chant leader]] begins the [[SANGHA]] CHO NAJ SOG KE CHO NAM LA immediately then there are very correct and very {{Wiki|sincere}} very [[pure]] [[refuge]] immediately come in our [[mind]], since we have it already. Because at that [[moment]] if we have to think '' Oh what is [[refuge]], what are the [[objects]] of [[refuge]], and what are
+
on, especially if one does it with a very [[pure]] [[motivation]] of [[love]] and [[compassion]]. So this [[Bikshuni]] [[Palmo]] and all of her [[disciples]], all the lines of her [[disciples]] they all have achieved, actualized Avilokitishvara and they all helped mostly [[people]], very [[suffering]] [[people]] like sick [[people]] and so on. So in the, one [[master]] who was one of the [[disciples]] of this [[Bikshuni]], then one time he had a very bad infection on all over the [[body]] which was so [[painful]], like so
 +
burning, like on the [[fire]] and then he completely escaped from everybody and went into the [[forest]] and it was so [[painful]] so that he dived into the lake, into a little lake, when he sat in the lake, the lake was boiling. So when this [[person]] was so much [[suffering]] from this special [[karmic]] fruit the [[Bikshuni]] [[Palmo]] came and then gave a [[blessing]] on his [[body]] and then [[taught]] the [[stage of generation]] of Avilokitishvara. So finally this [[master]] practiced very seriously and  
  
their qualities and so on", then all the other [[people]] have already finished their [[prayer]] and we are still uncertain about SAND GYE CHO DAN TSOG KYI CHOG NAM LA
+
finally also had the [[vision]] of Avilokitishvara and cured himself from all the problems and helped so many [[sentient beings]]. And like this so many great [[masters]] like that appeared in the line, in the line of [[disciples]] of [[Bikshuni]] [[Palmo]] and finally her [[teaching]] of Avilokitishvara reached [[Tibet]]. At that time [[in Tibet]], all towns and villages and so on, and however by the special [[karmic]] link with Avilokitishvara, all the alm [[bowls]], begging [[bowls]] of this [[Bikshuni]]
 +
 
 +
[[Palmo]], and her walking [[staff]], all these have been [[Wikipedia:burial|buried]], been sealed under certain rocks and like that [[in Tibet]], and which has been discovered by some great [[masters]] later, and now they can still be seen and worshipped and so on. So that's how the [[teaching]] or the practice of Avilokitishvara became the most predominant in all over [[Tibet]] all the time and also it is the first and predominant [[teaching]] all the time and there are also a lot of [[people]] who practice what is called Nune, the [[fasting]] [[ritual]] of Avilokitishvara, they are [[monks]] and even [[lay people]], [[religious]], it is a very common practice [[in Tibet]].
 
   
 
   
JANG CHUM BAR DU GAD NI KYAB SU CHI is only two lines, doesn't take a very long time to say, so if we have it already ready in our [[mind]], then immediately we can, the proper [[thought]] arises immediately when [[taking refuge]], and DAG GI JIN SOG GYI PE SO NAM KYI DRO LA PAN CHIR [[SANG]] GYE DRUB PAR SHOG these two lines of [[Bodhichitta]] and we have it already sort of, if we already [[meditated]] and have {{Wiki|certainty}} that immediately the [[Bodhichitta]] can be generated.  
+
So the great Indrabodi [[attained]] the [[state]] of {{Wiki|holy}} [[enlightenment]] and then the Juni one has [[attained]] the same [[state]] and he gave the [[teaching]] of the [[tantra]] to all his [[subjects]] and everyone became a great [[practitioner]] of the [[tantra]], and they were all very [[fortunate]], all very [[extraordinary]] [[beings]] of [[extraordinary]] commerce and through the practice of [[tantra]] they all together [[attained]] the [[state]] of Akinishta and left this [[world]] [[including]] the [[animals]] and so on, so their land was gradually turned into a lake. Their place their country has turned into a big lake.  
 
   
 
   
Otherwise if we have to begin at that [[moment]] to think about or arrive at all these stages of [[Bodhichitta]] and are also confused about them, it is too late.
+
So then the next [[master]] in the line is KOLEWDO ANDREWMA is also a [[yogini]] who is born from [[nagas]], it is a [[yogini]], who has received these teachings rom Indrabodi. She has transmitted the teachings of Guhysamaja to VISUKAVA. VISUKAVA is a great [[Indian]] [[siddhi]] who has renounced and became a very great [[siddhi]], a [[tantric master]]. Then it went on to many great [[masters]], [[Nagarjuna]] and so on until now, so thus we offer the [[inner offerings]] and after that we...at the end, then we take a drop and place it on our {{Wiki|tongue}}, this [[inner offering]]. One should think that one [[experiences]] very great [[bliss]], this in the [[inner offering]]. Now the [[secret offering]]. So for that, again like before, the two {{Wiki|organs}} of one's [[self]] as the [[deity]] and the [[consort]] must be [[consecrated]] in the same way like before, in the way of the [[vajra]] and [[lotus]] and so on. Light rays inside and all these things and then in union, experiencing very great [[bliss]]. Then this [[experience]] like before, [[experience]] of great [[bliss]], stage by stage one [[experiences]] more and more [[bliss]] and that [[blissful state of mind]] is [[Shunyata]]
  
In the same way when we said it is [[void]], the [[phenomena]] everything is [[void]] and so on, begins [[OM]] SOBA A SHUDA this [[mantra]], if we have to analyze right from the beginning what [[shunyata]] is and what the [[self]] is, then what the [[non-existence]] of the [[self]] is, if we have to apply all these analysis there, that will confuse the whole thing. So we should before the practice we should acquaint our [[mind]] very well with all these things what we must develop during the process and also about all these, first one must make a good study of all the [[visualization]], the [[process of visualization]] what one must [[visualize]] and their meanings and so on in advance, then when the right [[moment]] comes then one can [[visualize]] them one after another without [[confusion]]. It is like if we are all going to make tea, if you really know your kitchen very well and where things are then you can go straight take the tea and boil the [[water]], add the sugar milk and whatever and without too much hassle. If we are [[ignorant]] about our kitchen and don't know where things are then we go there and look here and look there and even don't know how to work with this stove then we do some mistakes there and it breaks down off, then we don't know where the tea is or where
+
the union of [[bliss]] and [[void]], that is the [[essence]] of the [[secret offering]]. Now the [[meditation]], the actual [[meditation]] of the [[stage of generation]] is something one should do before the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]]. Thus before the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]], after all the [[offerings]] and so on, before the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]], one stops there and then quietly one [[meditates]] on the [[stage of generation]]. One first [[meditates]] on one's [[body]] as AKSHOBY A. For that, one should do all the  
  
the milk is and we have to go out to drive and get milk and sugar and all this and then sometimes put the wrong thing in, [[salt]] instead of sugar and so on, then it is going to be a catastrophe. Then we spend the whole day like this for a cup of tea. So in the same way if we usually, if we acquaint our [[mind]] well with all the [[stages of the path]] and [[meditate]] about that, analyze about these and develop a really good [[knowledge]], correct [[understanding]] and {{Wiki|certainty}} about these and have them all ready, then whenever one begins a [[prayer]] or [[meditation]], then we can generate the right thing at the right [[moment]] without any difficulty.
+
process of [[visual]] acts from the beginning of the [[sadhana]], all those stages of [[visualization]]. That is like constructing, that is like actual construction of the [[visualization]], of the [[meditation]], of the [[stage of generation]]. When it is all done, all [[constructed]], then we should [[concentrate]] and apply analytical and [[concentrated]] [[meditation]] on that. So before the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]], you stop there, you stop the reciting [[sadhana]] and quietly then one practice, the actual [[meditation]] on 52
 
   
 
   
...So [[Je Rinpoche]] says that he has not much time now again to explain the [[shunyata]] in great detail. However, out of all the practices, the [[shunyata]] [[right understanding]] of the [[shunyata]] and the [[Bodhichitta]], [[motivation]] of [[Bodhichitta]], are the two [[principal]] [[essential]] points which we must have it completely clear
+
the [[stage of generation]]. So here one applies the [[analytical meditation]]. First one looks through one’s [[self]] in the [[form]] of AKSHOBYA very likely making a review of one's [[body]] very thoroughly from head to toe, everything. Then one expands further and one analyzes on the [[body]] of all the [[deities]], Variocana and two [[consorts]] around, and then going further than those two [[consorts]], then further, the true [[bodhisatvas]] and the carodas on that [[direction]]. Then on the
  
in our [[mind]] for any practice of [[tantric meditation]]. After completing all these [[preparatory practices]], the [[Guru Yoga]] and all that for the [[accumulation of merit]], now when we say [[OM]] SOBAWA SHUDA SARWA [[DHARMA]] SOBAWA SHUDA [[HUM]], then all [[phenomena]], their [[nature]], their [[cause]] and signness, their [[cause]] their fruit and all are completely [[void]] of become completely [[void]] when we read this and at that [[moment]], immediately then [[shunyata]] must come in our [[mind]]. So as soon as we remember or we [[meditate]] or remember the [[shunyata]], the [[void]] [[nature]] of every [[phenomena]], at the same time also these ordinary [[appearances]] must dissolve, at the same time the ordinary [[appearances]], the [[phenomena]] [[appearances]] completely dissolve in your [[mind]] and so everything becomes totally [[empty]]. At this [[moment]] then we our [[mind]] which is in the [[subject]], our [[mind]] which in the very [[blissful state]] and the [[object]], the [[shunyata]], the [[void]] aspect of all [[phenomena]] completely merge into one. So they become inseparably one, this [[subject]] and [[object]] become one without [[duality]]. So later when we create all the [[protection mandalas]] and guardians and such and all these must come from that {{Wiki|unity}} of the [[void]] and [[bliss]]. Everything comes from that very [[essence]]. So out of this [[void]]
+
[[South]] [[direction]], [[West]], [[North]], on all the doors, making a very thorough checkup or very thorough review of all these [[mandala]] inside. When you have finished inside, then go out and look outside how all the [[vajra]] ground and all those things are and then still going father and then the [[fire mandala]], so one very slowly and quietly one has to analyze. This way, first we go out, after the {{Wiki|light}}, completely outside of the [[fire mandala]] and so on, then when we complete
 +
outside, then we again start to look back at the [[fire]] fence, the [[vajra]] fence, the top and the bottom, the [[vajra]] ground, the [[lotus]] then this thing the cross [[vajra]], with the letters going up and the street and the house and also on the roof and everything, then entering into the [[deities]] and so on, coming closer and closer up to one's [[own]] [[body]]. Also going upward the {{Wiki|canopy}} and then the, like the roof, for inside of the roof then outside of the roof, the ornaments on the top, and also right up to the top of the [[mandala]] one should also look upward. Still there is on top, above the rooftop of the mansion, there is
  
and [[bliss]] [[state]] then in the total [[emptiness]] appears the [[letter]] PAM, This [[bliss]] and [[void]] [[state of mind]] itself taking the shape of a very large [[letter]] PAM in [[yellow]] {{Wiki|color}}. So this PAM dissolves into the {{Wiki|light}} and it transforms into a very large [[lotus]] with [[eight petals]]. This [[lotus]] is called the variegated [[lotus]]. That means its petals have different colors; so the four directional petals are [[red]] then 2 greens and 1 [[yellow]] and a black. Although it is not very precise, doesn't appear very precise to your [[mind]], you should think this [[lotus]] is there. On top of this [[lotus]] appears the [[letter]] [[AH]], which is also a [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}, and that dissolves into {{Wiki|light}} and [[forms]] a large {{Wiki|sun}} disc, glowing radiant glowing {{Wiki|sun}} disc. Then right in the center on top of the disc, {{Wiki|sun}} disc appears the [[letter]] BRUN in [[yellow]] {{Wiki|color}}. That transforms into [[yellow]] [[wheel]] with 10 spokes. So this [[wheel]] is [[a wheel]] of weapon so it is without a rim, it is just 8 spokes like a weapon coming out, then one spoke down and one spoke up the center. [[Je Rinpoche]] will explain. The spokes of these, 8 spokes around are like the blade of a sword, like [[Je Rinpoche]] has just make with the paper. Then one going upward to the top from the center and one down, so all together
+
still the [[vajra]] {{Wiki|canopy}}, outside of that still the [[fire]] and everything, that one should look through. Then again slowly come down. Then go down again, downward, ones seat and then the stage with the [[deity]] [[symbol]] on the inside then still go down then going the center of the [[vajra]], the cross [[vajra]], and the center of the [[lotus]], the [[vajra]] ground, then again the [[fire]] and so on, then going downward, and then back, back up to one’s [[own]] [[body]] AKSHOBYA. So it will not be very clear and precise at the beginning, but one should do this outgoing and this ingoing practice of [[analytical meditation]] and at first it is
  
ten. It's [[empty]] inside, hollow inside and sort of slightly these spokes near the center it gets sort of narrow, round and narrow. All the spokes come to the center and the center is quite round quite large and this center is [[attached]] to these two spokes up and down. The one on the top is quite long and it is also [[empty]] inside. The lower spoke is [[touching]] on the right on the center of this {{Wiki|sun}} disc. So there this [[wheel]] is [[standing]] and we should think that this is a very large [[wheel]], that it can hold the whole [[earth]] in, at least the district, otherwise then after we will have [[complication]] to put everything inside. So although in the text it says "the [[wheel]] which is turning 27
+
blurred, not very clear, it doesn't {{Wiki|matter}}. Then at the end one should hold the very strong [[pride]] of the [[deity]]. One is the AKSHOBYA. Hold that [[pride]], hold the [[appearance]] and the [[pride]] of the [[deity]] and keep in that [[state]] for a while and [[meditate]]. Holding the [[pride]] of the [[deity]] for some time, then again to insure yourself, then again you look out and try see your [[own]] [[form]], what [[form]] you are and what sort of entourage or surroundings you have and also what mansion you live and what kind of [[world]] in which you are. Again you look out. So therefore, one should practice the [[analytical meditation]] and the
 +
 
 +
[[concentration meditation]], one after another, sort of in an intertwined way. First you expand and analyze everything, then after that you go back and collect your [[mind]] inwardly and just keep the [[concentration]] of yourself being the [[Vajradhara]] or the [[deity]], and keeping that [[state of mind]] for a while without [[distraction]]. And again apply [[analytical meditation]]. Also one must apply the [[meditation]] or the [[concentration]] on [[shunyata]]. Although these [[mandalas]] and everything, one’s [[body]], as well as other [[deities]] and their [[forms]], and also the place and everything, although they are in multiform and multicolor and
 +
 
 +
[[appearance]], however they are all [[void]] of [[inherent existence]]. All are created, [[imputed]] by one’s [[mind]] and so therefore, in [[nature]] they are completely [[void]] of [[inherent existence]]. With this [[understanding]], then this keeps one’s [[mind]] in the [[void]] [[nature]], the [[empty nature]] of every [[phenomenon]] and [[concentrate]]. Here when you [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]], you simply [[meditate]] on the [[nature]] of all these [[appearances]], but you are not destroying them. Not like before. Before, we must wipe out everything, and completely make everything [[empty]]. Then no more [[appearance]], nothing. That has a special [[reason]], to do that before. But here we are
 +
 
 +
not yet making them dissolve. They are there, the [[appearance]] are there, but you are now [[meditating]]. First you are [[looking at]] their [[forms]] and so on, and after you are sort of {{Wiki|concentrating}} on their [[true nature]] of [[shunyata]]. So it is slightly different. One should apply the [[analytical meditation]], analyzing all the [[appearance]] and so on, and then at the end holding the [[pride]] of the [[deity]] and also {{Wiki|concentrating}} on the [[nature]] of the [[shunyata]], the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[nature]] of all these [[appearances]]. If you have some [[understanding]] of the [[shunyata]], and if you have already learned some certain [[reasons]] or way of analyzing
 +
 
 +
[[shunyata]], you can apply those also in your [[meditation]] and [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]]. In this [[meditation]] of generation, [[state]] of generation, you must practice all of them. This first [[meditating]] on the [[appearance]] and try to see the clarity, or [[clear appearance]] of the whole [[divine]], the place and the [[beings]] and so on, that is the opponent or antidote for the ordinary [[appearance]]. Then holding the [[divine pride]] that is the antidote for the ordinary [[clinging]], ordinary [[grasping]]. At first when our [[mind]] is not fully acquainted with this, then the [[meditation]] on all these, the [[deities]] and [[mandala]], aspects of the [[mandala]] is
 +
still very rough, is not in order. Some are big, some are small, some not very clear and so on. That doesn't {{Wiki|matter}}. As one acquaints one’s [[mind]] with this, then it becomes more and more clear and one, when we get very clear then we can add the positions and try to do it really quietly, the right size, the right height, the right width and all this can be applied later. One should also sometimes [[meditate]] on one’s [[body]] in a very simple [[form]]. Just one [[deity]] with one face and two arms and then after increasing, adding two more faces and four more arms and making it three faces and six arms. The [[people]] who do
 +
 
 +
very very precisely, extremely precisely, was not worried about the time and so on, then it is also very commended in the text which has truly great meaning that one should first [[concentrate]] on a little spot of the [[deity]] like the {{Wiki|forehead}} or something, one [[eye]] and try to make it really clear. When this becomes clear then one adds a little bit {{Wiki|nose}} or something, then [[concentrate]] on the {{Wiki|nose}} and when the {{Wiki|nose}} becomes very clear. When we [[meditate]] on the {{Wiki|nose}} and {{Wiki|nose}} if one loses the first part then it still is not trained. One trains one’s [[mind]] until one can hold both. Than when that is accomplished, then
 +
adding some more, two more [[eyes]], then the {{Wiki|mouth}} and so on, gradually, very slowly and very precisely adding, that is one method. This is a very precise method and it takes very long time. There are [[people]] who practice first drawing the [[eye]] on a piece of paper, paint it very accurately, placing it on ones {{Wiki|forehead}}, look into the [[mirror]] and see how one looks and then [[meditating]]. There are [[people]] who have done it. That is a very slow process. It takes many many years. So for us it is better if we do it in our way, although they are not very precise, sort of very vaguely, one starts with all these things from the beginning. Then the main thing is the [[concentration of the mind]], and then gradually the clarity and precisions will grow. So it is important when we  
 +
 
 +
practice that in a session of [[meditation]], when one [[meditates]] on these things, sometimes it might become very clear, very clear and our [[meditation]] goes very smoothly and is really sort of very [[pleasant]]. So on such occasion one should not then, one should not go over time, if your usual session is going very well then let's try to make it really long. That is not [[wise]]. Even if it is going very well one should stop when one must stop. When it doesn't work and one cannot [[concentrate]] and cannot make it clear, if one still try to force yourself, that is also an interference on the [[meditation]]. One should never do it. If it doesn't work, then you should stop it. This way ones [[enthusiasm]] in the practice will remain very strong all the time, one will have no difficulty
 +
 
 +
to come back to the [[meditation]]. If one force one’s [[self]] too much and tries to [[meditate]] till one gets completely exhausted, then one loses gradually [[enthusiasm]] in the practice, after one will be totally disgusted with this kind of practice and will surely give it up. But one must make a good {{Wiki|rule}} in one’s [[meditation]] and be strict in ones [[discipline]] of the [[mind]], that is one has to [[meditate]] or: the [[deity]] with one face or something like that. Then it happens because our [[mind]] is so 53
 
   
 
   
speedily {{Wiki|clockwise}}, but it is not yet turning. First we [[visualize]] the [[wheel]] and the turning will come later. So all the spokes and the spokes are blades very sharp on both sides and later when it turns then also sparks or flames come from the end of the blade. So this is called "[[protection wheel]]". We will
+
agitated and so much confused. Sometimes instead of [[seeing]] one face then we see two faces, then if we let it go on with two faces and it is wrong, because this way our [[mind]] will get a bad [[Wikipedia:Habit (psychology)|habit]] of just [[fabricating]] anything. So therefore one should not let it go that way. Instead one should try to, although it doesn't work, one try to keep the right [[object]]. Like that one should be [[disciplined]] in the [[mind]] about [[meditating]]. Otherwise, then it will go wild. It seems
 +
that in [[Lam Rim]], when you [[meditate]] on [[Lam Rim]] for example, you want to [[meditate]] on [[impermanence]] or something like that, and while [[meditating]] on [[impermanence]] sometimes [[suffering]] of [[lower realms]] or something else will come into your [[meditation]], and you will think "Oh that is also very important, I will [[meditate]] on that". Then you are getting in a very bad [[Wikipedia:Habit (psychology)|habit]] to the [[mind]]. So if one is inclined to do that, then always it will go like that, always doing something else than what we really should be doing. When the [[mind]] gets that [[Wikipedia:Habit (psychology)|habit]] it is very difficult again to change. So practicing this [[meditation]] on the [[mandalas]] and this way for a long time, and when you gain the ability to see the [[mandala]] very clear, all the aspects of the [[mandala]] very clear, as soon as you [[visualize]] if there is appear there, then you are beginning to accomplish what is called the gross, gross [[stage of generation]]. This way [[training the mind]] when we can see the, all the gross [[forms]] of the [[mandala]] and they [[deities]]. For example the outer [[forms]] all very clear, although not very inner details, like little [[deities]] in their [[eyes]] and so on, but the external - their [[bodies]] and also all the parts of the [[mandala]], when we can see them and can
  
[[visualize]] the "protecting [[deities]]" or ten mahacroadas, ten guardians on the spokes. As it says in the text, then it turns and produces [[fire]] and it makes by it turning very speedily and producing [[fire]], then it creates like a circle of [[fire]] all around it. Then in the center which is now [[empty]] inside, right in the center we should [[visualize]] a [[lotus]] and [[moon disc]]. So it is right in the center, in the [[space]]; [[not falling]] down, not raising up, but right in the center in the [[space]], not, untouched to any part of the [[wheel]]. Then same [[lotus seat]] also will [[form]] on top of these blades. On the top and middle of this [[lotus]], not inside but outside on the top, not completely [[touching]] the blades, little bit in the [[space]] over these blades a [[lotus]], not with [[moon disc]] but with {{Wiki|sun}} disc. The one in the center is the [[moon disc]], but all others are {{Wiki|sun}} discs. Also one more [[lotus]] and {{Wiki|sun}} disc right inside, right on top, and one at the bottom of the lower spoke, those two are inside. So all together there are eleven seats. In the center is [[lotus]] with [[moon disc]] and eight [[lotus]] and {{Wiki|sun}} disks on top of those 8 external blades, spokes, and the seat above there should be slightly in front of the center seat. It is very high up there, but slightly in
+
hold this [[appearance]] without a [[distraction]] of the [[mind]] for 1/6 of a day, about 4 hours, then one has [[attained]] what is called the stability in this gross [[stage of generation]]. Still [[meditating]] and {{Wiki|training}} one’s [[mind]] in that way, when one can [[visualize]] whole [[mandala]] and its contents in a little drop like inside a [[mustard seed]]. In a [[mustard seed]] one can [[visualize]] a whole [[mandala]] and its contents clearly, then one has accomplished the [[subtle stage]] of generation. When we can hold that clarity, that very {{Wiki|subtle}} clarity of the [[mandala]] for 1/6 of a day or 4 hours, then one has [[attained]] the stability of the [[subtle stage]] of generation. To begin, to practice, to enter in the stage of completion this stability, the [[attainment]] of stability of the {{Wiki|subtle}} generation is not necessary. When one attains this stability of the gross [[stage of generation]] one can already enter in the stage of completion and one can also accomplish the stage of completion. To practice these [[methods]] of [[tantra]], in general, even if they are not very correct, even if they are not very precise and not very complete, however, try to practice them is always very effective and leaves very [[auspicious]], very positive imprint in our [[mind]] which is very  
  
front. If we would look from the central seat. The one at the bottom, it is slightly on the back side of the central seat. Plus the seat right in the middle there are eleven seats altogether. So all those seats they are not completely [[touching]] the [[wheels]], they are a little [[space]] from the [[wheel]], because if they completely stick to the blades, then when the blades later will turn, then they would also have to turn very speedily. In the same way the one on top and the bottom also they are not completely in [[space]], not completely [[touching]] the interior of the spoke. So now on top of this central seat is [[moon disc]], then we take the [[form]] of White [[Vajradhara]]. All the [[deities]] in this [[Guhyasamaja]] Vajratantra, they are always three faces and six arms. So except for one or two [[deities]] which will come later which will [[form]] inside the [[body]] with one face and two arms, the rest of the [[deities]] in the [[mandala]] they are always three faces and six arms. So this White [[Vajradhara]] is sitting in [[vajra asana]] on the [[moon disc]]. The central face is white and the right face is black and the left [[red]], six arms embracing with a [[consort]] who is also in the [[identical]] [[form]], also [[identical]] implements holding in their arms, that is the right, the
+
good. But if one really wants to practice, very seriously, to accomplish all stages as described in the [[tantra]] then to accomplish the stage of completion one must first [[master]] the [[stage of generation]], and to do that one really needs to develop [[Bodhichitta]] and [[right understanding]] of [[shunyata]] and [[refuge]] and these kind of things. Then practice them really very proper and also very precise. So in the [[stage of generation]], when one practices the [[silent]] [[meditation]] for as much as one can, when one is tired of the [[meditation]], then one begins to recite the [[mantra]], {{Wiki|recitation}} of the [[mantra]]. If one practices this kind of [[stage of generation]], the [[meditation]] of [[stage of generation]] correctly, then one doesn't need to practice the usual so called [[tranquil]] abiding and [[vipashyana]] separately. When one makes progress in this, one has accomplished also the [[tranquil]] abiding and reprashana [[meditation]]. Because through the analysis of the [[deities]], and the [[forms]] of the [[deities]], as well as these [[mandalas]] and so on, through this one accomplishes the personalization, and through keeping the [[concentration]] of your [[mind]] which is necessary all through, and also holding the [[divine pride]] and so on, through this practice one accomplishes [[tranquil]]  
  
[[vajra]] [[wheel]] and [[lotus]] and the left a [[bell]], the [[jewel]] and sword. So the [[consort]] is not the [[vajra]] {{Wiki|touch}} because the [[deity]] is not yet in [[Guhyasamaja]] but in [[Vajradhara]], so the [[name]] of the [[consort]] is DORJE JORJU [[VAJRA]] DHATU, [[VAJRA]] DHATUSHARA. The [[consort]] is also with the same number of faces with the same_ {{Wiki|color}}, and holding the same implements in her hand. The first two arms of the yub is in the embracing gesture, so going around embracing under the arms of the [[consort]] and then at the back of the [[consort]], embracing with this gesture. The first two arms of the [[consort]] are embracing the yub from the neck and again making the same gesture at the back of the head. So you should acquaint your [[mind]] with this by [[looking at]] the [[Tankhas]] or [[statues]] and so on. That will then be easier to keep in your [[mind]] if somebody explains, if [[Je Rinpoche]] explains these details after we forget them again. So both are sitting in the midst of {{Wiki|light}}, in an [[Wikipedia:aura (paranormal)|aura]] of {{Wiki|light}} all around, not only from the side but completely like in the tent of the {{Wiki|light}} which is coming from the [[body]] of the two [[deities]]. So in the [[life]] of Mahacroadas, sit in the middle of [[fire]] coming from the pores of the [[body]] and like that the [[deities]] are sitting in an [[Wikipedia:aura (paranormal)|aura]] of
+
abiding. So this is the method of accomplishing both in one practice. After the [[meditation]] one makes a {{Wiki|recitation}} of the [[mantra]] as described before, then the request, praise, [[offering]], [[outer offering]] and [[inner offering]], then the [[secret offering]] through union with the [[consort]] and [[experience]] of [[bliss]]. When one [[experiences]] the [[bliss]] in one’s [[self]] one should think that all the [[deities]] in the [[mandala]] also [[experience]] that great [[bliss]]. That is the [[offering]] of the great [[bliss]], the [[secret offering]], and it is not just mere [[bliss]] of [[pleasure]], but it is the [[bliss]] of [[mind]] completely absorbed into [[shunyata]], into the [[emptiness]], [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[nature]] of every [[dharma]] and so that aspect is the [[offering]] of the [[thusness]] or the datadow [[offering]]. That means the [[offering]] of the [[shunyata]]. Thus all the [[offerings]] are complete. Then one already begins to, the [[mantra]] already begins to dissolve again. Like before we send [[rays of light]] from our [[body]] and bring all the [[deities]] in the [[mandala]] in your [[own]] [[body]]. Before what is called the special [[visualization]] where we also take all these [[deities]] in our [[body]], at that time...
 +
 +
...[[people]] can fit into one [[body]], in one [[person]], and that is not this kind of problem. As they absorb they dissolve into different parts. They are not like [[ordinary people]]. If it is uncomfortable, one can make the [[deity]] as small as one likes and then absorb into one's [[body]]. So they absorb into our different parts and they dwell in their respective places in our [[body]], like Variocana in the head, [[Amitaba]] in the neck, [[Akshobya]] is one's [[self]], so that is different,
  
{{Wiki|light}}, and both are adorned with eight [[precious]] ornaments and the [[celestial]] garments. So now in the center of our {{Wiki|chest}} as [[Vajradhara]], a [[lotus]] and [[moon disc]]. On top of this seat then the Janasattva [[body]] or the [[inner body]] in a [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}, one face and two arms, holding [[bell]] and [[vajra]], quite small. This figure is quite small, fitting inside right in the center of our {{Wiki|chest}} and also this [[deity]] is embracing with a [[consort]] in the [[identical]] [[form]] also with one face and two arms. Again in his {{Wiki|chest}}, in the {{Wiki|chest}} of this small [[deity]], again still a tiny [[moon disc]] with a blue [[vajra]] [[standing]], a tiny blue [[vajra]] [[standing]] on top of it. Inside the center of this [[vajra]] a [[letter]], very tiny little [[letter]] [[HUM]], blue. So that is the triple [[body]] of the [[deity]], our triple [[body]]. That is the external [[form]] which is called [[Samayasattva]], then internal [[form]] which is called Janasattva and the innermost [[body]] which is called Dhyanasattva. In addition to that then as usual, there is an [[OM]] in the head and [[AH]] in the neck and [[HUM]] in the {{Wiki|chest}}. So this [[HUM]] in the {{Wiki|chest}}, one can make it, because there is a tiny [[HUM]] inside innermost, so sometimes this is sufficient, we can take it as sufficient also for the other [[HUM]] or if we like we can
+
Ratnasambava in the {{Wiki|navel}}, and the [[Amogasiddhi]] in the secret {{Wiki|organ}} and then the [[consort]] helps in the different {{Wiki|navel}}, the [[heart]] the neck and the head and so on, like before, all the [[deities]] are again in our [[own]] [[body]] in their respective places. Like we had for the creation of the [[body mandala]] we have now the parts of our [[body]], like the front, the two sides and the back and then the [[four doors]], then all the {{Wiki|organs}} and sort of absorbed into those different parts of the [[mandala]], like the walls and doors and pillows and so on. Exactly in the same way now backward, all this [[mandala]] its walls, [[four doors]] and its pillows and everything, then absorbing into those parts of ourselves. So now the [[deities]] are absorbed and also the mansion. Now one’s [[self]] and the [[consort]]  
  
[[visualize]] a second [[HUM]], a larger [[HUM]] in front of the Janasattva, in front of this middle [[body]]. When we have [[visualized]] these triple [[bodies]] clearly then the yub and the [[consort]] engage in the union, [[blissful]] union. So when the [[deity]] enters in the union, then the [[rays of light]] [[emanate]] from that tiny [[HUM]] inside. So these [[rays of light]] fills the whole [[space]] and reaches all the [[Buddha fields]] throughout the [[universe]] and invite the ten qualities of [[Buddha mind]], the ten aspects of [[Buddha mind]] in the [[form]] of ten Mahacroadas. So from everywhere these [[rays of light]] are inviting these croadas, guardians, with [[Akshobya]] and the ten croadas. [[Akshobya]] and the ten croadas are invited from every [[direction]]. So these invited [[deities]], [[Akshobya]] surrounded by the ten croadas, they enter through the {{Wiki|mouth}} of ourself in front of [[Vajradhara]]. So they enter through the {{Wiki|mouth}} and they gradually dissolve into the {{Wiki|light}} and [[transform]] into the {{Wiki|stream}} of {{Wiki|light}} and [[blissful]] [[nectar]], the fruit of [[bliss]] which goes through the [[central channel]] and through the [[secret vajra]] or secret {{Wiki|organ}} of the yub then reach in the secret [[lotus]], the secret {{Wiki|organ}} of the [[consort]]. So these drops fall into the [[consorts]]' [[lotus]]. Then this drop of fluid then divides into ten
+
are still remaining and enter in union and from the junction of the two {{Wiki|organs}} then [[rays of light]] go out in all [[directions]]. Not just {{Wiki|light}} but also has the fluid of [[bliss]] in it like a fog, like a fog has the {{Wiki|light}} but also has [[water]], like that it goes out in all [[directions]] and purifies all the [[obstacles]] of the [[sentient beings]]. All the [[bodies]] of all [[sentient beings]] dissolve into {{Wiki|light}} and become [[HUM]]. Since the [[sentient beings]] are complex, you should [[visualize]] a complex [[HUM]] filling the whole [[space]] and those [[HUM]] change into [[Vajradhara]]. After all [[sentient beings]] [[transform]] into [[Vajradhara]], then they all are gone back and are absorbed into oneself. So when we recite this [[mantra]] [[OM]] [[YOGA]] SHUDA SWARA DARWA [[YOGA]] SHUDA [[HUM]], then making this gesture, then all [[sentient beings]]  
  
parts in the [[lotus]]. So eleven, it divides into eleven drops, again they are the positions like those croadas which we will [[visualize]], like the seat of the croadas, one in the center then all around. So the central drop in the [[lotus]], the central drop is blue {{Wiki|color}}. That is for [[Akshobya]] and we should consider the front side, that is our [[own]] side is the [[East]], then all these other drops, if one can [[visualize]] them precisely, this {{Wiki|color}} of those Mahacroadas that is good, but even if we cannot make the precision, one just [[thinks]] that they are in their respective {{Wiki|color}}, that is sufficient. So if one can, then we should [[visualize]] these drops in the respective {{Wiki|color}} of the croadas. So the one in the [[East]] is black, the [[South]] is white, on the [[West]] is [[red]] and one on the [[North]] is [[green]]. And are those which are on the center [[directions]] are their [[own]] respective colors. So when we will know the croadas {{Wiki|color}}, then we can [[visualize]] those drops after. Those then eleven drops in the [[lotus]], then they after they change into [[HUM]] in the long [[HUM]], ten [[HUM]]. So these drops [[transform]] into these eleven HUMs. The long [[HUM]] means long tone [[HUM]], it doesn't mean that we [[visualize]] that they are long in their size, but it is the, along the two HUMs there
+
in the [[form]] of [[Vajradhara]] are absorbed into one’s [[self]]. So that completes this [[mandala]] [[meditation]]. This kind of [[meditation]], [[meditating]] on a [[deity]], that is very beneficial and then of course also in the practice of [[Lam Rim]], all those stages of [[Lam Rim]] are very important in the [[practice of meditation]]. One should always apply the [[shamatha and vipashyana]] together, one after another, one cannot one should not leave one or the other. Then so if one practices the [[meditation]] without any sort, without any [[understanding]], just simply sitting time. Not only a waste of time, but is very [[unwholesome]] because it can become very unfortunate. It makes the [[mind]] more stupid, more dull and stupid and becomes [[cause]] to take [[rebirth]] as [[animal]]. So instead of one practice the [[tantric meditation]], like you are [[meditating]] on the [[form of the deity]], one of several [[deities]], if not with all big manner many [[deities]], but one’s [[own]] 54
 +
 +
[[body]], but one [[deity]] and [[meditating]] on it and apply the analytical and concentrative [[meditation]] on it after a very good [[motivation]]. Even if one cannot achieve or accomplish the [[state]] of generation, the {{Wiki|subtle}} or gross and {{Wiki|subtle}}, even if one cannot accomplish the [[path]], but if one practice this, the clarity of the [[mind]], [[concentration]] [[mind]], will naturally increase and through practice of such a [[meditation]] one accomplishes the very powerful [[merit]] and
  
is a short tone and long tone and long tone [[HUM]]. Then they again, these HUMs are endowed with the same colors of the [[deities]], the croadas. So now these HUMs [[transform]] into the [[deity]], the first the center [[Akshobya]] and the rest into ten Mahacroadas. The central [[Akshobya]] is in black {{Wiki|color}} and he is not a very [[wrathful form]], it's more of a semi [[wrathful]] or slightly [[peaceful form]]. It's embracing with the [[consort]] of [[Vajra]] {{Wiki|Touch}}, embracing with [[Vajra]] {{Wiki|Touch}}, and the croadas are without [[consort]]. All the croadas are [[standing]] up, so they are all holding their respective implements in their hand and all very impressive and very powerful looking and very [[wrathful]] and with all the hairs raising up into [[space]] and so on. So the complete croada of the [[mandala]] is formed within the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]] with [[Akshobya]] in the center, then eight 28
+
also is very powerful to {{Wiki|purify}} the [[obstacles]]. So therefore it is much more powerful that just very ordinary [[shamatha]] or anything like that. The [[principal]] thing in the [[meditation]], also in the [[tantric meditation]] is not to be just technique, [[visualization]] technique and [[visualizing]] the [[form]], that is not the [[principal]]. The [[principal]] thing is the [[wholesome]] [[state of mind]], developing a [[wholesome]] [[state of mind]], [[Bodhichitta]], and this [[love]] and [[compassion]], [[Bodhichitta]] towards all [[sentient beings]]. That is the [[principal]]. On that basis, with this [[principal]] anyone [[visualize]] the [[deities]] and so on, then it is very very beneficial. So one should never lose the [[principal]].
 
   
 
   
croadas around it, then one croada up and one croada below. So the [[Akshobya]] is in the center, has three faces, black in the center, then white and [[red]],
+
Then in different occasions when we have facing different problems with different solutions. Like for example, [[attachment]]. It varies - [[attachment]] giving lots of trouble, one should [[meditate]] on the [[impermanence]] and on the [[impurities]] of the [[body]]. On the [[impermanence]] and [[impurities]] of the [[object]] of [[attachment]]  
  
with six arms holding those implements, the vajrawheel and [[lotus]] in the right and [[bell]], [[jewel]] and sword in the left. So what we are holding and what the [[Akshobya]], the middle [[Akshobya]] is holding, which is in the [[womb]] of the [[consort]] is same. We take that [[Akshobya]] upward through the secret {{Wiki|organ}}, [[vajra]] of one’s [[self]] up to the {{Wiki|chest}}, up to the [[heart center]], our [[heart center]]. So the [[Akshobya]] with the [[consort]], then we take it, reverse we take it back up to our [[heart center]]. And at the same time we recite the [[name]] of the Vajradrik. The [[Akshobya]] comes up to the [[heart center]] when we say Vajradrik. At that time we are sort of calling him, like giving an order. Then as soon as we say Vajradrik, then it comes out, it suddenly goes out from the {{Wiki|chest}} from our {{Wiki|chest}} and immediately starts to multiply, one, two, three, four and thirty two, hundred, like that into countless [[forms]] filling the whole [[world]]. So these countless [[forms]] of [[Akshobya]] go out in all the [[worlds]] and go to all [[sentient beings]], help [[sentient beings]], through various, performing various [[deeds]] of the [[Buddha]], such as [[turning the wheel of dharma]], [[teaching]], giving [[initiations]], giving instructions, [[teaching]] [[tantras]], etc. through various means they help the [[sentient beings]] and establish all [[sentient beings]] to the [[state]] of [[Akshobya]]. In particular it subdues the [[hatred]] aspect of the [[obstacle]] of all [[sentient beings]], since the [[Akshobya]] is the Vajrahatred. Helps to establish all [[sentient beings]] to the [[state]] of [[Akshobya]]. Then all these [[manifestations]], they all reabsorb into one [[Akshobya]]. This created, this one [[Akshobya]] emerged with all the Akshobyas in the natural [[abodes]] of the [[Buddha]]. After that this [[Akshobya]] returns to you and sits in front of us. It comes in front of us, then it turns backward so that it is in the same position like ourself. Then it is absorbed into one’s [[self]]. So when this [[Akshobya]] enters into our [[body]], then it changes our [[body]] into [[Akshobya]]. Now we change our {{Wiki|color}} completely from white into dark and [[consort]] from white into [[dark blue]]. As we remember, the [[Akshobya]] was sitting on the [[lotus]] and [[moon disc]]. No the [[Vajradhara]] was sitting on the [[moon disc]]. Now this [[moon disc]] changes into {{Wiki|sun}}. Then we are also [[name]] changes from the White [[Vajradhara]] into the Dark [[Akshobya]], Vajrahatred. So [[Vajradhara]] was in the [[peaceful form]] and this [[Akshobya]], although it is not in a very [[wrathful form]] like those croadas, however is in a semi [[wrathful]] aspect. It has a special [[wrathfulness]] and [[passionate]] [[form]], aspect, and showing slightly the {{Wiki|teeth}}, with slightly pointed {{Wiki|teeth}}. Now the implements in the hands are same except the [[vajra]], this time is [[vajra]] with nine prongs instead of five prongs.  
+
and so on. If [[hatred]] is so much bothering, one should [[meditate]], apply the practice of [[love]] and [[compassion]], the [[loving]] aspect. If one is very strongly sort of [[attached]] or [[feel]] very miserly whatever [[attachment]] is towards, one's possessions and so on, one applies [[meditation]] on [[impermanence]]. Because when we leave from here, all this one's possessions, belongings, friends and relatives and everything is to be left behind. So this completes the [[stage of generation]] on the basis of the [[sadhana]].  
 +
 +
Now the stage of completion. The stage of completion is very vast and profound, even much more than the [[stage of generation]], and there is a lot to speak and a lot to understand and it actually, to explain it very precisely it takes a very long time. However tomorrow [[Rinpoche]] will go to summarized description of the [[teaching]] of the stage of completion. For today [[Rinpoche]] would like to stop here.  
 
   
 
   
 +
[[Rinpoche]] has completed a brief explanation based on the long [[sadhana]] of the [[Guhyasamaja]]. If one practices these [[stages of meditation]], beginning from the instant generation of the [[deities]] [[form]], then stage by stage then try to [[visualize]] all those different aspects as clear as possible in the [[mind]], not only just [[visualizing]] their [[forms]], but also applying the [[understanding]] of [[Shunyata]], the [[meditation]] of [[Shunyata]] each time in one's [[visualization]]. Then one's
 +
 +
practice of [[sadhana]] becomes a real practice of [[stage of generation]]. Before the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]], then one should stop and do the [[silent]] [[meditation]], make a very thorough analysis, analytical and concentrative [[meditation]] of the whole [[mandala]]. In [[Yamantaka]] [[sadhana]], then before the {{Wiki|recitation}}, there is what is called the [[remembrance]] of the significance of the [[mandala]], or the meaning of the [[mandala]] as a part, but that is not here in [[Guhyasamaja]]. So one should do this [[silent]] [[meditation]] of the [[stage of generation]] after the [[mandala]] is all created, and the [[deities]] go out and perform the [[deeds]] of the [[Buddhas]], and helping [[sentient beings]], {{Wiki|purify}} [[sentient beings]] and they all settle down on their place. And while they are still there, all there, complete and clear, that is the [[moment]] where one should do this [[meditation]]. The [[deities]], wherever one [[visualized]] them inside, or outside of our [[body]] in the [[mandalas]], one
 +
 +
should always [[meditate]] upon them, see them as part of ourself, not as something completely separate from us or unrelated to us, not somebody else, but they are all part of our [[own]] [[self]]. Normally we always see or apprehend all [[appearance]] as ordinary and that is how they appear to our [[senses]], through our [[vision]] and so on, and also we [[cling]], [[mentally]] we [[cling]] to these [[objects]] as ordinary [[objects]] and that is called the ordinary [[appearance]] and [[clinging]]. Also we [[grasp]], we normally [[grasp]] them, [[grasp]] for all the [[phenomena]] as [[inherently existing]]. In the [[stage of generation]] even we have accomplished the [[subtle stage]] of generation, we cannot really sort of eradicate this kind of [[appearance]] and the [[clinging]] of ordinary [[appearance]], this [[clinging]]. However through the practice of [[stage of generation]] one can {{Wiki|purify}} very much this kind of [[clinging]] and [[appearance]] and also subdue. So in the [[meditation]] they are completely subdued and
 +
 +
when we make progress in the [[stage of generation]] we can {{Wiki|purify}} this and we can subdue this kind of apprehension and [[clinging]] in the [[meditation]]. But when we are out of the [[meditation]] and then we can see them as usual. So after [[attaining]] a certain stability in this gross or [[subtle stage]] of generation, then we enter the stage of completion. The first stage of the stage of completion, the [[path]] of completion is called Luen, that is the solid chud [[body]], or something like that. When we accomplish that then we develop Simwin or {{Wiki|solution}} [[mind]]. After that then we should accomplish what is called [[impure illusory body]] of the third grade. When we have developed this [[impure illusory body]], or imperfect [[illusory body]] of the third grade then we [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]] and through this then we accomplish the [[clear light]] of the meaning, the [[clear light]] of the meaning of [[the fourth]] grade. By this which is a direct opponent or antidote for
  
Usually sometimes we can take the five pronged [[vajra]] itself as a nine pronged because counting the center prong as one, and then it makes nine prongs on it. Four below four on top and the center one is nine. But here in [[Guhyasamaja]] the nine prong doesn't mean that. Nine prongs up and nine prongs down. So the right hands are holding [[vajra]] with nine prongs and [[a wheel]] and [[lotus]], and the left, a [[bell]], [[jewel]] and sword. So we should think now we have [[transformed]] into [[Akshobya]] with these few changes in [[appearance]]. The [[hair]], all the [[hair]] of the yub is made into a [[knot]] on the head, and the [[consort's]] is half in a [[knot]] and half loose. The [[body]] is very magnificent, very beautiful [[body]], adorned with the 112 [[auspicious signs]] of [[Buddha's body]]. So the [[consort]] who was DORJE
+
the cleashiona or [[the fourth]] grade then we have [[realized]] [[shunyata]] directly, a [[nonconceptual]] [[direct realization]] of [[shunyata]]. When through [[meditation]] on [[shunyata]] this imperfect [[illusory body]] completely dissolves and through the complete dissolving of that [[illusory body]], going through the process of dissolution and it dissolving completely then one realizes the what is called the [[clear light]] of the meaning of [[the fourth]] grade and at that time we realize [[shunyata]] directly and that imperfect [[illusory body]] is completely ceased. The [[reason]] why, that [[illusory body]], the first [[illusory body]] we attain, why it is called imperfect is because still, we are still at that [[moment]], we are still not completely free from kleishaarva, the free from [[mental defilements]]. So that is why it is called imperfect [[illusory body]]. Then through [[meditation]] on [[shunyata]] when we realize, when we gain the direct [[non-conceptual]], [[direct realization]] of [[shunyata]], then by this then the [[defilements]], [[mental defilements]], [[kleshas]] is eradicated and as a result of that then we attain the [[path of seeing]]. That is the aurea [[state]], the [[path of seeing]]. Though the [[state]] of completion is sometimes divided into six grades or sometimes into five. So if one divides it into six that is the [[solitude]] [[body]], {{Wiki|speech}} [[solitude]] [[mind]], then [[illusory body]], then [[clear light]] and the union, the yugananda, the sixth. If we divide it into five, then the {{Wiki|speech}} and the [[mind]] are made into one. However, so we first attain the [[solitude]] [[body]], then [[solitude]] [[mind]]. [[Solitude]] [[mind]] is also called the [[clear light]] of the example, the example [[clear light]]. So that means it is not real clear, not actual [[clear light]], but like an example of [[clear light]]. The [[reason]] why it is not the real [[clear light]], why it is called the example clear is because that [[clear light]], that [[clear light stage]] there,
  
VIDISUHARE before now changed into Vajratouch with a [[dark blue]] {{Wiki|color}}, and adorned again in eight [[precious]] ornaments. Now the {{Wiki|light}} which is slightly more agitated, the {{Wiki|light}} is not [[peaceful]] {{Wiki|light}}, completely [[peaceful]] like before. It is reddish {{Wiki|light}}, but not really [[fire]], but slightly moving, slightly flickering [[rays of light]]. Still sitting in complete union with the [[consort]], because still those other croadas are still unchanged, still in the [[womb]] of the [[consort]]. And inner [[bodies]] the Gyanasattva and the Dhyanasattva the [[red]] [[deity]] and the little [[HUM]] those are there like before. So now we must take all these Mahacroadas, one after another, in a similar process like before, we take it back and up to the [[heart center]], and from there we send out. If one already has a very clear [[visualization]] of these croadas, then here we don't need to recite all the details of the croadas [[forms]]. Simply one says Avenadati, the
+
it is still not free. The [[mind]] is not free from the [[delusions]], from [[defilements]], still with the [[defilements]]. So therefore, that [[state of mind]] is also not {{Wiki|perfect}} and that [[subtle energy]] which companions this [[clear light]] is also imperfect because it is still not free from all the 55
 +
 +
[[defilements]]. So therefore that [[subtle energy]] is the actual direct [[cause]] for the next [[illusory body]], the imperfect [[illusory body]]. So since the [[cause]] is already not {{Wiki|perfect}}, the fruit, the result, that [[illusory body]], is also not {{Wiki|perfect}}. So that is why it is called imperfect [[illusory body]] which needs to be [[purified]] and ceased. So [[Rinpoche]] says these stages in the [[path]] of completion it is very vast and profound, very difficult for even to gain a real correct
  
[[name]] of these croadas, and then send out. But since we are still unprecise, unclear about their [[form]], so here we lead one by one all the details of each croadas. So the first croada which will go to the [[East]]. So these croadas they are with the three faces and six arms, except their colors are different, implements are different and they are crowned, all the [laudraphan] is different, all those on the [[East]] are with [[Vairocana]] and [[South]] are [[Ratnasambhava]] and on the [[West]] are with [[Amitaba]] and the [[North]] are with Amoghisiddhi. So before we take them in, first we [[concentrate]] on the first croada, that is Yamandati. So he is with a [[dark blue]] [[form]] and the blackful {{Wiki|color}}. The center face is black and the right white and the left [[red]], with six arms holding the stick and [[wheel]] and [[vajra]], and a lasso. So the left, the first is in the {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture holding a lasso at the {{Wiki|chest}}, and then a [[bell]] and an ax. Then we take in
+
and precise [[understanding]] and it is complete [[understanding]] is very difficult, even for, [[Je Rinpoche]] said even for himself who is supposed to be a [[Geshe]] and has gone through long studies and so on, but took about a year to gain a real, a year of study to gain some [[understanding]], correct [[understanding]] about the stage of completion. The [[stage of generation]], although they may seem so very complex and very complicated sometimes, however they are not very difficult to understand and also not that difficult really to practice. It is a {{Wiki|matter}} of [[effort]], some [[effort]] and [[patience]] and [[effort]] for the [[realization]] for the [[meditation]], otherwise they are not something really very difficult, something to [[visualize]] by your [[mind]] that houses the [[deities]], the [[forms]] and figures and so on, which are not so difficult. But these, in the stage of completion, where everything is to do with the most all the {{Wiki|subtle}} parts such as the [[subtle mind]], the [[subtle drop]], and [[subtle energy]] and so on. So therefore it is much more profound and much harder. However even to listen, to hear something about this is also a very good imprint. We have, as [[Je Rinpoche]] explained before in the [[stage of generation]], when we [[die]] then our [[consciousness]], our [[stream of consciousness]] takes, goes through the [[Bardo]], then into the next [[rebirth]] and so on, so it is that which continues from one [[life]] to another, from [[life]] to [[life]], from [[beginningless]] time. It is not the kind that grows, at this gross level of functioning [[mind]], but it is the most {{Wiki|subtle}}, most {{Wiki|subtle}}, what is called the [[clear light]] [[consciousness]]. The most [[subtle consciousness]] that which [[manifests]] at the end, at the last [[moment]] of our [[life]], it is that [[consciousness]] which is, it is the continuation of that [[consciousness]] which goes from one [[life]] to another. Together with the most [[subtle energy]] which is
  
backward, up to the [[heart]] then we recite his [[name]] Yamandati. Then as soon as you recite Yamandati, call its [[name]], then it goes out from ones {{Wiki|chest}} and sits there on that cushion on the Eastern, the blade. Then comes Sherapati which is in white [[form]], that is Prajadati and the central face is white, the right black and the left [[red]]. The first hand is holding [[vajra]], the second a stick with [[white color]] with a [[vajra]] top in the second right hand, and sword. The first left hand is in {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture holding a lasso at the {{Wiki|chest}}, then a [[bell]] and an ax. Then Phemadati comes in, up to our {{Wiki|chest}}, then when you say Phemadati comes in up to then it goes out and sits on the Southern spoke. Then Phemadati which is in [[red]] {{Wiki|color}} with the {{Wiki|crown}} of [[Amitaba]], with the [[red]] and black and white faces, first right hand is holding a [[lotus]] and a sword and this {{Wiki|rice}} [[chopper]], a stick; the first left hand is holding a [[bell]] and a very
+
[[inseparable]] with, sort of [[interdependent]] with, they are [[interdependent]] of each other, in support of each other. So these two, the union of these two, the [[subtle energy]] and the [[subtle consciousness]] which goes from one [[life]] to another, these two are the direct [[cause]], the actual [[cause]] of [[Buddha's]] [[mind]], the [[Dharmakaya]], [[Buddha's]] [[mind]] and [[Sambogakaya]] the [[body]], the [[energy]] produces the [[body]] of [[Sambogakaya]] and the [[subtle consciousness]] becomes changed into [[Buddha's]] [[omniscient]] [[mind]]. But to accomplish that [[state]], they have to go through lots of process of purifications and process of transformations. It is like {{Wiki|gold}}, they are like {{Wiki|gold}}, no one can make {{Wiki|gold}} like that, but {{Wiki|gold}} has to come from the [[earth]], the little {{Wiki|particles}} in the [[earth]] are collected which is {{Wiki|gold}}, they are collected and they are cleaned, refined and finally then it becomes a {{Wiki|gold}} which can be used for various, for making ornaments and so on. But has
  
graceful gesture and [[touching]] the [[bell]] here on the left side of the {{Wiki|abdomen}} here, then an ax and a lasso and collar. With the Phamadati send out and settle on the [[West]] spoke. Then Bhemadati which is black with Ammogasiddhi on the {{Wiki|crown}}, although it has a completely black [[body]] but its central face is [[dark blue]]. Then white on the right and [[red]] on the left, then the right hands are holding [[crossed vajra]] and [[wheel]] and stick to chop the {{Wiki|rice}} a pestle. Then the first left hand is holding a lasso with a {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture at the {{Wiki|chest}}, then a [[bell]] and an ax. We call him up into the {{Wiki|chest}}. Then with Bhemadati we send him out, settle down on the [[Northern]] spoke. Then Attila with [[Vairocana]] {{Wiki|crown}} black also, [[black face]] in the center and then white and [[red]]. The first hand is holding a sword then [[vajra]] and [[wheel]]. The first left hand is in {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture without any [[symbol]], without anything. Then an ax and a lasso. We take
+
its very {{Wiki|distinguished}} [[cause]], or origin, but in order to make real good use of it, it has to go through lots of process of refining and so on. In the same way this [[subtle consciousness]] and [[subtle energy]] it is the very [[cause]], the very {{Wiki|distinguished}} [[cause]] for the [[mind and body]]. However it has to go through the [[process of purification]]. Until the [[mind]] completely has eradicated this ordinary [[appearance]], [[clinging]] and [[grasping]] of [[inherent existence]], or [[self]] [[existence]], until then it is not free from kleshavarana, or the [[defilements]]. Therefore, they are called sache, that means [[defiled]]. {{Wiki|Defiled}} [[body]] it is still [[defiled]], that [[illusory body]] is also [[defiled]] [[body]], and the [[mind]] is also still [[defiled]]. So such [[defiled mind]] and [[defiled]] [[body]] cannot become immediately the perfected [[body]] of the [[Buddha]] and [[mind]]. So it still has to be ceased and [[transformed]]. Through certain practice of [[meditations]] which are called subsequent dissolution
  
him out through the {{Wiki|chest}}, and say Attila then go out, goes out and it settled down on the [[Southeast]] spoke. Then the next is Kamaraza that is a blue, blue {{Wiki|color}}, with [[Ratnasambhava]] on the {{Wiki|crown}}, and the black and white and [[red]] faces. The first two hands the right and left are in the [[hungkara]] gesture. So this gesture is the {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture and then the little fingers are crossed and the index fingers are raised. The second right hand holds [[vajra]] and sword then the left the lasso and hook. So this croada has [[duty]] to summon the interfering forces and this kind of work, so therefore when we [[visualize]] him in two hands, then he usually holds a hook and a lasso. And we again take him up to the {{Wiki|chest}}, then with Takaraza then we send him out and he settles down on the [[Southwest]] seat. After and Nilidanda then the Nilidanda, has turned into Nilidanda with [[Amitaba]] on top, blue {{Wiki|color}}, with 29
+
and the two [[states of samadhi]] and so on, applying those practices, then that [[illusory body]] then again goes through the process of dissolution. Finally then trough the [[clear light]] of the meaning of [[the fourth]] grade then one attains the [[direct realization]] of the [[shunyata]], and the in two parts. The first part is called, non-interrupted part [[meditation]], and the second is called the {{Wiki|liberated}} part of the [[meditation]]. So when we attain that next stage, the {{Wiki|liberated}} part, then we have gained direct full [[realization]] of [[shunyata]] and by this part then the dissolutions are ceased. So now this [[mind]] which is called the [[clear light]] of the meaning of [[the fourth]] grade because it has now eradicated the dissolutions it is called samiki-sam, that means non-defiled or [[transcendental]], or non-defiled [[state of mind]]. That is the [[moment]] where one attains the [[path of seeing]] in the [[tantric path]]. There are generally [[five stages]] in the [[path]]. The
  
 +
[[path of accumulation]], the [[path]] of preparation, [[path of seeing]], [[meditation]] and also that is the stage where one attains the [[path of seeing]]. In other words one becomes an aurea in the [[tantric path]]. At the end of this [[meditation]], at the beginning of the [[meditation]] one attains the [[path of seeing]], at the end of the [[meditation]] one already becomes an [[arhat]]. So then before we awake from this [[meditation]] of [[shunyata]], already one attains the union, yugananda. In general this work, this term yugananda is applied to 21 different things. Sometimes this is an implication of [[non-duality]]. Sometimes it is like a [[oneness]] of two different things, like one [[nature]] of two different aspects. Sometimes it is called just two different things just being together all the time or sometimes applied to two different things [[interdependent]]. So even for [[two truths]] are also called sometimes the union and so on. So there are many many different
 +
 +
meanings of the yugananda. But now here the yugananda, which one attains for the grade of the [[clear light]] of the meaning that is called Lopezou that means yugananda of the trainings. That means that one still hasn't completely finished the {{Wiki|training}}. So therefore this is still not completely {{Wiki|perfect}}. One has [[attained]] what is called the union of [[cessation]], of [[abandonment]], but not the union of fulfillment of all the qualities. These now, all these terms and so on they may be more confusing, all this new terms and so on. However, we should learn more precisely about this and [[Je Rinpoche]] is just now planting seed, that all he is doing.
 +
 +
When we [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]] and when first one attains the non-interrupted [[path]], then what is called the fully {{Wiki|liberated}} [[path]], and that is the actual [[state of mind]] which completely eradicates all the [[delusions]]. So the [[delusions]] are ceased so one has [[attained]] the [[cessation]] there, the [[cessation]] of the
 +
 +
[[delusions]] like the [[arhats]]. This [[cessation]] is together, is together with that [[clear light state]]. That [[clear light]] of the meaning. That [[clear light state]] of the [[mind]], so they are now sort of integrate. Therefore it is called [[yuganadha]], or the union. This is the union of the cessations. It is also called union of the [[cessation]], because here the [[delusions]] are ceased. This is also called the [[yuganadha]] of the {{Wiki|training}}. This means it has to be {{Wiki|perfect}}. So it is not the real complete union, because the complete union, the {{Wiki|perfect}} union is a union of [[body]] and [[mind]]. Here the [[body]] and [[mind]] are not completely, they are still, there is a [[duality]] of the [[body]] and [[mind]]. When that {{Wiki|subtle}}, [[clear light state]] of [[mind]], that [[clear light state]] of [[mind]] when it is in that [[meditation]], that [[absorption]] into the [[shunyata]], that is still, the [[illusory body]] has not, the [[pure illusory body]] has not created. So this [[clear light state]] from [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]] and ceasing all the [[delusions]], and finally the [[subtle energy]] which is the support of this [[clear light]] [[consciousness]] which has naturally the 5 {{Wiki|color}} [[rays of light]], that [[subtle energy]] then has...
 
   
 
   
[[Amitaba]] on the {{Wiki|crown}}, with a blue, white and [[red]] faces. So his [[name]] is Nilidanda, that means "Blue Stick" so his first hand is holding a blue stick with a [[vajra]] on top and then the second a [[vajra]] and [[wheel]]. The first left is in {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture holding a lasso at the {{Wiki|chest}}, then a [[lotus]] and Phemadati and ax. We take him up again to the {{Wiki|chest}} and with a Nilidanda we send him out to settle down on the [[Northeast]] spoke no [[Northwest]] spoke. Then Mahabhala is taken in with a blue {{Wiki|color}} with a blue, white and [[red]] face. The first right hand is holding a stick, black stick with [[vajra]] on the top then a [[vajra]] and [[wheel]]. The first left hand is the {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture with a lasso at the {{Wiki|chest}}, then a [[trident]] and an ax. And we take him up again and with the Mahabhala
 
we send him out and he settles down on the [[Northeast]] seat. Then next come Oshneshchakravati a blue {{Wiki|color}} with [[Akshobya]] {{Wiki|crown}}. The first two left and right hands are in the gesture of, on the head like this, then the rest, the right hands are holding a [[vajra]] and [[lotus]], and so in the left the {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture and sword. Then we take him up again with Oshneshchakravati we send him out and it goes up and settles down on that seat up there facing to us or facing to one’s [[self]], so that means facing [[West]] side. Then the next is Sumbaranza with [[Akshobya]] {{Wiki|crown}}, blue, white and [[red]] faces, no, with black, white and [[red]] faces, holding [[vajra]], [[wheel]] and [[wish fulfilling gem]], the first left holding a lasso in the {{Wiki|terrifying}} gesture at the {{Wiki|chest}}, then a [[lotus]] and sword. We take him up and with Sumbaranza we send him out. It descends to the lower seat. So this is slightly on the back side and it stands there facing the same
 
like ourself, to the [[East]]. The ten croadas are now complete. As soon as ten croadas are settled on their places, then the [[wheel]] starts to turn, and it starts to turn more and more speedily and [[fire]] sparks and flames start to come from the blades. So except for [[Akshobya]] in the center, all those croadas they are all in extreme [[wrathful form]] with {{Wiki|mouth}} wide open with very long cheeks and very powerful heavy [[body]] and also all the [[red]] hairs raising up into [[space]], all with also raising [[eyebrows]] and mustache, beard and so on. All with three [[eyes]], each face with three [[eyes]] wide open and all faces are very
 
  
[[wrathful]]. From the end of the [[eyebrows]] and from the hairs are flames coming, also with [[wrathful]] wrinkles on their face like wrinkles made above the {{Wiki|nose}} and so on. Also they are filling the whole [[space]] by the [[sound]] of their [[wrathful]] laughter. Also the expression of the faces are constantly changing, one from another, showing their fierce faces moving and also with a big belly. So very heavy [[body]], their belly sort of hanging down on their thighs and also very thick in limbs, the arms and so on. They are all adorned with [[precious]] [[jewel]] ornaments and {{Wiki|snakes}}, not [[bone ornaments]], and the {{Wiki|crown}} there is also a
 
  
{{Wiki|snake}} also in the earrings are {{Wiki|snakes}}, also the necklace of [[precious]] [[jewel]] ornaments and the {{Wiki|snake}}, anklets and bracelets are also {{Wiki|snakes}}, with [[tiger skin]] skirt and the belt is also {{Wiki|snake}}, with a shawl, a silken shawl on the [[upper body]], upper part of the [[body]]. All these {{Wiki|snakes}} are the ten great [[nagas]], lord and [[nagas]] in their respective {{Wiki|color}}. So from the pours of their [[body]] flames come out, [[fire]] comes out and they sit in the middle of the [[fire]]. So [[Akshobya]] when we send out it immediately multiplies and then performs various [[deeds]] of the [[Buddhas]]. The Mahacroada is not yet, they are still there [[standing]] and then their work comes later. So that is all for this morning.
 
 
   
 
   
Now we are in the [[form]] of [[Akshobya]] right in the center of the, in the center of the [[wheel]] with the ten Mahacroadas around and above and below us. So now the central [[Akshobya]] has given the order to the Sumbaranza which is at the bottom of the [[wheel]] to start the [[activities]] of the croadas. So the central
+
[...]
 +
...not the final union. So when we are on that grade, on that fourth grade, when that [[clear light]] [[consciousness]], that [[absorption]] of [[shunyata]], then that [[illusory body]] is not produced and is not functioning. When that [[person]] awakes from this [[absorption]], from this [[meditation]], then the [[subtle energy]] produces
  
[[Akshobya]] looks or stares at the Sumbaranza. So by this gaze at the Sumbaranza, then Sumbaranza sends a second [[form]], instead of leaving completely from its [[own]] seat, it sends a second [[form]] which comes in front of us, in front of [[Akshobya]], asking for his [[duty]]. So when we recite the following [[mantra]] [[OM]] SUMANTRI SUGANA SUGANA [[HUM]] etc., at that [[moment]] we are giving, the [[form]] of [[Akshobya]] is giving the order to the Sumbara. Sumbara Sumbara [[HUM]] means calling Sumbara, and GEHANA GEHANA GEHANA BYUA at this [[moment]] we are telling him to go and summon all the interfering forces. So catch them and bring them here, that is an order! So that Sumbaranza holds the [[vajra]] in his first right hand. So this [[vajra]] then changes into a vajrahook. So the Sumbaranza then uses this vajrahook in every [[direction]] and in the left hand he already has a lasso. So with these two [[weapons]] he brings all the interfering forces. All the interfering forces,  
+
this [[illusory body]], then again that [[clear light]] [[consciousness]] is again no more continuing. So they are successive, when the [[body]] is there that [[subtle consciousness]] has disappeared, or when the [[subtle consciousness]] is there the [[illusory body]] is not there, so there are still successive. So they are not in union, they are still not united. So they need to be still perfected. The [[illusory]], then that [[illusory body]] engages in various [[activities]] accumulating [[merit]] and in many different ways accumulating great [[merit]]. Also this [[illusory body]], the [[person]] in that [[illusory body]] [[meditates]], still continues to [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]]. When that [[illusory]], within that [[illusory body]], that [[illusory body]] sort of develops that dear {{Wiki|light}}, again going through the process of
 +
dissolution and so on and once again awake the [[clear light state]] of [[consciousness]]. Then it is these two, the [[body]] and the [[state of mind]] is called the actual yugananda, actual yugananda of the {{Wiki|training}} which is now the direct [[cause]] to obtain the final yugananda of the [[Buddha]]. Between that period and when one attains the union of the {{Wiki|training}}, until one attains the [[Buddhahood]] or the actual final yugananda or non-training yugananda, in between the two the [[practitioner]] has to engage in various [[activities]] which is called chirpa (Tib. [[spyod pa]]) or the various, that means like practices, various practices, various [[extraordinary]] practices. It can be done in very elaborate [[form]] or in very simple [[form]] which must be done. These various practices, the [[tantric practices]] engaged in such as, some of these practices are very odd practices or [[extraordinary]], abnormal practices, and also it includes practices in [[connection]] with the [[consort]] practices, in [[connection]] with even sometimes [[hunting]] and many other things like that, [[including]] lots of advanced practices, advanced [[practitioner]] who has [[attained]] all the full [[confidence]] and full {{Wiki|abilities}} of that stage, which is performed for about 18 months, and like this one engages in various practices like that which all help very much to give more power and strength in his [[meditation]], in his [[visualization]], in his [[meditation]] on [[shunyata]], also an [[accumulation of merit]] and so on. By this then that [[person]], that [[practitioner]], still [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]], continues the [[meditation]],  
  
namely the ten [[worldly]] interfering guardians. So they are caught from their [[heart]] and brought back. As [[Je Rinpoche]] explained the other day that for the [[worldly]] guardians of these [[directional guardians]], there is one kind which is beyond the ordinary level and that there is one [[wholesome]] type which is, [[wholesome]] [[worldly guardian]], and then [[unwholesome]] ones. The [[wholesome]] ones we have already made [[offerings]] and so on. Now the [[unwholesome]] interfering fifteen guardians are brought back by Sumbaranza and they are distributed to the Mahacroadas. So when these interfering ten guardians are sort of entrusted or given to the croadas, then in front on the ground in front of the croadas then appears what is called "hungkung" like a {{Wiki|prison}}, triangle shaped and in that all these interfering forces will be they will put the interfering forces in there. So there are in front of each of the Mahacroadas there is one such
+
continues to [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]]. Then again [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]], then his [[realization]] of [[shunyata]] is still perfecting and increasing and finally he attains what is called the vajra-like [[samadhi]], vajra-like [[meditation]] of [[shunyata]] and by this then even the most {{Wiki|subtle}} [[obstacle]] of [[jnana]]- [[avarana]], the imprint of the [[delusion]] is also completely eradicated. So until they are eradicated the [[meditation]] is called non-interrupted [[path]] and when all the imprints, {{Wiki|subtle}} imprints of the [[delusions]] are completely eradicated, when they are completely ceased, then one attains what is called the completely {{Wiki|liberated}} [[path]]. Simultaneously one has become a [[Buddha]], one becomes a [[Buddha]] or attains the actual yugananda. So that is the stages in the stage of  
  
triangle shaped {{Wiki|prison}} so eight of them around, then one in the [[East]] [[direction]], that is for the upper one and for the [[Western]] [[direction]], that is for the lower croada. So altogether there are ten prisons in which all the guardians, these [[worldly]] interfering guardians will be put, the ten guardians, [[principal]] guardians. So these ten [[principal]] interfering [[gods]] are put in those prisons and then there is a work for the croada in the [[Northern]] [[direction]] who is called the Benindati. So Benindati and Amitidakundalini are two different names of the same [[person]]. So this croada, the Benindati sends ten [[manifestations]] of his [[own]]. So his [[manifestation]], the upper part of his [[body]] is the actual [[body]] of the croada, with blue [[body]] and with blue, white and [[red]] faces and six arms, and the right hands are holding the [[double vajra]], [[wheel]] and [[lotus]] and in the left the lasso, the [[bell]] and ax. So upper part of the [[body]] is exactly as croada.  
+
completion. Now the way to proceed on this [[path]] of stages, one should first, [[mind]] must be fully cultivated through the practice of the common [[path]], by developing the [[Bodhichitta]]. On very good foundation of the common [[path]], sort of well developed in one's [[mind]], then one should receive [[initiation]], [[empowerment]] all [[four complete empowerments]] correctly. Not only just taking the [[four empowerments]], but keeping also the [[samayas]], the [[vows]], the [[vows]] of the [[Boddhisatvas]] and that of the [[tantra]]. One should also have a good [[understanding]], a correct and proper [[understanding]] of how to practice the actual [[path]], the [[path]] of the method, the actual [[meditation]] of the [[tantra]] whatever it is.  
  
Below the waist is no {{Wiki|legs}} and so on. Instead it is a weapon, vajradagger. So this hits right on the [[crown of the head]] of each of the [[worldly]] guardians and it will go straight through the center of the [[bodies]], this [[dagger]] the [[vajrakila]]. Then when this hits on the head of these guardians, then that Sumbaranza who had a hook before, this hook changes into vajrahammer. This [[vajra]] [[dagger]] is a very powerful and flames are coming from the top. Then this Sumbaranza hits with the vajrahammer on the top of these daggers, first starting from the [[East]] one time first the directional these daggers then from the [[Southeast]] then the semidirectional daggers, then one above and one below. So while this [[visualization]] we should recite the [[mantra]] Gate, gate and so on, this [[mantra]] we must recite and at that time the Sumbaranza is hammering on all those daggers. So this [[mantra]] can be recited ten times or three times or one time. If
 
  
one recites one time then during that {{Wiki|recitation}} that one {{Wiki|recitation}}, that work is complete, it's done. If one recites three times, then during first {{Wiki|recitation}} Sumbaraza hammers on those four directional daggers and then second time to the other [[directions]] and the third time on top and the bottom, that is three [[recitations]]. So if one recites ten times, this [[mantra]], then one [[mantra]] during each [[mantra]], then this hammering work is done on each of these daggers. So this act of the Sumbaranza [[nails]] all these interfering forces completely on 30
 
 
   
 
   
the ground, so they become motionless, so they cannot move any more. Just like if one [[nails]] an insect or something on a board, then it goes right through  
+
For example, Gurusamaja, one should have first good [[knowledge]], [[understanding]] of how to practice it. Then one practices the [[meditation]], intensively one practices the [[meditation]] of the [[stage of generation]], with the [[deities]] and [[mandalas]] and so on, until they become really so clear and vivid, [[visible]] and {{Wiki|tangible}}, until we attain a sign, that they are almost {{Wiki|tangible}} and [[visible]]. Then one should still {{Wiki|perfect}} one's [[practice of meditation]] and to enter into stage of completion, even if one cannot accomplish the stability, in the [[subtle stage]] of generation at least one must attain stability in the gross level of generation. If one accomplishes the [[subtle stage]] of generation, then there are many other sort of [[siddhis]] one can accomplish through this such as the
  
the insect and then it goes into the board and the {{Wiki|insects}} wouldn't be any more move. Something like that. These interfering forces will live, they don't [[die]]. We should not think that while the [[dagger]] goes into the [[body]] we should not think it gives a great [[pain]] and [[suffering]] to these interferences. Rather as it goes into them it gives them [[experience]] of great [[bliss]], more and more.
+
eight great [[siddhis]], or eight great common [[siddhis]]. If one accomplishes the gross [[stage of generation]], although one cannot attain the eight great [[siddhis]] and so on, however one obtains the full power, the right and power to engage in all the [[activities]] in the [[tantra]], [[peaceful]] [[prosperity]], powerful and [[wrathful]] [[activities]] of the [[tantra]]. Even if like ourself who still has great difficulty to accomplish in the gross level of [[stage of generation]], if we can make a complete [[retreat]], a long [[retreat]] of the [[deity]] then one still obtains many right or [[powers]] to engage in, to perform [[peaceful]] and other [[activities]]. If one, when one practices [[retreat]], not only does one practice {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]], but reciting the [[mantras]] but also try to [[meditate]] or [[visualize]] all this as much as one can. So this way if one can do the [[retreat]] very good if the complete or long [[retreat]] if it is very, if we don't have the possibility, then
+
 
...[[principal]] like the ten laws or the [[principal]], the interference, they are now controlled in this way and the rest of the interferences are the little interferences, they are completely burned away by the flames of the [[wheel]], of the spokes. So they are completely destroyed. So like this these spokes, the
+
what is called laroon, like laroon is something like permission, that is a short [[retreat]], to complete some of the [[mantras]] or like that. If one can do that, one still has the possibility to accomplish certain minor [[powers]] and minor, one gains the right or the power to engage in minor [[activities]]. One can then perform certain [[activities]], [[activities]] what is called pacifying or subduing, [[activities]] such as to subdue {{Wiki|disease}} to clear away {{Wiki|disease}}, to clear away interferences and also even influence all forces to exercise negative forces and to also to pacify {{Wiki|disease}} and things like this. In certain minor
  
weapon spokes of the [[wheel]] turns violently producing a circle of [[fire]] all around also these daggers burning and so on. So it is a very so that no interference can at all pass by. However, still we must this is called the [[extraordinary]] [[protection]] ground, [[protection]] fence. Now we must create the ordinary protections. So we recite three times TURGI [[HUM]] ZA. When we recite this TURGI [[HUM]] ZA the first time, outside this giant [[mandala]] this [[wheel]], outside there appears a [[vajra]] fence, a fence of various solid metal fence all around of [[vajra]] [[nature]]. Second time TURGI [[HUM]] ZA then outside that yard, that fence, then a [[protection]] of [[water element]] appears all around. It is like a big ocean all around. And third TURGI [[HUM]] ZA then a [[fire mandala]] or [[fire]] fence appears outside the [[water]]. At fourth TURGI [[HUM]] ZA then outside of the [[fire]] there appears a fence of [[air]] or [[wind]], very powerful strong [[wind]]. So this {{Wiki|iron}}
+
[[activities]], pacifying [[activities]] one can do it, when one has done properly the [[retreat]]. So that is what is called the [[peaceful]] [[activity]] or pacifying [[activity]]. Then one also can perform the [[prosperous]] [[activity]] or increasing [[activity]], that is [[to increase]] and [[life]], there are certain [[activities]] which we can perform for longevity, [[to increase]] our [[life]], also [[to increase]] the [[wealth]] and [[prosperity]]. Also [[to increase]] all the [[virtuous]] [[activities]], also [[to increase]] one's surroundings, one's surroundings and entourage and so on. There are many [[activities]] like that for increase. Also there are [[activities]] of the power,  
  
fence, called the [[vajra]] fence is not only fence but also from the top of the fence it also [[forms]] into like a {{Wiki|canopy}}. So it [[forms]] like a {{Wiki|canopy}} or like a dome on top made of the same material that is solid and [[indestructible]], and then under this {{Wiki|canopy}} just straight above the fence also appears [[vajra]] ceiling. Below on the ground appears [[letter]] [[HUM]] and this [[HUM]] changes into a [[vajra]] ground, [[indestructible vajra]] ground. So this ground, this ground this fence and they all become one solid piece. So the [[vajra]] ground reaches right to the bottom of the [[vajra]] fence and from the top of the [[vajra]] fence and it’s called [[vajra]] {{Wiki|canopy}} or [[vajra tent]] above it and just below the tent there is this ceiling. So inside this tent then no one can go, it's [[empty]]. This [[fire]] fence also should be [[visualized]] a whole wrapping of a [[fire]], all around, covering the whole this [[vajra]] [[protection]]. Outside the [[vajra]] [[protection]] this [[fire]]  
+
it's called power [[activities]], that is power, mostly dominating power, to dominate means, to dominate [[people]], to also to conquer, to dominate, certain [[powers]] to dominate, also [[wealth]]. Like these, there are many [[activities]] for conquering or for attracting, or attracting or conquering [[activities]]. Those can also be performed. Then there are lawful [[activities]], that is to destroy or subdue and to destroy all the [[unwholesome]] interferences, the negative interferences for the [[dharma]], for the [[sentient beings]] to destroy them completely. Of course to engage in those [[activities]] one cannot simply just do
  
covers the whole thing from top to bottom, everywhere, so it is like a big ball of [[fire]]. Also within that [[fire]] there are many [[weapons]], powerful [[weapons]] being shot inside so these arrows and spears and all kinds of [[weapons]] like that, they are shooting through the [[fire]], so that nobody can pass through. No [[space]] is left [[empty]] where someone can pass through the [[fire]]. These [[weapons]] are shooting from every [[direction]]. So that is the [[protection]] [[mandala]], complete [[protection]] [[mandala]]. We should [[meditate]] on this, we should [[visualize]] this [[protection]] [[mandala]] as very large, as large and spacy as one can, and one should [[meditate]] as precisely as one can. This is very helpful, it also helps us very much to {{Wiki|protect}} from various interferences. So after this then the [[blessing]] of the [[deities]] where one should [[visualize]] the white [[OM]] on the [[moon disc]] and [[red]] [[AH]] on the [[red lotus]], and a blue [[HUM]] on the {{Wiki|sun}} disc. They appear on the
+
anything what comes into one's [[mind]]. One must do them correctly, according to the actual right, according to the way. Each has a way to do, way to perform. There are certain [[rituals]], certain [[mantras]] and so on, which must be done correctly, with the correct [[motivation]], with the correct manner, but not just anything what comes into one's [[mind]]. If one makes a complete [[retreat]], a long [[retreat]], then also recite a great amount of [[mantras]] as prescribed, then also try to [[meditate]], practice [[stage of generation]], [[meditate]] on the [[stage of generation]] as much as one can, as clear as one can, 57
 +
 +
although one cannot accomplish it completely, but still to develop the clarity and the [[concentration]] in the [[meditation]], then one can accomplish those [[activities]] without much [[effort]]. There are a lot of [[activities]] and different [[siddhis]] one can obtain, one can accomplish through the [[stage of generation]]. All cannot be explained, this is just only an introduction. Now if someone is entering the [[path]] of the completion on the basis of the [[stage of generation]], then
  
three places the [[crown of the head]], neck and the [[heart]]. All the [[deities]] and the croadas and and every [[deities]] in the [[mandala]]. Now we again reach the point to where one must [[meditate]] on the [[shunyata]] and turn everything [[void]]. So one should recite this verse which says that there is no [[reality]], no [[meditator]], no [[meditation]], no [[object of meditation]], and so on. This is a verse from the [[root tantra]] of the [[Guhyasamaja]] we should recite this. So here we [[meditate]] on the [[subject]], [[object]] and the [[action]] everything [[void]] of [[inherent existence]]. Thus we [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]]. So before the creation of the [[mandala]] we [[meditated]] on [[shunyata]], at that time we [[meditated]] on the [[shunyata]] of the [[cause]], [[nature]] and fruit and here is the [[subject]], [[object]] and [[action]]. So which again it is the three goals of [[liberation]]. And with this [[meditation]] of [[shunyata]], then even this [[protection]] [[mandala]] and all these [[appearances]] dissolve again into [[emptiness]]
+
one should [[meditate]] on what is called the colorful drop. So one should first, all the [[deities]] in the [[stage of generation]], all the [[deities]] of the [[mandala]] are all absorbed like yesterday, they are all absorbed into us, the [[mandala]] and everything absorbs into us, then one also becomes [[empty]], then one remains in a simple [[form]], either in very simple one face two arms or with three faces six arms, in a simple [[form of the deity]] one remains. Now in order to practice
 +
the [[meditations]] for the stage of completion it is very important for us to know the actual [[nature]] of our [[body]] and the [[nature of our mind]] and then the [[nature]] of both. Also for that we need to know the gross, {{Wiki|subtle}} and the subtlest [[nature]] of our [[body]]. The same thing for the [[mind]], the gross, {{Wiki|subtle}} and [[subtlest mind]]. The same thing for the third, that is what is the common [[nature]] of [[body]] / [[mind]]. There are also gross, {{Wiki|subtle}} and subtlest. Just to explain
  
we should think. So we [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]] and all the [[appearance]] starting from the [[wind mandala]], then the [[fire mandala]], the [[wind mandala]] dissolves into the [[fire mandala]] and the [[water]] into the vajraground, and so on. That is also into the [[wheels]] and that also into the [[Akshobya]] and that [[Akshobya]] also dissolves completely stage by stage and dissolves and becomes totally [[empty]], and [[meditate]] on [[shunyata]]. Then we may [[wonder]], "Why that's quite silly because we have created all these with such a great problem and now we have just began to destroy them and so maybe now is a good chance for an interference to attack, to take revenge". If one [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]] one’s [[mind]] remains in [[shunyata]], no interference can strike back. So in the [[protection]], there are various types of protections, [[protection]] fence, all these kinds of protections. But the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[protection]], the most powerful [[protection]], is the
+
[[symbolically]] or explain very very briefly, the [[gross body]] means our real [[body]] with all these material, this [[physical body]] which consists of all the [[bones]] and flesh and {{Wiki|skin}} and so on. Then the [[subtle body]] that is all the {{Wiki|nervous system}}, all the [[nadi]] system inside the [[body]] and their contents, such as the [[energy]] and the fluid. The very {{Wiki|subtle}} levels of the [[energy]] which [[manifests]] at the time of [[death]] like when we, when our gross [[breath]] stops, after the end of
  
[[meditation]] on [[shunyata]]. So at the end of this also the [[meditation]] on [[shunyata]] at the beginning and end of every [[meditation]], so one who is [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]] can never be defeated or harmed by any interference. In [[Tibet]], in the {{Wiki|past}} [[in Tibet]] there was a [[cave]] where a very powerful [[evil spirit]], [[ghost]] or [[evil spirit]] dwelt. Once a [[monk]] went for [[pilgrimage]] and spent the night in that [[cave]], he couldn't find other place to [[sleep]]. So that [[evil spirit]] took that as a very good opportunity to harm this [[monk]], but that [[monk]] was [[meditating]] all the time, [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]]. So after the [[evil spirit]] challenged the [[monk]], the [[monk]] was a very good [[meditator]]. He [[meditated]] on [[shunyata]] and he just threw his [[vajra]] like this, and it hit one of the [[eyes]] of the [[spirit]]. The [[evil spirit]], each time when the [[monk]] was [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]], the [[evil spirit]] could not see, could not find the [[monk]] anywhere. When he awakes from the  
+
the gross respiration, then still the [[mind]] continues through the whitish, the reddish, the darkish and the [[clear light]], these four stage of [[experience]]. During that there is an [[energy]] which supports that [[mind]] which also gets subtler, subtler to the most {{Wiki|subtle}}. Those stages of the [[energy]] is called the subtlest [[body]]. This is a specialty for the stage of completion of the [[Guhyasamaja]] one must know first about all the basic, the [[nature]] of the basic [[phenomena]] such as the [[world]] and so on in which we live. Then about one's [[own]] [[body]], then how it [[exists]], then our [[inner body]], [[subtle body]], then subtlest
 +
[[body]], that is what is very important for the stage of completion in the [[Guhyasamaja tantra]]. In [[Chakrasamvara tantra]] it is [[taught]] in a different way, one must learn what is called navasta, that is means abiding the [[nadis]], and the moving [[energy]], and then the fluids. That is the [[nadis]], the [[energy]] and the fluid, one must learn those basis. In order to activate those [[nadis]] and the contents of the [[energy]] and the fluid and so on, then one must practice all the various exercises, or practices in [[connection]] with the [[energy]]. For example first for the, what is called the nine- fold respiratory practice, for that
  
[[meditation]] on [[shunyata]], then he becomes again [[visible]], he could see; like this, on and off like that, until he received that [[vajra]] on his [[eye]]. Then another story again some [[pilgrim]] spent the night in a [[cave]]. There also lived a very powerful [[evil spirit]] and when they received this [[pilgrim]] [[monk]] there, then they went to some other [[spirits]] to make a plot to kill to destroy this [[person]]. So when the two [[spirits]] reached the [[cave]] and the [[monk]] has already disappeared. Because the [[monk]] already entered into [[meditation]] by [[absorption]] of the [[shunyata]]. So therefore, they couldn't find him anywhere although he was still in that [[cave]]. The two [[spirits]] looked for the [[monk]] and "He used to be here a minute ago, was here, but where did he disappear", and they looked around in the [[cave]]. So one of these [[spirits]] is one who has already a lesson from one of the [[pilgrims]] and he said, "That kind of [[person]] is very [[dangerous]], that one who shows
+
practice there are six exercises. So there are various exercises in order to make the [[body]] and the nadies and so on supple, so that afterwards all the practices of these [[energy]] and [[relation]] to these energies and everything will go smoothly. So these are [[preparatory practices]], exercises. If one elaborated there are 20 exercises and in a very shortened [[form]] there are six major exercises such as filling the valley with [[air]], like a [[vase]], like a pot exercise. Then there is also the exercise, arrow like exercise where one stretches one's arms and then slowly one arm is taken under the armpit and then pressed like
  
and disappears and shows and disappears is a very [[dangerous]] kind". So he took his comrade and went away. So although all these protections have already dissolved, but we shouldn't {{Wiki|worry}} about interference if we [[meditate]] on the [[shunyata]] properly. So like in the process of taking [[rebirth]] first if we are going to take [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]], then we must have a place to take that [[rebirth]] and a place or [[world]] or place to take that [[rebirth]]. So in the same way first of all here we are now going to create, we are going to create again the [[vajra]] ground and then all the [[mandala]] and mansion and so on. While we are in the [[state]] of [[shunyata]] and our [[mind]] in union of [[shunyata]], [[bliss]] and [[voidness]], and that itself then creates that [[state of mind]] creates instantly again [[vajra]] ground, [[vajra]] fence, [[vajra]] {{Wiki|canopy}} and the ceiling and also [[fire]] outside and all these {{Wiki|environment}} is instantly created. So what is left out is this [[extraordinary]] [[protection]], this [[wheel]] of [[weapons]] as well as this 31
+
this and then again pushed forth and so on. There is one exercise like arrow-like exercises, then there are also exercises where one turns one's [[body]] around. So to turn one's [[body]] around, then also there are exercises what is called {{Wiki|dog}} vomiting exercise where one pretends like a {{Wiki|dog}} which is throwing-up and then sort of pushing all the [[air]] and everything downward. There are six exercises like that. They are mainly [[taught]] in the [[Chakrasamvara]] or in Hejava [[tantra]], they are explained in great detail. Since they are useful, helpful for all the practices they should be also in this practice.
 
   
 
   
[[water mandala]] and then this [[wind]]. Those three things are left out. Otherwise again the same thing comes into [[existence]]. In an instant, then [[vajra]] ground,  
+
In order to understand the [[nature]] of our [[body]] we must also know about [[nadis]] and the [[chakras]]. First we should know what is called the eight original [[nadis]] of the [[heart]]. It is called the original eight [[nadis]] of the [[heart]] because in the [[womb]] of the mother where the [[nadis]] first start from our [[heart level]], from there starts all the [[nadis]]. Then the [[nadis]] go, there are three [[principal]] [[nadis]], there is Oma, Roma, Tama and they go downward and upward. Also they develop
  
very very broad, very large, very vast and [[vajra]] fence and [[vajra tent]] and the ceiling and outside of that, then the whole [[wheel]] of [[fire]], everything is again appeared. Now inside this very broad [[vajra]] fence appears a very broad and very large and broad white triangle with three points. So something like that, this white triangle the lower end is [[touching]] the ground, then it is [[empty]] inside, [[standing]] up like this example. There are three different ways of  
+
into those different [[chakras]] and different places. Now for the [[highest]] [[chakra]] is in the [[crown of the head]] which has 32 branches. That is like the 2 [[nadis]] making a [[knot]] around the center [[nadi]], then there are 32 branches of [[nadi]] in the head. Then in the [[heart chakra]] there are 8 branches and first it is split into 4 branches. So there are 4 branches plus the actual central, and then the right and left, there are 7. Then on the side there is another [[nadi]] which is called Dultama that means free of [[impurity]]. That is another [[nadi]] from the side of those [[nadis]], those 3 [[nadis]], so that is 8 [[nadis]]. This Dultama [[nadi]] usually there is no [[energy]] going in it there is no fluid going in it. Only at the time of the [[death]] the [[energy]] goes in it, just once, otherwise in the whole [[life]] nothing runs in it. Not only itself contains no [[energy]] or nothing, it also [[causes]] the other [[nadis]], it also blocks the other [[nadis]] for [[energy]] to go through.  
 +
So the [[nadis]] are very very complex, so we need to know them precisely. The [[nadis]] have many branches, branches and so on and they come up through 72,000 [[nadis]] in our [[body]], our [[body]] has now. Although all these, the [[basis of all]] these [[nadis]] are within our [[body]], these are the {{Wiki|nerves}} of our [[body]], but when we [[meditate]] on them we [[visualize]] them slightly different from how they really are. There is a special {{Wiki|purpose}} in the [[meditation]], therefore they are [[visualized]] in a different way, all the [[chakras]] and so on which has a very important significance. There are 4 [[principal]] branches of the [[heart chakra]], first there are only 4 then after they split into 2, so makes 8 branches in the [[heart chakra]]. It is called the Hamachakra [[Center]]. From the 8 of these sub branches, then each one split into 3 so there are 24 sub branches. Now [[Rinpoche]] said that actually these [[nadis]] are a very complex thing which needs to be studied very
  
[[visualizing]] this triangle. One way of [[visualizing]] it is like this; counting the three points, two on the top and one at the bottom, sort of like three points this way and sort of makes a slightly longish sort of thing instead of making a completely triangle like this, it is like a long thing, flat thing. So there are two ways of [[visualizing]] them, either both are correct, and both are significant and these three points [[symbolize]] the [[three doors of liberation]], the three [[shunyata]], and its outer {{Wiki|color}} is white and interior is [[red]]. That [[symbolized]] [[bliss]] and [[voidness]]. So that means everything what is generated within that triangle, all has this [[essence]] of [[bliss]] and [[void]] and when we will [[visualize]] the inside there, when we will [[visualize]] the [[divine]] mansion, the mansion will start about half of the triangle and from there we will construct the mansion and the [[highest]] peak, the top, the roof of the  
+
precisely for many days. So it cannot be explained in great detail. However in the next [[chakra]], in the [[Sambogakaya]] [[chakra]], in the neck has 16 branches. First 4 then split in 2 then 8, then again 2, split into 16. In the head first again 4, then splitting in 2 is 8, then each of these 8 branches further splitting into 4, so it is 32 branches in the head. So the [[head chakra]] is called the [[chakra of great bliss]]. Now in the {{Wiki|navel}} which is called the [[chakra]] of the [[Nirmanakaya]] or the [[manifestation]] which has 4 first divided by 2 is 8, further divided by 2 then 16 branches, each of the 16 divided by 4 is 64. Now in
  
mansion will come just {{Wiki|equal}} to the top of the triangle, opening of the triangle. That is one way of [[visualizing]] the triangle in that way, as [[Rinpoche]] has shown. Then [[visualizing]] the mansion inside, something like a bridge, because when the point instead of like a pyramid upside down, if one [[visualizes]] like three pointed like a tube, then inside there to [[visualize]] the mansion it would then be like building a bridge inside. This is considered as incorrect way
+
the secret {{Wiki|organ}} which is called [[chakra]] of the bliss-holding, that is again first 4 then 8 then 16. It is very important for us to know the exact locations and how they are actually [[existing]] because we must in the [[meditation]], we must [[visualize]] when we actually penetrate all these different centers we must do it on the right spot. If we miss this spot and do it in the wrong place, then how much we make [[effort]] no result will occur.
 +
 +
Now about concerning the energies, there are 5 [[root]] energies and 5 branch secondary energies, so 10 energies. Each one has their [[own]] {{Wiki|color}}. They have different centers in the [[body]].  
 +
  
of [[visualizing]]. So we should put that aside. So that is the correct way of [[visualizing]] the triangle, so the lower point is [[touching]] the ground and it's very broad, very very broad, very spacious and there is very much [[space]] inside. Then about half of this triangle then we should [[visualize]] a [[lotus seat]], also very broad filling this whole interior of the triangle. So the [[lotus]] has something similar to this. The petals, then the pistil and the stamen, they
+
 +
Also they have different [[elements]], like there is the [[energy]] of the [[earth]], [[energy]] of the [[fire]], [[energy]] of the [[water]], [[energy]] of the [[wind]] and [[energy]] of the [[space]]. They also have different purposes, different functions in the [[body]]. We need to know them. Then further there are still about 50 different kind of energies which are [[taught]] in some other [[tantras]]. We need to know how those subdivisions of the energies which are [[taught]] in some other [[tantras]], how they
 +
 
 +
are actually included into those major ones. There are the 5 major [[root]] energies such as the life-holding [[energy]], downward-upward running [[energy]], raising [[energy]], running [[energy]], equalizing [[energy]] and all pervading energies. Then there are secondary ones which are the running [[energy]], the very running, the completely running, and so on there are quite a lot, 10 energies. Each one of those energies have different function in the [[body]]. Some runs in the [[eyes]] which helps us to see, some in the [[ears]] which helps us to hear, some to {{Wiki|smell}} and some to [[feel]], the [[sensations]] in the [[body]] and so on. So they have different places and different functions for us.
 +
 +
Now about the drops. The most primary drop which is called Sosen [[life]], ceasing of [[life]], holding the drop, it is also called...[...]...these are the first original like two, like {{Wiki|cells}} of the [[parents]], [[essence]] of the {{Wiki|cells}} of the [[parents]] which remains from that [[moment]] to the end of [[life]], together in the [[heart chakra]] in the [[central channel]] which is, the union of two drops which remains there until the end of our [[life]] and which supports the [[subtle energy]] and
  
all similar to that, but the actual [[lotus flower]] which grows in the pond, in the lake, has a very different, is quite different shaped than an ordinary [[flower]]. We should look at it. The central part is very solid, the central part is very solid, sort of [[yellow]] round, [[yellow]] solid thing like in the middle. In [[India]] in many lakes you can find the real [[lotus flower]]. So there are usually [[eight petals]] or sixteen petals or like that and the most central part is
+
[[subtle consciousness]], the [[subtle energy]], life-holding [[energy]] and [[subtle consciousness]]. That is the place for them. So these two drops are called the life-holding drops. This is about the size of a lentil, this drop about the size of a lentil. [[Rinpoche]] says that there are many different shapes and sizes of peas and lentils, so it is too general to say lentil, but not as big as a real pea. In the [[tantras]] they always say the size of a chana, so chana is sort of a small pea. So it is smaller than a [[green]] pea and it is larger than a [[mustard seed]], so in between the two. So we [[visualize]] this drop, the upper part white
  
the stamen, a solid [[yellow]] thing, which is flat with little things on top and is a solid piece. I think [[people]] also eat that. There is something inside. Then all around the stamen there are the pistils, something straining, slightly different [[yellow]] {{Wiki|color}}. Then the petals. So that is the kind of [[lotus]] which is [[visualized]] in here, much broader. So we should [[visualize]] this [[lotus]] and so on according to the size, according to our need, because later on it depends
+
and the lower part [[red]] [[symbolizing]] the two {{Wiki|cells}} of the pattern of the father cell and the mother cell, and these two are joined together and that is called the life-holding drop. So this drop is the original, the [[primordial]] drop, [[indestructible]] one it is called and from that, from the white part a second one is produced which goes up, as our [[body]] develops, it goes up through the [[central channel]] and it remains in the [[head center]]. This further multiplies in the [[head chakra]] and then produces the fluid in the [[body]] such as the seminal fluid. Then from the [[red]] part of the drop, then it produces the
  
very much how large one is going to [[visualize]] one’s [[own]] [[body]]. If one is going to [[visualize]] one’s [[body]] as ordinary [[human]] size, then we would need according to that we need a house which is big enough to fit us and to have also [[space]] for other [[deities]] and so on. So according to that we should [[visualize]] this size of the [[lotus]]. So our arm span, if we [[visualize]] a normal size of [[human body]] then it is four hand foot, that is which equals one arm span, that is  
+
second drop which goes downward through the [[central channel]] and abides in the [[navel chakra]]. This has the, it has the function to produce. The [[red]] aspect, the [[red]] fluid in the [[body]] such as {{Wiki|blood}} and also it has the function to product heat in the [[body]]. Actually there are drops everywhere in all the different [[chakras]], but those are some of the [[principal]] ones. Now the different centers are actually they are actually, at each center there are knots of the [[nadis]]. These two Dima and Tama these are completely tied at the central one, make a [[knot]] here. The most difficult [[knot]] which is most difficult to be loosened is  
  
called in the text is given one size of the door in the [[mandala]], and so for that if we are going to [[visualize]] our [[body]] about that size, then this central part of the [[lotus]] would be about eight doors, so eight arm spans large, straight from one end to the other end. So then because on top of this [[lotus]] we will [[visualize]] a cross [[vajra]]. So the central part of the cross [[vajra]], from one end to the other end, is 12 doors or 12 arm spans, and the prong has three,  
+
in the [[heart center]] where these two [[nadis]] each make three knots, so there are six knots and in the neck and in the other [[chakras]] each one makes one [[knot]] so there are two knots, two in the neck and two in the head, two in the {{Wiki|navel}} and two in the {{Wiki|sexual organs}}, so there are these knots. Because knots tie the inner the [[central channel]], that [[causes]] the [[central channel]], these branches to come out and develop from the [[central channel]], because it is {{Wiki|depressed}} and the [[energy]] cannot run through. So these two side [[nadis]] have completely made these knots, very tight knots around the central one, so no [[energy]] can run through. These two have made this [[central channel]] sort of without any function. In the roma which is on the right side of our [[body]], right side of our [[body]],  
  
each side three arm spans. So there is, then we adding a little more [[space]] so it is about 20 doors we need in the center. The petals about half arm span, length of half an arm span. Sixty such petals, 64 or 32 whichever one suits one’s [[mind]]. So from the beginning to have a complete a precise number of petals is rather difficult to [[visualize]], so if one just [[thinks]] that there are a lot of petals, that is sufficient. Generally for this kind of practice one should
+
right side of the [[central channel]], that [[nadi]] runs the [[red]] fluid, the {{Wiki|blood}} fluid. In the left which is called [[kyangma]], in that runs the white fluid. So those are the [[principal]] [[nadis]] which we use in our [[meditational]] [[tantra]], but otherwise our [[body]] is filled with [[nadis]]. Everything comes from the [[nadis]], even the [[hair]] grow out of the [[nadis]], even the {{Wiki|teeth}} also grow out of the [[nadis]], so everything is connected with [[nadis]]. Saliva in the {{Wiki|mouth}} also is connected with [[nadis]]. Everything in our [[body]] is in some way related or connected with a [[nadi]]. But those are not necessary, unnecessary, they are not useful to penetrate or [[meditate]], to activate. At the [[moment]] the [[energy]], the current, since it cannot enter into the [[central channel]], then it always runs through
  
receive the teachings as many times as possible. So because one time receiving a [[teaching]] one should not, this is not completely reliable, because the [[Master]] can also make some mistakes and [[translator]] can make lots of mistakes. Then of course the [[disciple]], when we hear we can mishear something, or misinterpret something, misunderstand somethings, so therefore it is not really sufficient to be taken completely seriously. So once there was a [[monk]] who
+
those two [[nadis]] and this gives rise to all the conceptions that we have in our [[mind]] now. Since this [[activity]] of the [[nadi]], and the [[energy]] and the drops, is very complex and a very vast field in itself so everything cannot be explained now. That is a very brief introduction and to explain in detail one has to go through also great contraries and so on, so one will have a real complete [[understanding]], a correct [[understanding]] of it. At the [[moment]] anyway there is no real great need because we are not going to immediately practice something very advanced. Even if we practice it is difficult to accomplish a result immediately, so this much will be enough. In all the [[tantras]], [[Guhyasamaja]], [[Yamantaka]] and so on, there is the, one should practice first the [[stage of generation]] as a preparation of the stage of completion and the practice of the [[essential]] thing in the stage of completion is to channelize the [[energy]] into the central [[nadi]]. So to channelize the [[energy]] in the right way one must first train one's [[mind]] to get control of the [[mind]], because [[mind]] and [[energy]] they are [[inseparable]]. They are always run through, where [[mind]] penetrates they are also, the [[energy]] also automatically, since they are so [[interdependent]], it also penetrates in that place, that location. So therefore [[mind]] needs to be channelized. [[Mind]] is the most important factor in us which has the [[characteristic]] of [[knowing]], or [[Wikipedia:Cognition|cognizing]], [[Wikipedia:Cognition|cognizing]] various [[objects]], whatever it comes in [[contact]] it immediately [[perceives]] or [[Wikipedia:Cognition|cognizes]] that [[object]] and it [[exists]] with a very
  
was quite innocent, not very {{Wiki|intelligent}} but full of [[devotion]], very [[faithful]] and also very hard worker. He went to receive some teachings from a [[guru]] who had no [[hair]] on his head, who was bald. So he asked for a [[guru yoga]] [[meditation]], so devoted to the [[guru]] and the [[guru]] told him, "You [[visualize]] me on your head and then the streams of {{Wiki|light}} coming from my [[body]] and purifying yourself'. You [[meditate]] on that. So actually [[Lama]] [[taught]] that if you [[visualize]] me on your
+
clear [[nature]]. But the [[mind]] has the [[characteristic]] of [[knowing]] various [[objects]], but it cannot run. It is like a [[person]] with very clear [[eyes]] but who is {{Wiki|crippled}}. This is just an analogy. One should not think that the [[mind]] also is sort of somebody like a {{Wiki|crippled}} [[person]], not something like that. It is just a [[symbol]], just a [[symbol]], like [[eyes]] can see, lot of things like that. [[Mind]] also can {{Wiki|perceive}} lots of [[objects]], however it is unable to run like a {{Wiki|crippled}} [[person]]. [[Energy]] is like a [[person]] with {{Wiki|legs}}, very strong {{Wiki|legs}}, and it can run here and there without any difficulty, but it has no, it cannot know anything. It runs all the time, but it is unable to know anything because it is not a [[consciousness]], or it is not a [[perception]]. It is like a [[blind]] [[person]] with {{Wiki|legs}}.
  
head, the [[Lama]] on his head, but he misunderstood and he took it to [[visualize]] himself on the head of the [[guru]]. So when he went back to his room and he started [[meditating]], tried to seat himself on the head of the [[guru]], since [[guru]] has no [[hair]] and a very smooth head, so he had a problem slipping over and falling down. Then he worked for a very long time and after he got really sort of fed up with the practice, then he went to the [[guru]] and said, ' ' I tried
+
If that [[person]] with {{Wiki|legs}} carries the {{Wiki|crippled}} on his back, then they can together can achieve their, their wish can be fulfilled. One will look and the other one will walk. In the same way the [[mind]] and the [[energy]] are [[interdependent]]. Therefore the [[energy]] is called the mount of the [[mind]] or the [[consciousness]]. Because wherever [[consciousness]] our [[mind]] runs, it always runs with the support of the [[energy]]. So they are [[inseparable]] and totally [[interdependent]]. Therefore, in order to channelize the [[energy]] into the [[right channel]], then we should [[concentrate]], our [[minds]] should [[concentrate]] on various spots and different spots in the [[nadis]], in the centers. That is why we need to know very precisely and correctly the actual locations of the centers and so on in order to penetrate very correctly, exactly on the spot. So when we [[concentrate]], our [[minds]] penetrated on the right in the right spot in these centers, then as our [[concentration]], [[mental]] 59
 +
 +
[[concentration]] develops the [[energy]] also penetrates automatically to that point and by this gradually then the [[energy]] will start to enter into the [[central channel]] and with that [[constant]] running in the [[central channel]] then gradually all these knots around it will loosen and become more and more open. If we
  
my best, but since you are so bald, then it is quite impossible for me to sit there". And [[Lama]] didn't want to [[shock]] him or disappoint him so he didn't say he was wrong, completely wrong. He said, "That's very good you have well done, but if you have faced such a difficulty, since because of my being bald, if you find it really uncomfortable to your [[mind]], now instead of that you [[visualize]] me on your head". So he did that and then it worded very well and not only
+
miss the point, the place, then even if how much we try it cannot help the [[energy]] go into the [[central channel]]. It is like, for example there are certain slaughterers, like slaughterers who are very trained and very used to his work, then can find certain very important {{Wiki|nerves}} or something. Just by pointing to that particular, even if the [[animal]] is very large, very big just cutting that particular {{Wiki|nerve}} or that maybe needling or something like that, it can immediately kill that [[animal]], although it is very big. A [[person]] who doesn't know about this spot in the [[animal]], then cuts it or whatever way they do it, then it takes a long time for the [[animal]] to [[die]]. In the same way, like that, we should find the right spot in our [[body]] and [[concentrate]] there in order for
that, he has [[attained]] a very [[great accomplishment]] from this and was very successful. So we should [[visualize]] the [[lotus]] according to size of our [[body]], for ordinary [[human body]], about the size of our [[own]] [[body]]. Then we need about 20 arm spans for the [[lotus]] and we should [[visualize]] all these petals endowed with [[five colors]], white, [[yellow]], [[red]], [[green]] and blue. Then again these colors are repeating, these petals. So there are many different colors, multiple colors.
 
  
The central part should be [[visualized]] [[green]] and the pistils around the central part are all [[yellow]]. Right in the center of the [[lotus]] we are going [[to build]] the mansion which is again 20 arm spans. It has 20 arm spans in length, square sort of foundation. So the wall we are going [[to build]] there is 20 arm span and the height is five arm span. So this foundation we shouldn't sort of think that we are, like this is a stage, like a foundation a square one right at
+
the [[energy]] to run into the [[central channel]]. So the actual knots which must be loosened, that is in the [[heart]], the most difficult and most important, to loosen that is in the [[heart center]], but if one begins, starts in that very spot it can be [[dangerous]]. Because if by penetrating here if the [[energy]] enters here in that spot it can agitate that original [[energy]], what is called the life-holding [[energy]] there, then a [[person]] can become completely crazy. Although our final aim is here, but by being [[skillful]] and [[wise]] approaching, then one first begins either from the top, from upward, from above or from below, penetrating first on other centers rather than immediately to this [[heart]] one. Through penetrating on those four other places and developing the
  
the center. So we shouldn't {{Wiki|worry}} about many trucks coming and bringing bricks in and cementing them and so on. This process is not necessary. You just [[visualize]] them in your [[mind]], so instantly they [[form]] such a steady one. A blue, a solid piece square sort of stage right in the center of the [[lotus]]. The width is 12 arm spans. The [[lotus]] is 20, this foundation is 12, and the height is 5 arm spans. So this is the foundation for the [[mandala]] and at the same
+
[[concentration]], then the [[energy]] starts to enter into the [[central channel]]. First it enters and then it abides. Abides means it just rests there, quietly rests there. And after it absorbs, when it absorbs then again, the similar process of dissolution, the [[experience]] of dissolution occurs. When the [[energy]] actually enters in the [[channel]] then there are various [[signs]] or [[experiences]] that one can, which occurs in our [[mind]], in us like a sign of entering, sign of abiding and sign of absorbing. [[Je Rinpoche]] says that now anyway we wouldn't be able to finish so it is better to stop here. Like there was, giving an example there was a [[person]], like very great comedian [[in Tibet]], we had Obutempa, so he when he was doing some work, like he was doing something in the  
  
time this is the center of the [[vajra]], blue crossvajra. So from each side, the head of the [[vajra]], the prongs of the [[vajra]] are coming out. About half of the prongs of the [[vajra]] are coming out of these walls, out of the wall. So these prongs have three arm spans in length coming out of this stage.
+
morning, it will not finished anyway, so let's just [[relax]]. So he [[relaxed]], then in the evening then again, it will not finish so there is no use to rush so let us [[relax]], so that's what we should do now. Obutempa was a [[person]] who was always like deceiving [[people]] and very mischievous, very mischievous, always telling lies and very mischievous and always telling lies and deceiving [[people]] and so on. He is a [[manifestation]] of [[Avalokiteshvara]], he was a [[manifestation]] of [[Avalokiteshvara]] to teach some [[intelligence]] to the stupid [[Tibetan people]]. When one begins to practice the stage of completion, first one should [[meditate]] on the what is called the multicolored point, or [[bindu]]. And for that instant of [[visualizing]] [[deities]] in many [[forms]], one keeps one's [[own]] [[body]] as the [[deity]],
  
 +
then as the [[deity]], then one first practices [[guru yoga]] as a preparation. For the practice of [[guru yoga]] one should [[visualize]] one's [[root guru]] in the [[form]] of [[Vajradhara]] in front of us, above in the [[space]] on [[lion throne]]. Then we invite Yanasatvas or [[deities]] from fields of the [[Buddha]], from abode of the [[Buddha]]. These invited [[Buddhas]] absorbed into the [[guru]], thus it becomes the [[embodiment]] of all the [[Buddhas]], then we make [[prostrations]] and all the seven [[pujas]]. We offer [[mandala]] to the [[guru]] then request for the [[blessing]] of the [[guru]] in general and in particular we ask his [[blessing]] to clear away all interference for one's practice of the stage of completion and interference of the [[nadis]] and one's [[nadis]] and energies and all such interference of the practice of
  
The prongs of the [[vajra]] reach just the end of the pistil. Then on each side there are two stairs going up from the ground of the [[lotus]], from the center of the [[lotus]], two stairs going up between the prongs of the [[vajra]], from each side. So the [[vajra]] is sort of coming out of the stage. So there are 16 steps to  
+
completion. After all the [[prayers]] the [[guru]] absorbs into, through the {{Wiki|crown}} of our head in ourself. The [[guru]], at the end the [[guru]] absorbs into us and integrates completely with our [[mind]] and after that we should practice the nine-fold exercise of the [[breathing]] as a [[purification]] of the [[nadis]]. So first we inhale through the left nostril, 3 times inhale through the left nostril and exhale from the right, and 3 times inhale from the right and exhale from the left and then 3 times inhale from both nostrils and exhale from both nostrils. That is 9-fold exercise of [[purification]] of the [[nadis]], combined with [[visualization]] of the [[nadis]]. So that is the [[nadis]], all 3 [[nadis]] have been completely cleared, completely [[purified]]. After that in order to channelize the
  
this stairs. So on this ground now, on top of this the [[mandala]] must be built so the actual mansion of the [[mandala]], the mansion is 8, the width is 8 arm spans; from inside, from one end to the other end of the wall is 8 arm spans or the 8 door size. The width of the wall itself it is one quarter of the door size, so that is one hand foot. The height of these walls are 13 arm spans. So the way how the mansion is made, there are four gates on each side. So first
+
[[energy]] into the central [[nadi]] we should [[concentrate]] at the lower end of the central [[nadi]]. We [[concentrate]] there at that place on a very minor little point, like a drop, which is about the size of a [[mustard seed]] or a little {{Wiki|syllable}} or implement of the [[deity]] of that size. One can practice this kind of [[meditation]] early in the morning, but especially a convenient time is onachildra, in the evening. We are in the [[form of the deity]] embracing, in union with the [[consort]], the place of this [[visualization]] is at the junction of the two {{Wiki|organs}}. Now we should [[visualize]] this point at the meeting of the two [[nadis]]. The [[nadis]] of the [[deity]] and the [[consort]] lower two ends of the [[nadi]], they meet in the [[lotus]] of the [[consort]], and at the very end at the junction of the two [[nadis]]
  
from this corner is a wall and then when it reaches to the entrance, then the wall goes out in front, the walls come like that and then it goes like this to sort of a doorway, corridor. This corridor isn't very long and then again it goes the wall comes like that and goes like this and again it goes out, about one arm span. Then again it goes in front about one half arm span. So it is like when from inside the [[mandala]], beginning from [[Rinpoche's]] side so the  
+
in that [[space]] inside then one should [[visualize]] this little point with...to be precise then [[visualizing]] inside a little [[moon disc]] with the implement or without the implement, with the {{Wiki|syllable}} or without the {{Wiki|syllable}}, this depends on what kind of [[tantra]] or [[meditation]] you are practicing. It is slightly different from one [[tantra]] to another. One should practice this kind of single pointed [[concentration]] for a long time. Then after some time then the [[energy]] starts to enter from the lower end of the [[nadi]]. The first sign of the entering of the [[energy]] in the [[nadi]] is that one's respiration from the two nostrils when one is [[meditating]], one's respiration from the two nostrils they become completely {{Wiki|equal}}, balanced, with same strength, same force. Usually the average
  
wall and then there is the wall of the corridor which is one arm span, then again it goes that way to the right, then one arm span then again it comes in front half arm span. The same from the other side and just at the end of the corridor is the actual door, door of the entrance to the mansion. So therefore, there is a little outside the corridor, foyer. So the same thing in each [[direction]]. In each [[direction]] there is the door and this little
+
respiration in a day of a normal [[person]] is 21,600 breaths or respiration in a day. Usually these different energies go out and in, such as the five [[principal]] energies. They are also called the five lower (or lord) energies then four [[consort]] energies, that many different energies like this, they go out at different times. So depending on these different types of energies then sometimes it is stronger in the right, sometimes stronger in the left, sometimes it is sort of {{Wiki|equal}} from both nostrils. So if one checks very precisely there is always some difference. There is usually when we are not {{Wiki|aware}} of our respiration and we are not making any use of these, so therefore we don't notice anything and we are not {{Wiki|aware}} of all these differences. But actually there  
  
corridor, then there is the, first there is the entrance, then is the little corridor then there comes the door and then the wall that goes like that which [[forms]] the outside a little stage. So outside there, on top of that [[space]] there, there is what is called thubub. Thubub, that is how do you call this when old, the {{Wiki|Greek}} or {{Wiki|Roman}} house they have this thing in front the pillars. There are two pillars. On each there are two pillars here and two pillars there,  
+
are very precise differences, even when the [[breath]] comes out one nostril sometimes it comes from one corner, sometimes from the right corner, sometimes from the left corner, sometimes from the front coroner. There it comes in a different way and so there are such things, what is reporting there are like 12 great ways of respiration. This respiration from the {{Wiki|nose}} is called nobukipa, respiration from the nostrils. So the respiration from the {{Wiki|nose}} is {{Wiki|tangible}}, from one to another, always like that and also the respiration, the [[energy]] going into the different [[channels]] inside and the different branches of [[nadis]] are also varied to sometimes on branch and sometimes another branch and it is never {{Wiki|equal}}. When one actually begins the practice of...ices with the [[energy]],  
  
and they are coming out of a [[vase]]. There is a big [[vase]] and then out of the [[vase]] is coming this pillar on two sides, two pillars here and two pillars there which supports that thing on top, this portico thing. This portico has a particular shape like that and so the pillars are together with the [[vase]] is five arm spans in height. So these two pillars here are connected by a beam and also on the other side. Then there are two beams from these two pillars, from
+
then one comes to realize all these differences. Now we have no, at the {{Wiki|present}} we have no control of our respiration. However still if we check, if we check very precisely, analyze the respiration, one will gradually be able to notice the difference. For example, this respiration is also related, corresponds also to the [[lunar cycle]] of the [[moon]]. Beginning from the first day of the [[lunar month]] for 3 days the [[breath]] or the respiration is stronger in the right nostril, and from there it changes, it begins changes to the left. Then there are such things, back and forth it changes which occurs in certain periods. 60
 +
 +
When this kind of changes doesn't take place in the right time, there is something going wrong in us and when we know these kind of differences very well we will even be able to foresee our [[own]] [[death]] for example. Just the exercise with the respirations, with all these different exercises, with the respiration itself is not a very [[great practice]]. It is also not a very difficult and is not some, to hold the [[breath]] and so on is not one of the most
  
the other two pillars which have in between with 16 arm spans. So on top of these, now these, this front of these beams, these long beams there are two stages which are called seranum, made of {{Wiki|gold}}, a little sort of support. Then on top of this square, this piece made of {{Wiki|gold}} then there is a sherbu which is slightly longer than this one, not completely square which is blue in {{Wiki|color}}, it is called sherbu. Then on top of that there is the [[precious]] called
+
important practices. Therefore usually the [[lamas]] [[in Tibet]] will not sort of go into that kind of, are not carried away by this kind of respiratory exercises before the [[stage of generation]]. It is left in the stage of completion, and one practices first the [[stage of generation]], because without this [[stage of generation]], even if one just begins some exercises and [[masters]] these exercises it will, to hold the [[breath]] for a long time and so on, but there is not great {{Wiki|purpose}}, there is no great use of it. Just exercises, just exercise, but there is no great use of it. That is why that [[lamas]] do not recommend to practice these kind of things before anything else, because when we have, if we have [[life]] preparation and practice the [[stage of generation]] and then apply these exercises then it can be used for a very important {{Wiki|purpose}}. Otherwise just holding the [[breath]] in the {{Wiki|abdomen}} is not a very big thing. It is just like a bellow. Also when in the stage of completion, when one begin these exercises with the lung or respirations, then it is very important to do it very
  
[[Rinpoche]]. So this is [[red]] piece which is slightly longer than the other. On top of that is sthumi which is severone. So that is a black {{Wiki|color}} which has like a design of a [[horse]] shoe. On top of that are two little pillars, just one and a half hand foot is that height. On top of that comes the veranda which is slightly longer and on top of that again two little pillars. So on top of that then comes another sherbu which then goes from one end to the other end
+
correctly, very exactly, also with the right position, like sitting in the [[Vairochana]] position first to receive the [[initiation]] and all the [[blessings]], then sitting in the right position is always very important. If one sits in the right position, upright position, and the [[Vairochana]] position with the 7 qualities, then all the [[nadis]] inside the [[body]], then they also will remain in a proper position how they should be without bending, and without being crooked, without bending or anything like that. By this then all the [[energy]] and all the current which goes through these [[nadis]] will flow very free...
 +
 +
[...]
 +
...has received the 6 practices of [[Naropa]], from the great [[Indian master]] [[Naropa]], and there the most important practice is [[tummo]], the practice of the heat practice. The [[tummo]] heat practice and {{Wiki|aware}} first of all exercises and the position of the [[body]] is very strictly sort of emphasized. Therefore sometimes [[guru]] [[master]] [[Marpa]] was sort of sometimes boasting and saying that all these [[Tibetan]] [[meditators]] or [[Tibetan]] [[yogis]], even their [[great realization]], whatever they
  
which connects the whole thing. So that is a long sherbu. On top of that is a [[Rinpoche]] which is put on top of sherbu. They are a different {{Wiki|color}}, they are same length and they all have 18 hand foot and they are all, then there is sthumi with, again that thing with a horseshoe on it, but this time is a very long one, the same length, also with 18 hand foot. So there are three, like three stages. Then on top of that is a dayup which is slightly shorter, only 10
+
achieved, cannot be compared even with just my way of sitting. My way of sitting is enough just to excel. All the great realizations of the [[Tibetan masters]] of that time have they gained. Therefore this shows that the position of the [[body]] is very important. One time when the [[fully enlightened Buddha]] was still living there was a [[monk]] who was always in [[meditation]] in practicing [[samadhi]], with a very {{Wiki|perfect}} position of the [[body]], very upright and every part of the position all very correct. When he was always sitting under a [[tree]], always in this position, a monkey on that [[tree]] always [[seeing]] this, sometimes he also sort of imitated the position of the [[monk]] and he did this a few times and so his position also became very correct and by this it gave him, he [[attained]] a very high [[samadhi]] by just sitting in this very proper position. But sometimes an [[exceptional]]- thing takes place where certain, there are some [[people]], some [[exceptional]] [[people]], when they sit in the right position, the [[Vairochana]] position, it never works, the [[meditation]] never works and never works, because of certain abnormal or somewhat different thing in his [[own]] [[body]] and for such [[person]] then different positions must be tried. There was a [[monk]] at the time of the [[Buddha]] and in his previous [[life]] he has swore, has shouted at, to an older, to one of his [[masters]], saying that you are like a {{Wiki|cow}}, never finishing, you
  
hand foot, right in the middle. In the center of that on top there is the [[wheel of dharma]] and the two deers. So all these [[forms]], zig [[zag]] sort of [[form]] from outside, first there is coming out, then a little bit goes in, little bit goes in, then two little pillars then it starts to come out again, then go in. Then with this [[wheel]] and the deers on top. Altogether when it is all completed it looks very beautiful from outside. So the pillars are, the long pillars
+
are mean or something like that out of [[hatred]], he said something like this. Then so that [[person]], the [[object]] of his critic was a very [[realized master]], a [[monk]], so by this then this [[person]] has [[accumulated]] very [[unwholesome karma]] which actually the strength to take [[rebirth]] in [[hell realms]]. But that [[person]] after doing repentance has asked [[forgiveness]] and confessed very strongly, and by this he has changing his [[destiny]], he has taken 500 times [[rebirth]] of a {{Wiki|cow}}. After ceasing this [[karma]], this [[unwholesome karma]], after 500 [[rebirths]] as a {{Wiki|cow}}, then he has taken [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]], but still somewhat similar, still somewhat in common with a {{Wiki|cow}}. Also his inner {{Wiki|biological}}, things inside, all these things are somewhat, very similar to the {{Wiki|cow}} and when he ate something but then after it comes back and he can chew it again, chew the cud. Also his facial [[appearance]] also is not very agreeable. It is a little bit more like an [[animal]]. He has this thing hanging, the cows have this thing here, this {{Wiki|skin}}, this fold hanging under the {{Wiki|throat}}. So he tried to practice [[meditation]] sitting in the [[Vairocana]] position for a very long time, but no any [[samadhis]] were [[attained]]. [[Buddha]] [[seeing]] this particular [[karma]] of this [[monk]] then instructed him to change his position, to sit like a {{Wiki|cow}}, exactly like a {{Wiki|cow}}, to sit on four {{Wiki|legs}} like this with head down and he did that and [[meditated]] in that position and
  
which support the whole thing has five arm spans so it is high enough so when someone goes and comes there is still some [[space]] left above. One doesn't bump into it. Then all around this thing above the door there are many ornaments, decorations, banners like these and then also many [[precious]] ornaments are hanging from there which make it very very beautiful to look at from outside. So the wall of the mansion is one hand foot but within there there are five
+
[[attained]] [[samadhi]] very soon. And [[attained]] the [[arhat]] stage in that very [[life]]. So like that there are certain [[exceptional]] [[beings]] like that with a slightly different system in the [[body]] because of their [[own]] particular [[karmas]]. However, for the general, generally then for a normal [[person]] then this position, [[Vairochana]] position is the best for the [[practice of meditation]]. In order to practice the [[meditation]] like that it is very helpful for us to know how these, all this about the [[chakras]] and [[nadis]] and everything what our [[body]] contains, to have a good [[knowledge]] of this is very helpful. So when the [[energy]] enters in the [[central channel]] then the [[meditator]], [[practitioner]] will realize this equalization of the, to the respiration from his two nostrils. So this happens whenever he [[meditates]], whenever he [[concentrates]] on the points then this happens. Of course when he wakes from [[meditation]] then again it changes. But as soon as he [[meditates]] then his respirations becomes {{Wiki|equal}}. Then still one must continue to practice the [[meditation]], [[concentrate]] on the point, on that {{Wiki|subtle}} point. Then the respiration will begin to, the [[energy]] will begin to abide, not only enter, but abide in the [[central channel]], and when that happens then the outer respirations, the [[breath]] will stop. One is sitting, one can sit very still, very awake, very still, but without this outer respiration. One should
  
layers with five different colors. So from outside the first layer is white, then inside that is [[yellow]], then inside that is [[red]], then [[green]], then blue. So altogether then the width is one hand foot, a quarter of a door size. So from outside if one looks outside there is a white wall, but actually it is something quite transparent, so you can also see the other colors through. If you look from inside it is bluish because of the first layer from inside is
+
still continue to [[meditate]], to [[concentrate]] until this abiding [[energy]] completely absorbs into the [[central channel]]. So when the [[energy]] begins to absorb into the [[central channel]], then all these [[experiences]] which, [[experiences]] of the process of dissolution again occur, like the dissolution of [[earth]] into [[water]], [[water]] into [[fire]], [[fire]] into the [[wind]], [[wind]] into the [[consciousness]], then the first is what is called [[appearance]], when we [[experience]] this whitish, then the near increase, that is the reddish [[appearance]], then near [[attainment]], or close [[attainment]], that is the darkish then [[clear light]]. All these stages of [[experience]] will occur. As this process of dissolution takes place then the [[meditator]] [[experiences]] exactly the same inner [[experience]]; the smoke-like
  
blue. Blue, [[green]], [[red]], [[yellow]] and white. From outside, white, [[yellow]], [[red]], [[green]] and blue. Now outside the wall just all around the wall, what is called nambu that is a little stage which is joined to the wall, a stage which is two hand foot height and two hand foot where someone can take rest or can just sit there on that stage, it's a little stage which goes all around the, except for the doors, it goes all around the wall. Also the height is two hand foot
+
[[experience]], mirage-like [[experience]], smoke-like [[experience]], then spark-like [[experience]], then dim-light [[experience]], sort of dim-light without any {{Wiki|motion}}, and after that then the whitish, then reddish, this darkish then [[empty]] very clear [[space]], all will be [[experienced]]. But when the [[practitioner]] wakes from his [[meditation]] then again he starts to [[breathe]]. During his [[meditation]], from the outside it is like a [[dead person]], although he is not sort of collapsed, but is sort of sitting in the [[meditation]] position, very correct position 61
 +
 +
although without [[breath]] so it is like a [[dead person]]. But of course there is no, the [[body]] still remains warm all the living aspects of the [[body]] will not perish. So first the, all the energies will all not enter, abide and absorb at once, simultaneously, little by little. So therefore, this first [[signs]] of dissolution they are not so clear, they are not so clear. This is of course a [[person]] who has practiced the [[stage of generation]] and now from there moving to the stage of completion, then this practice of the [[concentration]] on that {{Wiki|subtle}} point and this sort of helping then the inner sign, outer sign occurs. But
 +
this kind of practice can even be practiced before the [[stage of generation]]. Even without [[Bodhichitta]] and the proper motivations, the proper foundations, just practicing these [[techniques]] of the [[meditation]] and the [[concentration of the mind]] and so on, [[skillful]] [[people]] can still achieve some similar result like that. For example, stopping of the actual respirations and so on. Even if the [[energy]] does not really enter into the [[central channel]], but when the [[energy]] is sort of channelized in that [[direction]] on the outside, but not really in the right way, but still in that [[direction]] and {{Wiki|concentrating}} on those particular locations, area, that already can [[cause]] certain [[experiences]], not exact the same but similar ones. So when the [[energy]] is not correctly channelized, if when the [[energy]] enters not really inside the [[channel]] but around the [[central channel]], then these [[experiences]] of [[fire]], [[water]] and so on, similar [[experience]] occurs, but without any order, not in the successive, in the correct order, but sometimes some [[experiences]] come before and completely in the wrong order. So this kind of practice has no real great fruit, no real [[benefit]]. Also, even the [[tummo]], heat of the [[tummo]] can also be ordinary [[tummo]], what is called ordinary heat can be generated, stimulated through [[practice of concentration]], penetrating [[mind]] in that area when one is very deeply [[concentrated]] and when the [[energy]] is  
 +
sort of [[gathered]] around there, not really into the [[central channel]], but [[gathered]] around there, this can [[cause]] the heat [[to increase]], but still not exactly the same as how the real [[tummo]], the {{Wiki|subtle}} [[tummo]], but ordinary gross [[tummo]] can be activated. This kind of ordinary heat, or [[tummo]], is something which generates rather easily and it also can be felt quite obviously from the level of the {{Wiki|navel}}, the heat starts [[to increase]] rather rapidly. The real awaking of the [[tummo]] heat from inside the [[channel]] it comes very slowly and something very {{Wiki|subtle}}, from first it's almost one can't [[feel]] really anything and it begins with a very {{Wiki|subtle}} {{Wiki|subtle}} heat and very fine one, deep from inside. There are quite a few [[people]] [[in Tibet]] who have generated the ordinary [[tummo]] heat and from outside they look quite fantastic because they can sit in a very cold weather or freezing cold weather, they can sit on the rooftop and only
  
and the width also. So as the corridor wall is one arm span or four hand foots, but from the outside it is two arm spans this corridor, the width of the corridor is two hand foot. It is because that wall has one hand foot, so there are two wall comes. There is the inner wall and then there is an outer wall so the [[space]] left in between from outside is only two hand foot for the corridor. So this little stage which goes around the wall it starts right from
+
wearing a little piece of cloth and still sort of sweating and so on, this kind they can perform this kind of [[powers]]. This kind of [[achievement]] or this kind of practice has no real great [[benefit]]. It does not help us to develop [[Bodhichitta]], it does not help us to even in the [[tantra]] it is not a real result of the practice, not the [[desired]] result of the practice. So it cannot help the [[mind]] to overcome the [[delusions]] and so on. It is just the heat, that is just the warmth of the [[body]], just like sitting by the fireside. It is only maybe to impress some [[people]], besides that there is very little [[benefit]]. There is nothing to carry in the {{Wiki|future}} [[life]]. So that is why most of the [[Wikipedia:Authenticity|authentic]] [[masters]] [[in Tibet]], they do not encourage the [[disciples]] immediately to engage in all these [[techniques]] of [[meditation]] with the [[tummo]] and [[air]] and [[wind]] and this and that, because this can instead of giving a real help to what is needed, just misleads
  
outside of the corridor, it connects to the corridor from outside, the wall of the corridor from outside. From one corridor to the other corridor, then like this in each [[direction]] on each corner it goes around the corner. That little stage is nambu is in [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. So on that stage there are the [[offering goddesses]] [[standing]] there and making [[offerings]] and [[dancing]] and so on which can be seen very clearly from inside because the wall is transparent. So actually
+
the [[people]] and let the [[people]] spend, waste their whole [[life]] on fantasies like that. That is why it is not encouraged or not popular. When [[tummo]], if we understand correctly how the [[energy]] enters and which way its is channelized into the central [[nadi]] and how it enters and when it enters what kind of [[signs]] occur and how it abides and how it absorbs and then how this can generate the real, the {{Wiki|subtle}} heat then by increasing the heat through the [[central channel]] how this [[causes]] the melting of the [[Bodhichitta]] or the [[blissful]] fruit from the center in the head and how then this, when this pours through the [[central channel]] and then what a [[blissful]] [[sensation]], the different stages of [[bliss]], how we [[experience]] and how this then helps the [[mind]] to realize [[shunyata]] and so on. If we understand the [[path]] correctly then there is no [[danger]] of misconceptions and misunderstandings, and even if we cannot put into practice right
  
when one should learn this [[mandala]] thing should be [[taught]] while one builds a three dimensional [[mandala]]. The three dimensional [[mandala]], while we are building, then one learns it, one learns very correctly. But there is no time now [[to build]] the [[mandala]] and everything. However, this would give some rough [[idea]] about how the [[mandala]] is and if one wishes then one should look a three dimensional [[mandala]], those who might have seen it in [[Dharmsala]] in the Library
+
away, all these [[stages of meditation]], then if one prepares in right way from now, with all the necessary preparations, the [[development]] of [[Bodhichitta]], [[meditation]] on the [[deity]], and practice of the [[guru yoga]], and [[meditation]] on the [[deity]], [[stage of generation]] and so on. If one proceeds in the right way from now, even though we don't reach to that [[state]] in this [[lifetime]], still one is on the right way. And even if one does not accomplish in this [[lifetime]] as a result of one's preparation in this [[lifetime]], definitely in the {{Wiki|future}}, in the next [[life]], one will encounter with all the right circumstances, all the [[masters]] and every possibility and our progress, real [[spiritual]] progress will go on in a correct way, without any mistake and without any waste of time. So when the respiration stops, external expiration stops and the energies have absorbed in the [[central channel]], then we should still observe if our, if our
  
and made one, also in [[tantric colleges]]. However, [[Je Rinpoche]] said they are done quite simple and so it is quite important for a [[practitioner of tantra]] to learn about the details of the [[mandala]] and how they are made. So the wall is thirteen hand foot high and plus, then on top of that there is one hand foot sherbu on top of the wall. Pagu has one hand foot on top of the wall. So this Pagu which has one hand foot in height is right on top. It goes all around on
+
belly is moving. If the belly, although the respiration has completely stopped, but if the belly is slightly still moving, then that is a sign that the [[energy]] has not entered at all in the [[central channel]]. When [[energy]] really enters into the [[central channel]] and abides there, then not only the [[outer breath]] stops but also this {{Wiki|movement}} of the belly, the [[rising]] and falling stops. This is [[caused]] by [[wind]], [[air]], by [[energy]]. In the [[tranquil]] abiding, the ordinary [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] like even in the non-tantric [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] when one practices some other [[meditation]] and tries to fix the [[mind]], the fixation of the [[mind]], then when there again some misleading [[experiences]]. When the [[distraction]], this very wide, this [[distraction]], wideness of the [[mind]] sort of comes slightly, comes down, then the [[mind]] becomes [[very peaceful]] and sort of [[pleasant]] and [[relaxed]]. But because of this [[relaxation]] of the [[mind]], and
  
top of the wall, but it comes out a little bit, is a bit larger than the wall so it comes out a little bit from the wall. So this Pagu in the [[red]] {{Wiki|color}} and from outside on that many golden decorations are placed on this [[red]] rim. On top of that Pagu then there are what is called four [[bells]], four golden [[bells]], so again like a golden frame, very flat and very thin {{Wiki|gold}} layer is put on, four layers of the {{Wiki|gold}} is put on and these are supported by beams, some beams
+
sort of little [[concentration of the mind]], then what is called {{Wiki|subtle}} [[dullness]] of the [[mind]]. The {{Wiki|subtle}} [[dullness]] of the [[mind]] occurs in the [[meditation]] which is in fact a kind of [[hindrance]]. But there are [[people]] who are misled by this kind of [[experience]] and this kind of {{Wiki|subtle}} [[dullness]] is very relaxing, so comfortable, like a floating [[experience]] and one is very comfortable, and one [[concentrates]] not very badly, so not agitated. So one [[thinks]] this is a very high [[samadhi]] or some kind of very high [[state of samadhi]] and they just go on with this for days, for a day or two like that and with this kind of [[dullness]] developing in the [[mind]] and at that time also a good way to check, if this is a real good [[experience]] of the [[meditation]] or kind of [[dullness]] is again to check the belly. So therefore a real [[practitioner]] of [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] must be very alert and attentive all the time to guard himself, his [[mind]] from
  
going in between them so that there are some holes left, like a ventilation. So the wall has thirteen hand foot, Pagu has one hand foot, and all these {{Wiki|gold}} [[bells]] altogether have two hand foot in height. So then now for the ceiling, there are the beams for the ceiling so this is not put on top of the [[highest]] {{Wiki|gold}} belt rather it is through the top the [[highest]] {{Wiki|gold}} belt. So there are four [[principal]] beams, two going this way and two going that way, so [[forms]] are crossed 33
+
the [[distraction]] on one side and at the same time this kind of [[dullness]] by [[recognizing]] what is the real end and not miss the [[understanding]] of this kind of [[hindrances]] and [[recognizing]] and then immediately applying the antidote to get rid of them. But this practice of [[tranquil]] abiding is, one has to be [[skillful]], very [[skillful]], so therefore it is more difficult. It is sort of hard. On the contrary, just to sit in [[meditation]] in a position and just think nothing and just remain sort of completely blank [[mind]], this is not very difficult and it is very comfortable and very quiet. One doesn't need to {{Wiki|worry}} about anything, simply to close your [[mind]] completely and stay like that. This kind of practice is not, is completely not only wrong [[tranquil]] abiding, or wrong kind of [[meditation]], but it is a very bad course to take very unfortunate in [[animal realms]] in {{Wiki|future}} [[lives]] because this kind of practice completely closes the door of our analytical [[mind]] and thus the way to develop [[wisdom]] is completely closed. So therefore one takes [[rebirth]] in 62
 
   
 
   
like that right in the center and that makes a square thing right in the center of [[mandala]]. Now these beams are supported by eight pillars inside the mansion. So just from the wall inside, now we must be on the floor on the inside of the [[mandala]]. From the center to the wall is half way and there is again
+
very [[ignorant]] [[animal]] who just spends even in [[animal]], also some types of [[animal]] who just all time [[sleeping]], all time [[sleeping]] without much [[activity]] of the [[mind]], that sort of [[animal]] we can become. So when we practice [[tranquil]] abiding in a very correct way, with a correct method, and when we accomplish [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]], then one must [[experience]] what is called shenjung that is, shenjung that is like complete [[suppleness]] of the [[body]] and [[mind]]. It is a very
 +
[[blissful]] [[sensation]] {{Wiki|physically}} and [[mentally]]. That is a sign or result of the [[tranquil]] abiding, [[accomplishment]] of [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]]. If someone just keeps on developing this {{Wiki|subtle}} [[mental dullness]] then how long one [[meditates]] one can never [[experience]] that kind of [[bliss]]. So [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] or [[accomplishment]] of [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] to attain [[samadhi]] or [[full concentration]] of the [[mind]] and also the [[bliss]] of the [[mind]] is very beneficial, because the [[mind]] which is fully [[concentrated]] can be used for various purposes and can be very helpful. However, the one great difficulty that we face to accomplish the [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] is our, although we try to make [[effort]] to [[concentrate]] and practice [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]], the [[reason]] why we don't accomplish easily is the ground of [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] is not very strong. So the ground of [[samadhi]] or [[tranquil]] abiding
  
a very sort of wall which a very low one which has only one hand foot in height that is a circle right in the center of the floor. On top of that little wall or that stage then all the pillars stand on that thing, so two pillars in each [[direction]]. That supports the beams in the ceiling and the square thing right in the middle of these beams crossing of beams, is [[empty]], is uncovered. So the ceiling comes like that from all [[directions]] and right in the center it is [[empty]] and so then there is a little sort of roof, again four pillars put on that which has beams all around and that supports the [[highest]] roof, the golden roof, like that. Then that roof, that golden roof, is again supported by many beams inside, two major beams coming out like that, then there is a flat piece, then there are many other narrow beams from everywhere, then on top of that then there is the golden roof as we see there and then all around
+
[[meditation]], [[accomplishment]] of [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] is the shela. Shela is very important. Shela of [[body, speech and mind]] is a very important foundation for [[samadhi]]. There is a second [[danger]] in [[relation]] with the [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] which is quite definitely quite far away for us, that is if we accomplish [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] there is a [[danger]], or can be a [[danger]]. That is if we [[concentrate]] immediately, sort of direct one's now the fully [[concentrated]] [[mind]], this [[samadhi]] tool, a way to develop the [[Bodhichitta]] and this kind of [[Bodhisattva]] qualities, then [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]] just [[tranquil]] abiding [[mind]], the [[mind]] which is in the [[state of samadhi]], can easily turn to just into, turn to the {{Wiki|inferior}} part, the [[path]] leading to the [[individual liberation]] [[attaining]] [[nirvana]] through the [[realization]] of [[shunyata]]. Of course for that one needs [[concentration]] [[mind]]. Just satisfied with the  
  
the roof there are many ornaments hanging, decorations ornaments, hanging from all sides so it is very beautiful thing to see. So [[Rinpoche]] explains some details of the size of all these details, however the numbers are not so important, so what we should think is, create from your [[mind]] a mansion like that roughly of this shape and as beautiful as one can. So the ceiling also has the {{Wiki|color}} of the different [[directions]], the Eastern [[direction]] is white, [[South]] is [[yellow]], [[West]] is [[red]] and [[North]] is [[green]]. Also the floors are also divided like that by the same colors of each [[direction]]. Right in the center of the floor where the [[deity]] should sit there is a stage, there is a round stage. That is something special for the [[Guhyasamaja]], this white stage which is a round one, right in the center of the floor. So on that stage, on that stage there is the [[lotus]] and the {{Wiki|sun}} disc and the [[deity]] will sit there. So this round stage is
+
[[realization]] of [[shunyata]] then one sort of again gets carried away, in a different way, leading to the [[individual liberation]] or [[nirvana]] from the [[samsara]]. Then it is of course a good goal. However it is not the right goal that we are seeking. The [[reason]] why this is sort of considered as a [[danger]] is that when we accomplish [[tranquil]] abiding [[meditation]], and [[vipassana]], then through this combination of [[tranquil]] abiding-vipassana [[mind]] [[meditation]] on [[shunyata]], realize [[shunyata]] and through the [[realization]] of [[shunyata]] one completely gets rid of one's [[ignorance]] and then all other [[delusions]] and [[attachments]] and so on, all the [[delusions]] and by this [[karma]] is ceased and by this the [[conditioned]] [[rebirth]] in [[samsara]] is brought to an end and one has [[attained]] what one attains. The [[liberation]] from the [[samsara]] and the [[nirvana]] from the [[samsara]]. So this is the end of the problem for the {{Wiki|individual}} [[person]]. However when one attains this  
  
a special thing for the [[Guhyasamaja]] and that is not just the one solid piece, but it is like a little [[temple]] inside, there is also a little [[temple]] so there is also like little windows and so on, very beautifully made. It is like a room inside and also very jeweled ornaments that made from [[jewels]] and so on. This is necessary because otherwise there is no place for Sumbaranza, Sumbaranza, after Sumbaranza who always sits underground so really has to stay under the floor. So therefore a place is necessary for him under the [[deity]], a special place a special room. Then also in [[Guhyasamaja]] there is another thing, there again four pillars right in the center, no eight pillars right in the center, fine pillars going right inside, goes up under the roof in the center of the roof. Then on top of these pillars there is a little {{Wiki|canopy}} which is round and it has again four beams in that circle, that circular roof in there.  
+
kind of goal for oneself then because this goal is very comfortable and it is very comfortable then one gets this inclination to help oneself, to help oneself and to think for one's {{Wiki|welfare}} is the [[principal]] thing. Once our [[mind]] is very strongly inclined with this it is very difficult, after that again, to change from there to a [[Bodhisattva path]]. It takes a very long time for an [[arhat]] to again, although they finally will attain a fully [[enlightened state]] of [[Buddhahood]] going through the [[Bodhisattva path]], but for them to change from their [[state]] to [[Bodhisattva]] takes a very long time, much longer than a [[person]] who begins with the [[Bodhisattva path]] and by doing certain mistakes, falling into the [[hell realms]], spending a lot of time in [[hell realms]], again coming back and attain fully [[enlightenment]] is still shorter than somebody who attains [[nirvana]] [[state]] first and from there to attain the fully [[enlightenment]]. There are many
  
That is to hang this {{Wiki|canopy}}, this decoration {{Wiki|canopy}} where it should be hanged afterwards. Also above there is the place for Ushnishachakravati, the one who sits on top. So now in the, around that thing, that round stage which supports these pillars so there are nine places [[including]] the center. On the [[East]] is the place of [[Vairocana]], then [[South]] is for Ratnasambava, [[West]] for [[Amitaba]], the [[North]] for Ammogishiddi. Then those in between them are the places for the [[consorts]]. Outside of that circle then there is another circle and with all the [[goddesses]] of [[sense objects]], [[form]], [[sound]], {{Wiki|smell}}, {{Wiki|tactile}} and all those, then eight [[vase]], [[amrita]] [[vase]], and outside of that eight [[vase]] then at each gate inside there are two [[Bodhisattvas]] at the side of each gate. So the [[eight Bodhisattvas]], all the [[Bodhisattvas]], Avalokitishvara, [[Manjushri]], etc. those [[Bodhisattvas]] they are [[standing]] on the side of each gates, inside the [[mandala]]  
+
also [[scripture]] sources for it in various [[sutras]] and so on, however they are too long to be quoted now. So [[Rinpoche]] will give one story. That is the [[Shariputra]] was a [[great master]], a great [[disciple of Buddha]], a great [[arhat]]. So there was a [[person]] who has certain [[karmic cause]] in him that if [[Shariputra]] teaches him or gives him the [[teaching]] of [[dharma]] and let him, give him the instruction of [[meditation]], this [[person]] would immediately accomplish all the [[stages of meditation]], [[tranquil]] abiding, [[vipassana]] and all that and would immediately attain the [[nirvana]] or the [[individual liberation]]. There was a [[person]] who had that kind of potentiality. [[Shariputra]] [[seeing]] this potentiality in that [[person]] with his {{Wiki|clairvoyance}} then for now I will give the [[teaching]] of [[dharma]] to this [[person]] and establish him to the [[state of nirvana]] to the [[complete liberation]]. So in between the [[Manjushri Bodhisattva]] went to the same [[person]] and
  
inside the mansion. Inside the corridor in each four corridors there is a place for the croadas. Then the four corners of the mansion are four more croadas. In the same order, they are sitting in the same order like we had [[visualized]] them before, their places are the same. So that is, so this completes all the places for the 32 [[deities]] of the [[Guhyasamaja mandala]], the main figure in the center and then the four [[Buddhas]] in the [[four directions]] and their four [[consorts]] and in between them then the four [[sense]] [[goddesses]] and then there are the [[eight Bodhisattvas]] and eight croadas and then one croada up there and one croada below, 32 [[deities]] all complete. So this is just explanation, it is not a real [[process of visualization]]. That will come later. [[Je Rinpoche]] is just giving a general explanation about this [[mandala]]. So in the actual process of [[meditation]] we have [[visualized]] first this triangle thing, then the [[lotus]] and in
+
gave a lot of teachings of Redbago. [[Bodhisattva]] [[taught]] him all the [[Bodhisattva]] conducts and [[good deeds]], vast and [[profound practices]], [[paramitas]] and all the [[sacrifices]] and so on and this [[person]] was completely shocked with the [[teaching]], and that was completely too much and therefore there is no use for a [[person]] to become like [[Bodhisattvas]], do all those things like [[Bodhisatvas]], that is really completely beyond his ability and so on. So a [[wrong view]] has developed in him towards the [[teaching]].  
 +
 +
[...]
 +
...all the usual agitations of the various conceptions. So then one still continues to [[meditate]] and all the [[energy]] in our [[body]] completely dissolves and absorbs into the [[central channel]] except for a very [[subtle energy]] and then one goes through the actual process of dissolution like at the time of the [[death]],
  
the center of the [[lotus]] the [[double vajra]]. We shouldn't [[visualize]] straight away the [[vajra]]. First one must [[visualize]] the [[mandalas]] of different [[elements]]. So for creating these [[mandalas]] of the [[elements]] then first [[letter]] on that [[lotus]] is [[HUM]] YAMO [[HUM]], these three letters appear, [[HUM]] and [[YAM]] and [[HUM]]. [[YAM]] in the center. After that, that [[YAM]] changes into a [[bow]] shaped [[air]] [[mandala]], very large, fitting in the center of the [[lotus]]. So this half of a circle, the shape is half of a circle facing in front. This [[HUM]] changes into a [[Vajra]] which will stand on the two edges of this [[wind mandala]]. Then on top of that, on top of this [[mandala]], then appears [[HUM]], [[RAM]] and [[HUM]]. [[RAM]] [[red]]. So the [[RAM]] changes into [[fire mandala]], triangle shaped, one point is facing the front, the two others the back. That [[HUM]] changes into, those two HUMs change into two [[vajras]] [[standing]] on the two points of the triangle. On top of this [[mandala]] then there is a [[HUM]],
+
then that [[subtle energy]], most [[subtle energy]] which is [[inseparable]] from our [[subtle consciousness]] then finally awakens from the [[state]] of [[clear light]]. It produces a [[body]] which cannot be seen from outside, it is only for yourself, can only be [[perceived]] by yourself in [[form]] of White [[Vajradhara]] which goes out of one's [[body]] and performs various [[activities]]. That [[illusory body]] in White [[Vajradhara]] [[form]] goes out, goes out of one's [[body]] and performs various [[activities]], accumulating [[merit]] and making [[offerings]] for the [[Buddhas]] and so on. And, after then it again comes back, returns and enters into through the {{Wiki|crown}} of the old [[body]] and as soon as it enters through the [[crown of the head]] then one again comes to [[life]] in our usual [[body]] and then one engages in post- [[meditation practices]] like eating, walking, sitting and also then [[teaching]] [[asita]], all these kind of [[activities]]. Then again one [[meditates]], enters into the actual session of [[meditation]] where one leaves this [[body]] in that White [[Vajradhara]] [[form]] and this has to repeat for a long time. These three {{Wiki|processes}}, the process of dissolution and [[clear light state]], then the [[body of energy]], [[energy body]] in White [[Vajradhara]] [[form]], and again returning back into the old [[body]]. These three {{Wiki|processes}} are the actual method, the actual [[path]] which eradicates our ordinary [[death]] [[bardo]] and [[birth]]. These are the [[cause]] to, also the [[cause]] to attain the [[three kayas]], [[three bodies of the Buddha]]. But in order to accomplish these we must practice in the [[stage of generation]] these three
  
again [[HUM]] and BAM and [[HUM]]. So that wide BAM changes into the [[water mandala]] which is a circular [[water mandala]], white. Again the two HUMs change into two [[vajras]] [[standing]] on two edges of this [[mandala]], [[water mandala]]. On top of that again [[HUM]] and [[LAM]] [[yellow]] and HO. This [[yellow]] [[LAM]] changes into an [[earth mandala]] which is square solid piece. The [[HUM]] again stands, the two HUMs stand on the two edges of this piece. So there are four [[mandalas]], a stack of four [[mandalas]].
+
transformations. Transformations of the [[birth]], [[death]] and [[bardo]] into [[Dharmakaya]], [[Sambogakaya]] and [[Nirmanakaya]], which is the principals of the practice of the [[sadhana]]. Although it is in one's [[mental]], in your [[imagination]], but still these are very important preparations, important [[cause]] for the accomplish of the actual, the [[path]]. So therefore, the three transformations in the [[stage of generation]] in your [[visualization]], it is the preparation, or it is the [[cause]] to attain the actual [[path]] and also this is something which corresponds to our basic, our ordinary [[birth]], [[death]] and 63
 
   
 
   
So, in fact, these four [[mandalas]] are of the [[nature]] of the four [[consorts]]. That is Jenma, then Mamake, and Kerkama, and [[Dolma]], there are four [[consorts]] of the four [[Dhyana]] [[Buddhas]]. The [[essence]] of those four [[consorts]] are actually the four [[boundless]] [[mind]]; that is, the [[boundless]] [[love]], the [[boundless compassion]], the  
+
[[bardo]] and these are also [[cause]] to attain the actual, these [[three states]], and on the [[path]]. In the [[stage of generation]], to practice these three transformations in your [[mind]] is a very indispensable sort of ground or preparation to actually accomplish them in the stage of completion. Even if one practices that properly, even if one cannot attain the stage of completion in that [[life]], still these transformations in this, [[mental]] transformations will be very helpful when actual [[death]] and [[bardo]] and [[birth]] occurs at the end of our [[life]]. So the [[principal]] practice in the stage of completion is through the  
  
[[boundless]] [[joy]] and [[boundless]] [[equanimity]]. So now we understand that there is the triangle shape outside, triangle [[mandala]] outside, then inside there is the [[lotus]] and right in the center of the [[lotus]] then these [[mandala]], [[wind]], [[fire]], [[water]] and [[earth]] are sort of stacked on top of the other, so it comes up quite high. After that all these four [[mandalas]] of the [[four elements]], they will change into one. That changes into the [[form]] of this [[double vajra]]. So those [[elements]] have taken their shape of the cross [[vajra]] as [[Je Rinpoche]] explained in detail before. In the center of this cross [[vajra]] we should [[visualize]] a [[letter]] DRUM, white in {{Wiki|color}}, very big one. This DRUM is sending out [[rays of light]], it says "A cloud of {{Wiki|light}} is [[emanating]] from it which holds the [[essence]] of the [[Buddha]]. Then that DRUM changes its [[form]] completely into the mansion. This DRUM changes [[form]] then the whole mansion appears at once, simultaneously
+
[[concentration]] on the point and also then the [[meditation]] on the [[emptiness]], [[absorption]] into the [[emptiness]], then one goes through the process of dissolution and reaches the [[clear light state]], awake the [[clear light state]] of the [[consciousness]] and [[experience]] all those age different [[inner science]], like [[mirage]], smoke and so on, all these [[experiences]]. At first they are not very clear, and they are quite vague and so they are not very real, not very vivid. Also this [[awakening]], then from [[clear light]] [[awakening]] in a [[body]], in a separate [[body]], at first it is very vague, and it's more in your [[mind]]. But after these become,  
  
every part appeared all complete. So this [[divine]] mansion is, {{Wiki|transcends}} all the [[beauty]] of mansions of [[humans]] and of [[gods]]. It is very beautiful in [[appearance]], very radiant full of {{Wiki|light}} and {{Wiki|color}} and at the same time made of all [[precious]] {{Wiki|substances}} and also holds the [[essence]] of [[Buddha's wisdom]]. Now after the [[mandala]] is ready, then in the center on that round stage, then appears a [[lotus]] and {{Wiki|sun}} disc. Also all the seats of those Mahacroadas, those which are in the four corridors and also the four corners and one on top and on bottom, under the seat of the [[deity]], their cushions are also [[lotus]] and {{Wiki|sun}} disc. 34
+
after continuous [[effort]] and continuous [[practice of meditation]] they become more and more real until they one can really create one's real [[body]], [[body of energy]]. So those two, the practice of the generation of the [[clear light state]] and the [[illusory body]] are the two [[principal]] practices in the stage of completion. Then one should still continue to practice, to [[meditate]] with the [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} and all these various [[techniques]] and for the [[energy]] to [[cause]], for the [[energy]] to enter more and more, more completely in the [[central channel]] and so one has to, can never give up one's [[effort]], one should still put much [[effort]] and continue to [[meditate]]. Then still if you will progress further. So when one practices the [[meditation]], depending on what sort of [[tantra]] or
 +
 
 +
particular method one is practicing, sometimes with [[six chakras]], sometimes with [[five chakras]]. However, when {{Wiki|concentrating}} and [[meditating]] in this way the [[energy]] entering into the [[channel]] then it causing the heat [[to increase]] and then causing the [[blissful]] fluid to fall down, melting and falling down from the [[crown of the head]]. First when the [[bliss]], the fluid fills the [[highest]] [[chakra]] in the [[crown of the head]] there are certain [[experiences]] that the [[meditator]], [[experiences]] certain [[appearances]]. When it fills the [[head chakra]] then one sees, one gets [[visions]] of countless [[forms]] of [[Vairocana]], the White [[Vairocana]] filling the whole [[space]], so many appearing to us. But this time we are not having a real direct [[vision]] or [[contact]] or appearing of the [[form]] of the [[Buddha]], it is not yet. This kind of [[experience]] occurs due to the [[energy]] and the [[bliss]] fluid filling the [[crown chakra]].  
 
   
 
   
All the other [[deities]] on the Eastern [[direction]], such as [[Vairocana]] and the [[consorts]] and so on all those [[deities]] are with [[lotus]] and [[moon disc]]. Then on the [[South]] for Mamake, this [[consort]] Mamake, has a [[vajra seat]]. All the rest of the [[deities]] on the Southern [[direction]], except for Mamake, they all have a cushion
+
In the practice, when we practice with [[energy]] with the [[nadis]], then various [[appearances]] one sometimes one [[perceives]] various [[appearances]], although they are not real. Sometimes one sort of gets [[impression]] that one cannot see anything, like becomes [[blind]]. Or sometimes one sees lots of [[sentient beings]] and one
  
make of [[precious]] [[jewels]]. Those on the, [[deities]] on the [[West]] they all sit on [[red lotus]]. Those on the [[North]], [[deities]] on the [[North]] are sitting on a cross [[vajra]], [[double vajra]]. So there are 32 [[deities]], but there are 31 cushions. Because the central figure of [[Guhyasamaja]] and the [[consort]] are sitting on the one cushion, sharing the same cushion. [[Je Rinpoche]] forgot completely about the pause in the middle, the break in the middle. So it is time for a long break. So actually all these should be explained in detail and important to understand, but it cannot be done at one time. One of the [[obstacles]], [[Je Rinpoche]] says one of the, the number one [[obstacle]] is [[Tibetan language]]. So the texts are most of them in [[Tibetan]], so if you can read [[Tibetan]] it would be much easier for you and especially with this [[Guhyasamaja]] [[sadhana]] is not translated in English, so it is difficult. However, maybe sometime this will be translated in English, so that will help. Also you should later learn about these [[mandalas]], with some [[teacher]] actually guiding through a [[mandala]] and actually demonstrating how it is made and so. Then it could help very much. In [[India]] there are a lot of [[monks]] who know about this quite well. Even in [[Je Rinpoche's]] [[monastery]], even the  
+
gets the [[impression]] that one is [[seeing]] all the [[sentient beings]] of the [[six realms]]. Different [[impressions]] like this one gets, but they are not real, they are still kind of [[illusion]] [[caused]] by the [[energy]] entering into the various [[nadis]]. Now at the end of the solid [[mind]], end of that [[state]], then all the [[energy]] in the [[body]] has entered into the [[central channel]], all except for [[the all-pervading one]] which only enters at the time of real [[death]], normally. So still one is living, therefore that still remains. All the rest of the [[energy]] is in the [[central channel]] and one [[experiences]] very great [[bliss]] and also one's [[mind]] realizes [[shunyata]] very clearly, although it is still not a direct [[perception]] or [[direct realization]] of the [[shunyata]], but still the [[shunyata]], the [[void]] [[nature]]
 +
of [[phenomena]] becomes very clear to your [[mind]]. That [[meditator]] who is in that [[state]], who is all [[energy]], completely enters into the [[central channel]] except for this {{Wiki|subtle}} all-pervading [[energy]] and what happens at the real [[death]] is hardly any difference, hardly any difference. Except for this little [[energy]] still in the [[body]] it is just like [[death]]. All these gross level of the [[consciousness]], these energies, they are all absorbed into the true the most [[subtle consciousness]] and most [[subtle energy]] which is, which dwells always in the center of the [[heart chakra]]. Into these two potentialities then all the other energies absorb. Now a [[person]] who is dying, then all the [[energy]] absorbs into the [[subtle energy]], all the [[gross mind]] is absorbed into the [[subtle mind]], the  
  
very young [[monks]] they have already learned about these and so it is not very difficult to find this kind of [[knowledge]]. So although we have still many difficulties and [[obstacles]] and also there isn't much time for everybody to [[practice Dharma]], there are other engagements, other [[commitments]] and [[activities]] and so on. However, one should try to learn and practice as much as one can and specially give much {{Wiki|emphasis}} to make great [[effort]] to develop [[Bodhichitta]] and the right kind of [[renunciation]] and [[understanding]] of [[Shunyata]]. These are the principals of the [[Path]]. So one must give great importance to these because without these foundations, even if one engages in some advanced practice, complicated practice of [[tantra]], it is only complicated practice, besides that, there is no much [[benefit]]. But it doesn't mean that we should completely forget about the [[tantra]] and [[tantric practices]], one should still on the basis of
+
[[subtlest mind]], then that [[energy]], the [[subtle energy]] they leave this [[body]], and [[subtle energy]] then produces the [[bardo body]] and then there is no more return to the old [[body]]. But now here in the [[meditation]] the [[practitioner]], by the power of his [[own]] [[meditation]], then one goes through the same process of dissolution all the gross level of [[consciousness]], all the 80 gross level of [[consciousness]], they all dissolve with that [[energy]] also and [[clear light state]] awakens. However, in place of now [[bardo]] taking the [[intermediate stage]], [[bardo stage]], after ones [[meditation]], by the power of one's [[meditation]] then the [[energy]] creates this [[illusory body]] which can return to the old [[body]]. In order to do, to bring our [[mind]] to such a [[state]] and to accomplish that stage, the [[practice of meditation]] alone is not enough. One also needs a great power of [[merit]]. So here when we have reached that advanced [[state]] in the [[path of tantra]], the [[accumulation of merit]] is no more dependent on the external [[activities]] of accumulating [[virtues]] and [[merit]]. Simply [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]], the [[mind]] [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]] experiencing the great [[bliss]], so the union of [[bliss]] and [[void]] itself is complete to [[accumulate]] both [[merit]] and [[wisdom]]. The [[bliss]] aspect of that [[mind]] is to, it helps to [[accumulate]] [[merit]] and the [[void]] [[aspect of the mind]], the [[realization]] of the [[voidness]] is a way to [[accumulate]] [[wisdom]]. Therefore one [[mind]] can in the [[tantra]], in the [[path of tantra]], one [[mind]] can [[accumulate]] both sides, [[merit]] and [[wisdom]]. That is one of the [[reasons]] why in the [[tantric path]] it is
  
developing the [[Bodhichitta]] and [[understanding]] of [[Shunyata]], one should also try the practice of [[tantra]], particularly in the [[state]] of generation it is very beneficial. It leaves very great imprint although one cannot begin immediately all the practice in the stage of completion. But the [[state]] of generation is very important, it is an indispensable foundation for the completion too. Therefore, in this way if you make [[effort]], then a very positive fruit will be obtained. For example now, the lake over here is frozen and is hard, is solid ground and by [[thinking]] this is very solid ground, if we start [[to build]] a nice house and very good house on it, after some weeks or some months then you will end up at the bottom of the lake. So in the same way if the [[refuge]] and generation of [[Bodhichitta]] and the [[understanding]] of [[Shunyata]] and [[renunciation]], if these are these remain very [[superficial]] and unsteady, then even though we
+
much faster, much shorter, much faster to [[attain enlightenment]] because here the advanced [[practitioner]] then can [[accumulate]] both collections, the [[collection of merit]] and the [[collection of wisdom]] by in one [[meditation]], by one [[state]] of the [[mind]]. So it has a great power. While in the [[paramita]], the ordinary [[paramitayana]], the [[path]] of [[paramitayana]] then when one [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]], one just [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]] single pointedly. There is no way, that is a [[collection of wisdom]], developing [[wisdom]]. But when one wishes to [[accumulate]] the [[collection of merit]] then one has to engage in various outer [[activities]] of the [[Bodhisattva]], such as the [[paramitas]], the giving and [[chela]] and [[patience]] and all the [[paramitas]], so they are not one [[state of mind]], but different [[states of mind]], different [[activities]]. Because of that, that way takes longer to fulfill. Here in [[tantra]] one practices the [[meditation]] of union of [[bliss]] and [[void]] and by just continuing to [[meditate]], developing this [[meditation]] alone, then one accumulates both collections. Therefore, one does not need, no more dependent to the external [[methods]] of accumulating [[merit]], [[activities]] like [[accumulation of merit]] after the [[meditation]]. When a [[Bodhisattva]], following the ordinary [[path]] of the [[paramita]], then reach when they reach the eighth stage of the [[Bodhisattva]] then one has [[realized]] the [[direct realization]] of [[shunyata]] and the [[shunyata]] that one realizes there, and also in the [[tantra]], this is what is [[realized]] by the [[arhats]] or shivakas. But the [[shunyata]] itself there is no difference, there are
  
try [[to build]] a very fantastic building of [[tantra]] on it, it will not be very fruitful, it will not be able to stand very long. So it says that "Without the practice, {{Wiki|training}} of the [[mind]] to the common [[path]], if one tries this high practice it is like riding an untamed bull". So without this [[development]] through the stages of [[Lam Rim]], the common [[path]] or practice of [[Bodhichitta]] and this foundation, if one tries advanced practice it is just like like riding a very wild [[elephant]], or a child on a very wild [[horse]]. It is quite certain that that child would fall down after a few, how do you say that the [[horse]] will jump, the [[horse]] is not used to the mount, so therefore in a minute the child will be on the ground. A [[person]] who is well trained, who is powerful and who is well trained in riding wild [[horses]] then can ride the [[horse]] and although how much the [[horse]] jumps around the [[person]] will not fall down. So without any sign of
+
no different levels of [[shunyata]], it is always one major [[shunyata]]. But there is a different in the [[state]] of the [[mind]]. A [[Bodhisattva]] who is developing himself on the [[paramita]] [[path]] then [[meditates]] on [[shunyata]] with the ordinary [[state of mind]], our usual [[state of mind]] fully [[concentrated]] on it. Therefore it is unable to [[accumulate]] the [[merit]] at the same time. So therefore, it happens sometimes that the [[Bodhisattva]] in eighth bumi [[meditates]] in full [[samadhi]] or [[absorption]] of 64
these developments, without caring at all about the practice of developing [[Bodhichitta]] and these necessary foundations, if one practices [[tantra]], that will be a direct [[cause]] for the [[rebirth]] into the [[hell realm]]. And with the [[development]] of [[Bodhichitta]] if one takes the practice of [[tantra]] and that is most speedy course to lead to the fully [[enlightenment state]]. So -- that's all for today.
 
 
   
 
   
So the [[mandala]] has been explained roughly yesterday. Inside the mansion there are 31 seats. So there are 32 [[deities]] and 31 cushions which means the [[central deity]] and the [[consort]] are embracing, so they are on one cushion and therefore there is one cushion less. Now first we must generate what is called
+
[[shunyata]]. Sometimes the [[Buddha]] must appear and awake the [[Bodhisattva]] from that [[state]] of [[meditation]] in order to make him [[accumulate]] more [[merit]] through other [[paramitas]]. In [[tantra]] [[yana]] this difficulty is not {{Wiki|present}}. Actually this kind of process of dissolution is something which occurs in [[reality]] at the time of [[death]] and also a very similar one occurs at the time when we [[sleep]], when we go to [[sleep]] then there also occurs a similar process of dissolution, but very very short.
 +
 +
Like an ordinary being, go through those process of dissolution at the time of [[death]] and [[experience]] all those various [[appearances]] and go through the [[bardo]] then the [[birth]]. Without, {{Wiki|unconsciously}} one goes without any control, without any will one just is carried away through these [[experiences]] and they just come and go. In the same way, when we go to [[sleep]] these similar stage of [[experiences]] also occurs. Because it is very short and very vague we do not notice
 +
anything. Also when we [[sleep]] again we are sort of powerless. Our [[mind]] is no more [[conscious]] and we are not {{Wiki|aware}} of what really is happening. Therefore, again, in a similar away we are sort of carried away into [[sleep]] and as soon as we [[sleep]] then the [[dreams]] start to [[manifest]]. It is similar to the [[bardo]] and there is also a [[body]] in the [[dream]] and also we [[experience]] various kinds of [[sufferings]] and [[happiness]] and so on, encounter various [[objects]] and so on. It is similar to [[bardo]]. We also pass through, like in the [[bardo]], without much, without being really [[conscious]] of what is going on, and when we awake, the [[mind]] again [[manifesting]] the [[awaken]] from the [[sleep state]] and come to [[life]]. It is similar to taking [[birth]]. When one reaches that [[state]], the [[state]] of completion,
  
hangmurkaha. That means "[[deity]] of special [[visualizations]]", "special generation of the [[deity]]". So that is instant generation of the [[deity]]. So this special generation or special [[attention]] that means as soon as one [[thinks]] of them, these 32 [[deities]] [[including]] one’s [[self]], they appear instantly on the seat. The way they appear is like on the television screen, then the different things for advertisement, they appear instantly out of a [[letter]] or out of like that. These are very good things for [[visualization]]. So this special generation or hangmurkaha means "special [[attention]]" "special [[intention]]" [[visualization]]. This means that as soon as one [[thinks]] of them then they appear instantly on their seats. After they have appeared then we should now take a very good close like a review, make a review of all these [[deities]], starting from one’s [[self]] in blue [[body]] with three faces, blue, white and [[red]] faces, six arms, the [[vajra]] [[wheel]],  
+
then one will be able to practice what is called the nine-fold mixing, literally means mixing, [[sera]] is mixing, like {{Wiki|integration}}, nine integrations. So there is the three integrations, in [[awaken]] [[state]] three integrations, in the [[sleeping state]] three integrations, and [[death]] [[state]]. The last three of the [[death]] [[state]] is something which is should be practiced only at the time of [[death]], but the other six, the three of the awaking [[state]] and three of the [[sleep]] is then practiced by the [[practitioner]] all the time. In the day when he [[is awake]], then he [[meditates]] and in [[meditation]] he goes through the process of dissolution and also awakes himself in the [[body]] and then enters back into his old [[body]] and like that, that is again mixing or {{Wiki|integration}}, integrating with the [[Dharmakaya]],  
  
[[lotus]] and the [[bell]], [[jewel]] and the sword just like before. On top of that circle, that sort of stage on [[lotus]] and {{Wiki|sun}} disc then we instantly become this [[form]]. So the central figure, our central figure one should [[visualize]] slightly larger than the other [[deities]]. The others a little lower than the central one. So in every [[mandala]] the front side of ourself, where we are facing, that is always considered as the Eastern [[direction]]. Although it doesn't correspond to the actual [[directions]], external [[directions]], always the front side of one’s [[self]] is [[East]] in the [[mandala]]. There are certain places where one must count the external [[directions]], one must do in accordance with external [[directions]], such as when we are [[sleeping]], then one should not, one’s head should not be directed towards the [[South]] or also in the [[fire puja]] then there is [[kusha grass]] put in the different [[directions]], these kind of [[directions]] is the normal
+
[[Sambhogakaya]] and [[Nirmanakaya]] in the awaking [[state]]. In the same way when the [[practitioner]] sleeps, goes to [[sleep]], at that time again he integrates the process of dissolution which occurs when one goes to [[sleep]] with the [[Dharmakaya]]. Then this [[dream]], the [[manifestation]] of the [[dream]] [[body]], then leaving his [[body]], his [[physical body]], then going through performing lots of different things, going through lots of different [[experiences]], that is integrating with the [[Sambogakaya]]. Then after the [[dream]] [[body]] when he wants to awake, he enters back into the [[physical body]] and then awake, and that is integrating with the [[Nirmanakaya]]. All is done with full control and full [[consciously]]. Therefore all time is spent in a very useful way. At the {{Wiki|present}} we have not the ability
  
[[direction]] now, the external [[directions]], not the [[visualized]] ones. So in [[meditation]] in the [[mandala]] where you are facing is always [[East]]. So we should first look at one’s [[self]] in the blue [[form]] of [[Vajradhara]] and embracing with a [[consort]] Vajratouch. Vajratouch is also with three faces and six arms, with the same implements holding in the hands. The [[vajra]] [[wheel]] and [[lotus]] and [[bell]], [[jewel]] and so on like the [[deity]]. Then from there we move to the [[deity]] in front of us, that is [[Vairocana]], white, black and [[red]] faces and on the [[South]] [[direction]] there is [[Ratnasambhava]] with [[yellow]] [[body]]. On the back side that is the [[West]] there is [[red]] [[Amitaba]]. [[North]] is Ammogisiddhi [[green]]. So these five figures, [[principal]] figures are called the five Tatagathas. All with three faces and six arms. The [[Southeast]] [[goddess]], Jama, white [[goddess]]. On the [[Southwest]] is Mamake, blue. [[Northwest]] is Kirkarmo, [[red]] [[body]]. [[Northeast]] is [[Tara]], [[green]] [[body]]. That is the  
+
to do that and so there is very limited time for our real practice of [[dharma]]. Therefore when we go to [[sleep]] we are unable to practice. But when one reaches that stage of completion then the three stages of the awaking [[state]] complements the three stages of the [[sleeping state]] and [[vice versa]], and like this there is no [[moment]] where one is not really practicing, so all time is spent used in a very good way, a very powerful way to develop one's [[mind]] and this way one accomplishes the fully [[enlightenment]] very soon. From now one can [[transform]] one's [[sleep]] into a [[virtuous]] [[sleep]]. That one can do. If one sleeps with a very [[virtuous]] [[state of mind]], with a [[development]] of [[Bodhichitta]] or [[compassion]] or any other aspect of the, any other qualities like that, then a [[sleep]] which is  
inner circle, the inner circle around the [[deity]]. Now from there we should move to the second circle. [[Southeast]] there is Sudorjeme, that is the [[vajra]] of [[form]], [[goddess]] of Vajraform, white [[body]]. On the [[Southwest]] there is Vajrasound [[yellow]] {{Wiki|color}}. [[Northwest]] there is a Vajrasmell, [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}. [[Northeast]] there is a Vajrataste, [[green]] [[body]]. So all these four [[goddesses]] of the inner circle and four [[goddesses]] of the outer circle which are all not sitting 35
+
 
 +
sustained by such a [[state of mind]], such a [[motivation]], the [[sleep]] is also [[virtuous]]. It is a [[virtuous]] [[sleep]]. If one sleeps with a very [[unwholesome]] [[state of mind]] where tetrandra and so on, that changes the [[sleep]] also to an [[unwholesome]] [[sleep]]. So this is in our head, that one can already practice one now. But in the kind of [[transformation]] which is practiced in the stage of completion is very different. Actually in the [[stage of generation]] there are already many different [[yogas]], many different practices, some for the waking [[state]] like practicing of the [[sadhana]] and so on, these [[meditations]], and all of them, any [[yogas]], the [[sleeping]] [[yogas]], the eating [[yogas]] and so on, there are many many [[yogas]], different kind of [[yogas]] for different [[activities]]. If one practices them
 +
 
 +
they are very beneficial, very beneficial to [[transform]] our ordinary [[state]], the ordinary [[state]] of our [[life]] into something more useful, and it is also the preparation for the stage of completion. [[Je Rinpoche]] didn't have time so far to explain all these other [[yogas]]. The other [[yogas]] such as the [[yoga]] of [[sleeping]], then washing and eating, and {{Wiki|lying}} and all these kind of [[yogas]] [[Rinpoche]] doesn't have time to explain. Actually the {{Wiki|training}} of the [[sleeping]] [[yoga]] is something which we can do for now in order to train ourself to remain [[conscious]], [[conscious]] of [[dream]], [[conscious]] of [[sleep]]. So this is a kind of {{Wiki|training}}, or practice, the {{Wiki|training}} which is done with a great power of [[motivation]] and there are certain [[methods]], certain [[techniques]]. Usually the [[dream]] [[body]], when we
 +
 
 +
go to [[sleep]] the [[dream]] [[body]] [[manifests]], but usually it remains in this [[physical body]]. It cannot leave the [[physical body]]. Still to train to practice this kind of {{Wiki|training}}, to remain [[conscious]] of one's [[sleep]] and one's [[dream]] is very helpful to us because this can be very useful at the time of [[death]]. If we are really able to be [[conscious]] of our [[sleep]] we will be able to also to remain [[conscious]] when we [[die]], and if we are able to remain [[conscious]] while we are [[Wikipedia:Dream|dreaming]] that will help at the time of [[bardo]]. That is one way of controlling the [[sleep]], that is by the power of [[motivation]], by the power of [[meditation]], [[mental]] [[meditation]]. That is one way. Still there is a {{Wiki|superior}} way to control, that is by controlling the [[sleep]] and [[dream]] by the power of [[energy]], with [[lumo]]  
 +
 
 +
[[energy]] control. That is more powerful because with this then the [[dream]] [[body]] actually can leave this [[physical body]] and travel around very very speedily, everywhere, go to [[China]], [[India]], go everywhere. In a few minutes one can very speedily make a great trip and return to our [[body]]. Now days we latch on to make a journey, make a trip around the country, even while we [[sleep]]. While we [[sleep]] we don't know even what's happening just next to ourself. Even if somebody takes something we don't know. We can’t remember. It is because the [[dream]] is uncontrolled and it is only going on inside our head in our [[body]]. So there was a very great [[scholar]], a very famous man [[in Tibet]] who was called Potu [[Rinpoche]]. Potu [[Rinpoche]] and he was a very great [[scholar]] who lived little
 +
 
 +
before [[Je Tsongkapa]]. [[Je Tsongkapa]] was born after six years of the [[death]] of Potu [[Rinpoche]]. Anyway this great [[scholar]], [[great master]], he had full control of his [[sleep]] and [[dream]] and so by the power of the [[energy]]. Therefore he memorizes most of the texts in his [[sleep]]. So before going to bed he puts so many, all of the [[scriptures]] which he has to memorize, all around him then he goes to [[sleep]]. Then by the power of his [[energy]] he [[manifests]] in his [[dream]] [[body]] and the [[dream]] [[body]] memorizes and it has a tremendous power to memorizing and it works much more speedily than the usual way, so he studies of course in the daytime and then much more in the [[dream]] or in the [[sleeping]], so that's how he became an [[extraordinary]] great [[pundit]]. [[Dream]] [[activities]] in the [[dream]] are much more
 +
 
 +
speedy than our what's done in the waking [[state]] because it is the [[mental]], it's all [[mental body]] and is all, it runs with the {{Wiki|speed}} of the [[mind]], therefore everything goes very quickly. For example if we have to write something with the hand it takes a very long time. To read is a little faster. Even just to look through like this 65
 +
 +
with our [[eyes]] is still much, more faster, so it is something like that. For such practice one must be able to {{Wiki|perfect}}, to do to separate one's [[gross body]] and [[subtle body]]. That is quite difficult and to do that with just the power of [[meditation]] or power of [[motivation]] is difficult, so one needs the control of the [[energy]] in order to separate them. In [[Tibet]], in Seung in [[West]] of [[Tibet]] there lived a [[master]], who the [[master]] himself has not gained control of his [[sleep]]
 +
and [[dreams]], but he had a [[disciple]] who has mastered this technique, this method. Another [[disciple]] of this [[lama]] went to [[pilgrimage]] journey to [[central Tibet]]. That [[master]] took a very long time on his [[pilgrimage]] so the [[master]] start to {{Wiki|worry}} about his [[disciple]] has [[died]] or faced some bad [[luck]] on his journey. Therefore he called his other [[disciple]] who has [...]
 
   
 
   
on the [[directions]], but on the semi [[directions]], they are called the eight [[goddesses]], all with three faces and six arms. Now in the [[East]], on the two sides of the Eastern door, inside there is, Maitraya and Chittigharba, white [[body]], [[Bodhisattvas]] two [[Bodhisattvas]]. So if you are coming in on the right side, on the  
+
[...]
 +
So here one, for the [[Prana]] [[Vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} then one [[concentrates]] in the [[heart center]] and depending on the different practice of [[tantra]], sometimes [[visualize]] a {{Wiki|syllable}}, sometimes an implement, and various different, can be different. However then one begins the [[Vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} like, similar to [[Je Rinpoche]] explained yesterday at the {{Wiki|recitation}} part in the [[sadhana]], so with one's [[energy]] going here, it is not going out, no more [[breath]] going out like
 +
before. Instead, the [[energy]] goes from the [[heart center]] up to the [[crown of the head]] and then again going with the [[OM]] [[sound]], it's going up. With [[OM]] it comes down into the [[heart]], with [[AH]] it rests there, and with [[HUM]] it goes back, it goes up. So this way one practices the [[Vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} and then after this abiding in the [[heart]], the duration abiding increases and of coming and going gets shorter and shorter, and abiding increases longer and longer. This {{Wiki|recitation}}, now the [[energy]] going into the [[central channel]], going up and down, up and down like that and by this then it opens the [[central channel]] and all those defects are all completely restored and notice {{Wiki|recitation}} is not [[verbal]]. One should think that this is the natural [[sound]] of the [[energy]] itself, of coming, abiding and going and so the [[sound]] and the [[energy]] are [[inseparable]]. So generally one can, when we recite [[mantra]], [[verbal]] {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[mantra]], when we recite [[mantra]] in general is very beneficial any time. But if one does it while oneself is in the [[form of the deity]] with the [[mantra]] circled in the {{Wiki|chest}},
 +
 
 +
this is more powerful than just doing {{Wiki|recitation}} without the circle of [[mantra]] in the [[heart]]. Like in the [[stage of generation]] to recite the [[mantra]] with a clear [[visualization]] of oneself as the [[deity]] and the [[mantra]] circled, that is very powerful. But still, still the [[Vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} is still even more powerful. When one attains, accomplishes this inner [[pranayama]] [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}}, then one does not need any more [[malas]]. Then there is no more {{Wiki|vocal}} (?) {{Wiki|recitation}}, that's end of {{Wiki|vocal}} (?) {{Wiki|recitation}}, no more {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[malas]] and rosary. When one attains the [[illusory body]] no more [[prostrations]] and circumambulations and so on. Actually [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}}, when one does [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}}, the [[energy]] can like before it can go out. But here now, we don't let it out, it just keep it within the [[body]] and goes up and down. The [[reason]] for that is that in order to keep the [[energy]] within, collected, keep the
 +
 
 +
[[energy]] within the [[body]] and channelize all the [[energy]] into the [[nadi]] without letting the slightest bit out of the [[body]]. That is why here we do it all inwardly. Also now when we practice [[sadhana]] like that, we, when we make [[offerings]], then [[offering]] [[deities]] are produced, send out from our {{Wiki|chest}}, but each time we must, at end we must think that they come back. Whatever one has sent out from one's [[body]] must be collected and that is very important. It is a very important preparation or very important sort of [[symbol]] for the {{Wiki|future}} in the [[state]] of completion. At that stage when one has reached, that stage one is already very advanced and one can now accomplish various other [[powers]] of {{Wiki|clairvoyance}} and so on at this stage. Now the [[experience]] of the great [[bliss]] through the, by the fluid falling into the [[central channel]] has no comparison to any kind of [[bliss]], that ordinary [[bliss]] [[experience]] by us now days at the  
 +
 
 +
{{Wiki|present}}. That until now we have never [[experienced]] that great [[bliss]], that type of [[bliss]]. So the [[reason]] why we haven't until now, we have never [[experienced]] the great [[bliss]] of the union is that although there is the union, of ordinary [[sexual union]], that is a certain type of [[bliss]]. But this is very short and very [[subject]] to downfall, very temporary. Also is not real complete [[bliss]] because although the fluid, the white in the man and [[red]] in the woman, although the certain fluid is melted, but is not from the [[highest]] [[chakras]]. They are melting from certain secondary [[nadis]], not from the [[central channel]], from secondary [[nadis]] below the level of {{Wiki|navel}}. Therefore it is {{Wiki|inferior}} melting and the [[bliss]] is also very short. As soon as the fluid leaves one's [[body]] the [[bliss]] has completely gone. The [[experience]] of [[bliss]] which is generated through the [[practice of meditation]], that is much {{Wiki|superior}} than the ordinary
 +
 
 +
[[experience]], the very short temporary [[experience]] of the [[bliss]]. So this is something which is generated by the power of one's [[meditation]] and it comes not only from the lower part of the [[body]] but it also comes right from the top of the [[crown of the head]] through the [[central channel]]. So stage by stage the [[experience]] of the [[bliss]] increases and is very strong and very great and when it reaches at the end of the, the lower end of the [[nadi]] in the end of the {{Wiki|organ}}, it is not emitted, it is not let out, rather the end of the [[nadi]] is closed with the [[letter]] PA, so this stops the fluid going out. From there it again goes reverse upward, then again from the end of the [[nadi]] to the, from the end of the {{Wiki|organ}} to the [[root]], then again to the {{Wiki|navel}}, then to the [[heart]], then to the neck and up to the [[crown of the head]]. This reverse order, during this reverse order of the fluid, one [[experiences]] even greater [[bliss]] that the
 +
 
 +
when it falls down. When the fluid has completely reached on top then it abides there and it never {{Wiki|decreases}}. The [[bliss]] also never degenerates and [[bliss]] is maintained for [[kalpas]] and [[kalpas]] without ever {{Wiki|degeneration}}, so it is very different from the ordinary type of {{Wiki|sexual}} [[bliss]]. So [[Je Rinpoche]] says now for tonight he would like to stop here. Still not very much is left from the stage of completion. The third, fourth and fifth grades are still to be explained tomorrow and the last is yugananda which is very important. It is said in the [[tantra]] to even to have [[understanding]]. Just [[understanding]] of the yugananda is a great [[accumulation of merit]], even greater than somebody who is accomplished in the [[stage of generation]]. So it is considered very powerful and very great [[accumulation of merit]]. So therefore, it is important to know this and try to understand as good as we can, and [[Je Rinpoche]] will try to explain. Of course
  
right side is Maitraya and on the left side is Chittigharba. On the two sides of the [[South]] door there is [[Vajrapani]] and [[Akashagarba]] with a [[yellow]] [[body]]. In the [[Western]] gate there is Avalokitishvara and [[Manjushri]] with [[red]] [[body]]. Then in the [[North]] on the two sides of the [[Northern]] gate there is Samantrabadra and Discomveni, the two, [[green]]. So although they are all fully [[enlightened]] [[Buddhas]], but they are in [[appearance]] like [[Bodhisattvas]], so they are called the eight sattvas. So they are the five Tatagathas and eight [[goddesses]], and [[eight Bodhisattvas]]. So these [[deities]] such as the [[Bodhisattvas]] they are not complete, sort of leaning against the wall, they are quite near the wall, but still some [[space]] behind them. Now inside the corridors and in the center of the corridor there is Yamandati, croada Yamandata, dark [[body]]. [[South]] there is Dipanjadati, white [[body]]. [[West]] there is Pamadati, [[red]]. In the [[North]] there is Begndati with
+
to explain the [[complete stage]] of completion is, it is too vast, it is too complex and too vast to be shortened into few words, in few sessions of [[teaching]]. It may last for months and months, even the text concerning the stage of completion. For example there is a [[great commentary]] by [[Je Tsongkhapa]] which is a big volume and then for example the great [[Indian masters]] [[Chandrakirti]]. [[Chandrakirti]] has composed great text on the commentary on [[tantra]] which is very big volume. [[Chandrakirti]] has composed various other texts but there are two which are most outstanding in his works which are known among the great [[Indian]] [[pundits]] as the {{Wiki|Sun}} and [[Moon]] of the [[World]], that is his [[great commentary]] which is to the [[Madhyamaka]] which is called The Clear [[Word]]. Then this commentary on [[tantra]] which is called The [[Clear Light]]. Those two are the most outstanding works and like that they are great many works and commentaries by great [[masters]]  
  
blue [[body]] and [[black face]]. Now on the [[Southeast]] that's the corner, [[Southeast]] corner on the inside, corner of the mansion there is Achilla, black {{Wiki|color}}. [[Southwest]] corner there is Turgranda, also black {{Wiki|color}}. In [[Northwest]] there is Dinilananda a blue {{Wiki|color}}. [[Northeast]] there is [[Mahabala]], black also. Then now the Ushnishachakravati, this one croada is above the [[deity]] just under the {{Wiki|canopy}} there is a little place for, reserved for itself and is blue {{Wiki|color}}. Then under the [[central deity]] inside that little room there is Sumbaranza which is a blue {{Wiki|color}}. So all these ten croadas are very [[wrathful]], very powerful looking [[form]]. They are all [[standing]] up and right leg is stretched and left is like bent. All the other [[deities]] inside the [[mandala]] they are all sitting in [[vajra asana]] and all [[peaceful form]]. The central figure, the [[Vajradhara]] or [[Akshobya]], is in [[vajra asana]], cross legged [[vajra asana]] position, and the [[consort]] is  
+
of [[India]] like [[Nagarjuna]], [[Nagabodhi]], [[Chandrakirti]], [[Aryadeva]] and so on. And [[in Tibet]] also there are many commentaries on [[tantra]], but a few outstanding ones are those of the great 66
in [[padmasana]], the [[lotus position]]. All the [[peaceful deities]] are clad in jeweled ornaments and [[celestial]] silken garments. All the croadas are adorned with [[precious]] ornaments as well as the {{Wiki|snake}} ornaments. On the [[upper body]] there is the silken shawl and lower part is clad in [[tiger skin]]. So these are the [[deities]] for the instant generation of special [[visualization]]. So these specially [[visualized]] [[deities]] they are called, afterwards they all must come in our [[body]] and the actual places within our [[body]], but before that since they are already generated in the [[form]] of the [[Buddhas]], they must perform the [[deeds]] of the [[Buddhas]], the [[activities]] of the [[Buddha]]. So when all these [[deities]] have been generated, then we should send [[rays of light]] from our {{Wiki|chest}} and call back all the [[sentient beings]] in the [[universe]]. So there are various ways of these [[sentient beings]] entering into the [[mandala]]. Here we should [[visualize]] them entering
+
 +
[[translator]] [[Marpa]]. There are a few works on [[tantra]], and then in the later time [[Je Tsongkhapa]] composed. He composed various texts covering various aspects of the [[dharma]]. Out of those, the most outstanding one is his work on [[Madhyamaka]] which is called Tnungya, Tnungya is a [[great commentary]] about the view. Then his great work on what is called The [[Path]] of The [[Tantra]], then specifically on the stage of completion is there is a commentary which is called also The [[Clear Lamp]] is a big volume. Those are very outstanding works where he has taken the [[essence]] of all the great [[tantras]] and their commentaries of the great
  
into the [[mandala]] from every [[direction]], they come through the wall without any obstruction, they just come in and all [[sentient beings]] are settled down inside the [[mandala]]. Then from the [[blissful]] union of the [[deity]], the central figure with [[consort]], then [[rays of light]] spread out. So these [[rays of light]] coming from the [[blissful]] union of the [[deity]] with the [[consort]] {{Wiki|touch}} all [[sentient beings]] there, and by the {{Wiki|touch}} of these rays then all their [[sufferings]] and [[cause]] of [[sufferings]], [[impurities]] are completely cleaned and they all obtain this [[highest]] undefiled [[state of bliss]] {{Wiki|physically}} and [[mentally]]. They all become [[Vajrasattvas]], and after becoming [[Vajrasattvas]] they all take leave and go out again through the walls and so on, in every [[direction]], and reside in the [[Buddha fields]]. By this then, one should generate a very {{Wiki|sincere}}, very [[happy]] [[state]], very rejoiceful [[state of mind]], by the [[accomplishment]] that one has made
+
[[Indian masters]] and put into, compiled into a very precise, clear commentary which is a very good text to study. So there are, the stage of completion is not at all a simple thing to just explain in a short time. It is a very, to understand it correctly one really needs to do intensive studies about this. However, tomorrow [[Je Rinpoche]] will explain some of the main points about the stage of completion. That's all for tonight.  
 +
 +
Concerning the stage of completion, there are different ways, different [[tantras]], like if there are five rays, stages of completion according to [[Guhyasamaja tantra]], and then the same [[five stages]] according to [[Chakrasamvara tantra]], and also [[Yamantaka tantra]] and others. So all they are slightly different in certain aspects, certain {{Wiki|emphasis}} and so on. However they are all complete, all these [[five stages]]. Whatever one practices all leads to the same goal. In [[Kalachakra tantra]] it is known as the joining to the six-limb of [[liberation]], that is the whole stage of completion. Except for a few little differences and
  
helping the [[sentient beings]] and establishing them to a [[state of Buddhahood]]. At this time we have not accomplished really the [[stage of generation]], we are trying, we are trying to practice the [[stage of generation]]. Without trying or without practicing the [[stage of generation]] there is no way to accomplish it. When we actually accomplish the [[stage of generation]], then all the [[deities]] as we generate they actually come into [[existence]] as we create and they become vivid and can be seen and sort of {{Wiki|tangible}}, they become real. So when we attain the [[accomplishment]] of the [[stage of generation]], all the [[deities]] become very clear, very vivid and {{Wiki|tangible}}, but still it is not a real actualization of the [[deities]], and also we cannot help the [[sentient beings]] in the real effective way. So the actualization of the [[deity]], that is the [[Buddhahood]], that is the [[Enlightenment]], fully [[Enlightenment]]. That comes later, but already in the [[stage of generation]] they become these [[deities]] as you [[visualize]] them, they become more and more vivid and real and so that's what we are now trying to achieve. In the stage of completion, then we begin to create still a more advanced and still much more {{Wiki|subtle}} and advanced [[forms]] of the [[deities]]. So although at the [[moment]] it is only our [[visualization]], it [[exists]] only in our [[imagination]], no other [[people]] can see, it [[exists]] in your [[mind]]; however, we shouldn't think that this kind of thing has no use or it has no effect at all use for [[sentient beings]]. Even trying to [[visualize]] a little bit of such a part, a little part of such a [[mandala]] is already a very powerful [[cause]] for [[accumulation of merit]]. So after completing this work for the [[sentient beings]] or this [[activity]] of [[Buddha]], helping [[sentient beings]], then all these [[deities]] created, instantly created [[deities]] then should come in our [[body]]. So for that then we in the [[form]] of
+
certain particular terminologies and so on and a few ways of classifying certain things, the [[Kalachakra tantra]] also has the same [[five stages]] of the stage of completion, all complete. Then there is a specific {{Wiki|matter}} developing the stage of completion according to the position of [[Naropa]] which is called the Six Practices of [[Naropa]] and there are [[six practices]] on [[Naropa]] and [[six practices]] on Neguma and there are two [[traditions]]. However the [[six practices]] of [[Naropa]] is very, is something which is in all schools, all [[four schools of Tibetan Buddhism]]. All those [[six practices]] of [[Naropa]] which are practiced [[in Tibet]], they are all [[identical]], they are all from one [[tradition]] and it is the same. It is the kind of practice which is more suiting, more fit to a [[person]] who is practicing the [[Chakrasamvara tantra]]. So the [[Guhyasamaja tantra]] of both the [[stage of generation]] and completion is more complex. There are more elaborated, there are more things in there. In [[Chakrasamvara]] there are a few different [[traditions]] within [[Chakrasamvara]] beginning from various [[Indian]] [[siddhis]] and that Reprada,  
[[Akshobya]] from the [[HUM]] in our {{Wiki|chest}}, [[rays of light]] send out [[red]] {{Wiki|color}}, [[rays of light]], it says "hook like rays". It doesn't necessarily mean [[visualize]] them like in a shape like a hook at the end, but it means that it has power to hook someone or to catch or to draw back. So therefore, these [[rays of light]] {{Wiki|touch}} all the [[deities]] inside the [[mandala]] and it attracts these [[deities]] inside our [[body]], starting from [[Vairocana]] up to the Sumbaranza, they all come in our [[body]], enter in our [[body]] and they settle down in our different parts of the [[body]]. So there are only 32 [[deities]], no 31 [[deities]] which you can actually take in, because [[Akshobya]] is actually one’s [[self]], you cannot take in [[Akshobya]] from outside, so that make it 31. And we shouldn't think that some completely separate {{Wiki|individuals}} have entered out [[body]], and so one [[feels]] sort of uncomfortable with many [[people]] inside. We should think that these [[Buddhas]], in fact, they are of
 
  
the [[nature]] of our parts, such as our [[senses]] and [[sense organs]] and [[elements]] and so on, these are the [[deities]], and so they integrate, they become one with our parts. So the [[five aggregates]], the [[form]], [[feeling]], [[perception]], [[Wikipedia:Volition (psychology)|volition]] and [[consciousness]]. So the [[consciousness aggregate]] is one’s [[self]], is [[Akshobya]], that is the [[principal]] [[nature]]. So therefore, these four Tatagathas they come in and they become one with our other [[aggregates]], [[consciousness]] is one’s [[self]] and then the [[Vairocana]] settles in our head and [[Amitaba]] in our {{Wiki|throat}} and Ratsambavha in our [[heart]] and the Ammoghisiddhi at the [[root]] of our secret {{Wiki|organ}}.  
+
the [[tradition]] of Reprada is most elaborate. According to the [[tradition]] of the Gandabarda, the [[Indian]] [[siddhi]], all [[five stages]] they are all complete, but they are not easier, they are more up to the point. For the [[practice of Vajrayogini]] and then [[Tara]] Chittimani in their [[tantra]] the stage of completion is very concise, it is not complicated to practice and very concise. They also contain all the main points. Also much less {{Wiki|recitation}}, much less to [[visualize]], but very [[essential]], that all the points, nothing is missing, all in there. There are so many different ways one can take, but all lead to the same goal, that is the [[state]] of the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] yugananda [[Buddhahood]]. To explain all aspects of the practice is quite impossible. In a short time however, [[Je Rinpoche]] has tried to explain the most [[essential]] things, important things, as much as he could, and also he very [[compassionately]] [[thinks]] that the [[translator]] is reliable so therefore he [[feels]] to say some things, more things. It is not obligatory when you have received the [[teaching]] on basis of the [[Guhyasamaja]] then
 +
 
 +
you are not obliged to practice, but this [[Guhyasamaja tantra]], although it is hard, of course if one can practice, if one has good stock of {{Wiki|intentions}} and [[patience]] and [[effort]] it is very very beneficial, very good. If not, then still one can take something which is more suiting to one's [[mind]] and all these important points of the [[tantra]] will anyway be applicable to any of the [[path]] one takes. Then one should learn about these practices, must learn about these practices and then try to put into practice. But to practice a lot of different things simultaneously is a [[cause]] for [[confusion]]. At the beginning you have great [[enthusiasm]] and very excited about something to practice. Therefore we take lots, whatever comes by, we take everything and now after we get complete, we take lots of notes and after we read this mess we are not able to read our [[own]] notes. Even if we are able then we don't understand what it means because there is some, sometimes they are taken in little odd ways. So then we face lots of complications like this. Therefore it is better to take few practices,
 +
but do it as precisely and as properly and sincerely as one can. Tomorrow morning there will be one more session of the [[teaching]], then in the evening tomorrow is the 10th of the 12th month which is an important day, a [[tantric]] day, so therefore we will offer [[puja]], Sok [[offering]].  
 
   
 
   
...they are, all the [[essence]] of our [[aggregates]] and they are sort of integrated with our [[aggregates]], but they don't lost their [[form]], they still remain in their {{Wiki|distinct}} and very clear [[form]] of the [[deities]]. So it is more comfortable if you, before they enter they sort of {{Wiki|diminish}}, {{Wiki|decrease}} in size and then a
+
There is a question which says if one realizes [[shunyata]] perfectly he doesn't immediately generate [[Bodhichitta]]. It seems that it should occur because you have seen a [[quality]], the [[suffering]] [[nature]] of all [[sentient beings]]. But [[Je Rinpoche]] says it is not necessary then that when one realizes [[shunyata]] that it automatically leads to the [[development]] of [[Bodhichitta]]. [[Shunyata]] means the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[true nature]] of every [[phenomena]]. That one can realize if one has enough power of the [[wisdom]] and [[concentration of mind]] and so on. Of course that doesn't mean that one remains still [[ignorant]] about [[suffering]] of the [[sentient beings]]. [[Suffering]] of the [[sentient beings]] is [[realized]] and however it does not lead automatically to generate the [[Bodhichitta]]. To generate the [[Bodhichitta]] one needs a special [[effort]], because generation of [[Bodhichitta]] is not enough just to see the [[suffering]] of [[sentient beings]], but one must build the [[courage]] in one's [[mind]], to exchange oneself with other [[sentient beings]], to take the full {{Wiki|responsibility}} of separating all [[sentient beings]] from their [[suffering]] and to establish them to the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[state]] of [[happiness]] by oneself. It needs an extra [[courage]] of [[mind]]. It is not just enough to realize the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[nature]] of all [[phenomena]]. Therefore it is a method aspect which needs a special [[effort]], needs a special [[courage]]. So that is why even though the aurea chiveacaws and pritakas have [[realized]] [[shunyata]], but still they have not developed a [[Bodhichitta]] because it needs a separate [[effort]]. But it doesn't mean they are [[ignorant]] about the [[suffering]] of the [[sentient beings]]. They are concerned about [[sentient beings]], they also help [[sentient beings]] in various ways, with the full [[boundless]] [[mind]] and so on. But still, the help is very limited compared to that of the [[Bodhisatva]].
 +
 +
[[Je Rinpoche]] said about the {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[sadhana]] we will do a short [[Guhyasamaja]] [[sadhana]] so that we can record it and learn the melody and so on. [[Je Rinpoche]] says that if one can practice, of course, the longest version it is very good which basis that [[Rinpoche]] gave this [[teaching]]. But it is rather long
  
little one about the size of one's thumb then enters our [[body]] and dwell in these different spots. So then the four [[goddesses]], [[consorts]] of the Tatagathas, they enter and they start from here Kerkarmo in the {{Wiki|navel}} and Mamake in the [[heart]] and no the [[Chima]] in the {{Wiki|navel}}, {{Wiki|correction}}, and Mamake in the [[heart]] and Kerkarmo in the neck and [[Tara]] in the head. If this text is someday translated, then you can read them very clear. However [[Je Rinpoche]] now will give just a brief explanation of them. This completes the [[5 aggregates]] and the [[four elements]] that is the [[earth]], [[water]], [[fire]] and [[wind]]. But these [[four elements]] does not mean those 36
+
and there is a {{Wiki|medium}} one which is in that [[prayer]] [[book]] if one can find it, that is the {{Wiki|medium}} one. Still there are very short ones. Of course they are not the complete [[sadhana]] at all. However, it would be still good if one can recite the life-fulfilling kind of commitment. It is good to recite one very short one which is also in that [[book]] just with 3 pages of something. Short one so this is good. [[Je Rinpoche]] says that we will not recite 67
 
   
 
   
external [[elements]] like external [[water]] and [[fire]] and so on. So it means the {{Wiki|solidity}} aspect of our [[body]] is the [[earth]], and the liquid aspect that is the
+
tomorrow because there is not much time, but any of us can read it and you can record it, that is alright. The names of the [[Indian]] [[guru]] you can get, I can show you in the text.
[[water]], and the heat aspect that is the [[fire]], and all the levels of [[energy]] or the [[wind]] or the [[energy]], there are many levels up to the gross level of the [[breath]]. These are all the [[wind element]] in us. So these four [[goddesses]] are integrated with these [[four elements]]. So then the {{Wiki|organs}}, the [[senses]] are the Kenshe, to that means the [[visual]] the [[eye]], {{Wiki|nose}}, and {{Wiki|ear}} and {{Wiki|tongue}} and [[body]] and the [[mind]], then all the {{Wiki|muscles}} and veins and {{Wiki|nervous system}} which is all one, then all the joints, there are 360 major and minor joints. So there are 8 parts. So although it would be difficult to [[visualize]] or to think by one all these different [[elements]] and so on in your [[meditation]]. However, [[Rinpoche]] has explained it because we need to know these [[deities]], how these [[deities]] correspond to our [[own]] parts. Then there are [[5 sense objects]], [[form]], [[sound]], etc. So the ones [[consort]] which is Vajratouch, then those other four [[goddesses]],
+
the Vajraform, Vajrasound, and so on, those five [[goddesses]] are the [[five sense objects]]. So then there are limbs, ten limbs, that means two arms, two hands. So usually there are five, we usually say [[five limbs]], two arms, two {{Wiki|legs}}, and the head. But here there are more because the two hands and two shoulders and a {{Wiki|mouth}} and the secret {{Wiki|organ}} and the two knees and the [[crown of the head]], and the two heels. So these 10 limbs of our [[body]] become the 10 croadas. So the Sumbaranza is of the [[nature]] of the two heels, but there is one Sumbaranza and two heels. Before they enter, before Sumbaranza enters the Sumbaranza becomes two and so one, so they enter into the two heels and they stay there. So in the {{Wiki|recitation}} of the [[sadhana]] it goes very smoothly. So it says the [[Vairocana]] in the head, it is all there mentioned in the [[sadhana]], so to help our [[visualization]]. So with [[Vairocana]] in the head and [[Amitaba]] in the neck. So there is a
+
[[Je Rinpoche]] has [[taught]] us yesterday that when the [[practitioner]] of the [[stage of generation]] [[meditates]] on that {{Wiki|subtle}} point in the end of the [[nadi]] and so by this one, the [[experience]] is great [[bliss]]. This [[blissful state of mind]] fully [[realizing]] [[shunyata]], fully absorbing [[shunyata]] and [[realizing]] [[shunyata]], then the [[wisdom]] or the [[mind]], [[wisdom]] of [[bliss]] and [[void]] in union itself then appearing in [[forms]] of the [[deities]] and so on. As soon as the [[practitioner]] can generate this kind of [[manifestation]] then he becomes a [[practitioner]] of the stage of completion. In the [[stage of generation]] all the [[deities]] in [[form]] that we generate,
  
little {{Wiki|correction}} Ratsambhava is not in the [[heart]], but rather in the {{Wiki|navel}}. The [[heart]] is the place for [[Akshobya]], but there is no [[Akshobya]] yet, so therefore, Ratsambhava in the {{Wiki|navel}}. Savranevaranagambeni, that is one of the [[Bodhisattva]] is in the {{Wiki|sexual}} {{Wiki|organ}}. So we should [[visualize]] them all inside the [[body]], not something like a statue, but like a living [[deity]] inside our [[body]]. Then again in the {{Wiki|navel}} there is Nircharochema [[goddess]], one of the first...  
+
they are all [[mental]] image, they are all in [[mental]] image. Therefore the [[stage of generation]] is called a practice which is sort of made up, which is sort of created, or made up practice, because here one makes up all these [[forms]] by one's [[mind]]. They are [[visualized]] all. That [[practitioner]] [[meditating]] on the {{Wiki|subtle}} point and channelizing the [[energy]] into the [[central channel]], and the [[energy]] entering in the [[central channel]], abiding there and begins to absorb. The [[mind]] [[experiences]] all the stages of dissolution, then also then the fluid from the [[crown of the head]] falling down through the [[central channel]] and as it comes and reaches these different [[chakras]] at different places, then what [[experience]] [[joy]], the supreme [[joy]], the [[extraordinary]] [[joy]] and the [[joy]] of the [[bliss]] of union.
 +
That [[fourth stage]] of [[bliss]], and when one [[experiences]] [[the fourth]] stage of [[bliss]], and that [[mind]], that [[state of mind]] then fully [[realizing]] [[shunyata]] and absorbs [[shunyata]]. All these things are not [[visualizing]]. Then in the stage of completion they are actually taking place, they are happening in [[reality]], not only just in [[mental]] image. When the [[practitioner]] of the completion continues to [[meditate]] and the [[energy]] continues to enter, abides and absorbs into the [[central channel]], then for still to -clear the [[central channel]] from all the {{Wiki|subtle}} [[obstacles]] one practices the [[pranayama]] of the [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}} and so this [[pranayama]] practice is the second stage which is called the [[solitude]], [[solitude]] {{Wiki|speech}}. Then still by continuing to [[meditate]] then all the [[energy]] in the [[body]]
 +
 
 +
will enter into the [[central channel]] except for a very {{Wiki|subtle}} what is called the all pervading the [[energy]], except for a very {{Wiki|subtle}} level of that all the rest of the [[energy]] in the [[body]] all enters into the [[central channel]]. Then the real process of the dissolution occurs exactly like at the time of the [[death]]. During the stage of the [[solitude]] [[body]] the [[energy]] enters into the [[central channel]] and begins to abide there and absorb. Then through the practice of [[solitude]] {{Wiki|speech}} that is the [[pranayama]] [[vajra]] {{Wiki|recitation}}, then the [[central channel]] is completely opened and by this all [[energy]] in our [[body]] they are all entered in the [[central channel]] and they all absorb there. Then as a result of that all the usual gross {{Wiki|conception}}, all the {{Wiki|conception}} of an [[object]], and [[subject]] and so on, all these conceptions, normal conceptions they all stop because the mount of these conceptions which is the energies they are already channelized and they are already absorbed, so therefore there are no more conceptions. So the [[mind]] in that [[state of mind]] is free from all the
 +
 +
[...]
 +
So [[in Tibet]] there were no hotels or no motels, so everyone, most of the travelers they carry all what they need on their back, and travel and stop wherever necessary and then make a [[fire]] and make tea and so on. So that [[pilgrim]] he was [[sleeping]] in a [[cave]]. He has finished his tea and so he has the tea bag and used it as a pillow and just [[sleeping]] very quietly in a [[cave]]. This other [[disciple]] roamed around the whole country everywhere, every possible place he searched. One night he searched everywhere and he found him in a [[cave]]. He was already on his way back somewhere, but anyway he was quite near from that
 +
place, there in a [[cave]]. So that [[disciple]] reported to his [[guru]] and his [[guru]] made a note of that date, that day when he finished the tea and so on. So he made a note and after the return of that [[pilgrim]] then he asked about it and it was exactly, it happened exactly on that very day that he finished his tea and he lied in that [[cave]] with the [[empty]] bag and everything was proved to be very correct. So from the beginning of entering into the practice of the stage of completion, if one begins also to practice the [[transformation]], the three transformations also in the [[sleep]], then one makes progress very speedily because all ones time is spent in [[meditation]], in waking and [[sleeping state]].  
 
   
 
   
Then in the [[heart]] there is Mamake, then in the neck there is Kurkarma, then [[Tara]] in the head. So [[Rinpoche]] says that in the {{Wiki|sex}} there is, this is also a place for the Savranevaranagambeni which will come after. First the {{Wiki|correction}} is I think the Ammogasiddhi, that is the Ammogasiddhi who comes first, not
+
At one time a great [[Indian siddha]] after [[attaining]] the [[realization]] of the stage of completion then he just slept for 12 years. So he was actually very busy during all those 12 years of [[sleep]] although outwardly he was just like a [[person]] {{Wiki|lying}} there all time, but for himself he has generated this [[illusory body]] and this [[illusory body]] has been working hard for all this time with the [[accumulation of merit]] and everything. After 12 years when he woke he has already reached the very advanced stage in the stage of completion, the [[solitude]] [[mind]], he has already [[attained]] that.
 +
 +
The practice of [[transforming]] the [[sleep]] is quite clear. [[Je Rinpoche]] has no time now to explain in detail, but it is quite precise in the commentary of Six Practices of [[Naropa]]. There are generally [[six practices]] of [[Naropa]] and [[six practices]] of [[Niguma]]. [[Niguma]] was a very great [[yogini]] and who has also compiled all the [[essence]], all the [[tantra]] into [[six practices]]. It is called Six [[Nigu]] Practice, and [[Naropa]] has also done in a similar way for the [[essence]] of the [[tantras]], in particularly the [[Chakrasamvara Tantra]]. Then also with the [[oral transmission]], direct instruction from the [[Vajrayogini]] who has appeared to [[Naropa]], then he has compiled all the [[essential]] practice into six points. So these stages of completion it is same in all the practices of Anutara [[tantra]], such as [[Guhyasamaja]], [[Yamantaka]], [[Chakrasamvara]], [[Vajrayogini]], [[Hevajra]] and all the practices in all the different parts, they are the same process of stage of completion.  
 +
 +
Now the [[practitioner]] [[attained]] the [[solitude]] [[mind]] where ones, all the energies have entered and absorbed into the [[central channel]] and one [[experiences]] exactly like at the time of [[death]] all these process of dissolution. The first entrance into the stage of completion, there are slight differences in different [[tantras]], like [[Guhyasamaja]] and it is that [[concentration]] on that {{Wiki|subtle}} point which is [[visualized]] in the end of the lower [[nadi]]. In [[Yamataka]] [[tantra]] the {{Wiki|subtle}} point is placed in the [[navel chakra]]. Although there are slightly different approaches like that, but 68
 +
 +
they all led to the same goal. That is to loosen the [[knot]] in the [[heart chakra]]. That is the actual aim, but to begin immediately from the [[heart]] is a great [[risk]] and it can [[cause]] great dangers. Therefore, in different [[tantras]] one begins from different [[chakras]]. Now we are in the stage of the [[solitude]] [[mind]]. Around here in the [[solitude]] {{Wiki|speech}} the need of the union of the [[consort]] is then sometimes there comes the need of the union with the [[consort]] in order to
 +
 
 +
help still to further to open the [[chakra]], the [[nadis]] and so on. However, then one goes through various different [[methods]], one goes through these process of dissolution and so on and reach the [[clear light state]]. Then out of that [[clear light state]], then the [[subtle energy]] generates in the [[form]] of White [[Vajradhara]] and separating it from all the [[body]], actually going out. That is [[illusory body]]. When we [[manifest]] in this White [[Vajradhara]] [[illusory body]], leaving our old [[body]], that is the [[moment]] where all the energies even [[the all-pervading one]], also dissolve and also enter into the [[channel]]. So it is exactly like real [[death]]. This [[illusory body]] is something which is very {{Wiki|subtle}} which has been explained with various different examples, sometimes like a {{Wiki|reflection}} of [[moon]] in the lake, and so on. Many, twelve different examples are given to help us to understand this [[illusory body]], but it is still very hard to understand
 +
 
 +
because we are so acquainted with the [[physical body]]. So we always think in terms of the [[physical body]], but in fact it is completely different. This [[illusory body]] has been explained with twelve different examples and so on, but that will take a very long time to explain those details. However, it is [[body of energy]] which can travel very speedily to any [[Buddhafields]] and like these and make [[offerings]] to the [[Buddhas]] and so on, so all engaged in various [[activities]] by [[accumulation of merit]]. Then it can return to the old [[body]] and then again come to [[life]] as usual. However, this [[illusory body]] is called impure one because we are still not completely free from the [[defilements]], the [[mental defilements]]. Although they are subdued but they are not completely eradicated. This is something which is produced by a kind of [[energy]] which is still together with the [[mind]] which is still with the [[defilements]], so therefore
 +
 
 +
it is also sort of impure production, that's why it is called impure [[body]]. This [[illusory body]] is completely, it [[exists]] of the [[nature]] of [[energy]], completely free of all the {{Wiki|matter}} and no, it is [[non-physical]] [[form]]. It is very [[pure]] in that [[sense]]. However, since it is in union with the [[mind]], the [[subtle mind]] which is still not free from the [[defilements]], so it is called impure [[body]]. So this impure [[body]] cannot actually become the [[Buddha's body]]. This impure [[body]] is something which has to be ceased, so therefore one applies two [[samadhis]], one is called je shig subsequent, literally subsequent dissolution, dissolving, and then the other one is called Renzin, that means [[grasping]], or ceasing as a whole. So there are two [[samadhis]], we apply those two [[samadhis]]. The first means first one let dissolve all the [[mandalas]] and one’s [[body]], outer [[body]], [[inner body]], all these kind of things from outside, going more deeper and deeper
  
the [[Bodhisattva]]. So this completes the [[five Buddhas]], Tatagathas, and the [[consorts]]. Now comes the turn of the [[Bodhisattvas]], so first Chittagharba. The Chittagharba also transforms into two, two [[bodies]], and they settle in our [[visual organ]], in the two [[eyes]], two Chittagharbas. In the two [[ears]] there are the two [[Vajrapanis]] also in two. One Ahkashgharba in the inside of the {{Wiki|nose}} and Lokitishvara, Avilokitishvara at the [[root]] of the {{Wiki|tongue}}, and [[Manjushri]] in the [[heart]] and in the secret {{Wiki|organ}} Savanievarana becomes in the [[Bodhisattva]], and Maitraya on the top of the head. And Samabatra (or some of the batra) multiply 360 [[forms]] and they dwell in all our joints in the [[body]]. Now comes the Mahacroadas. So Yamandati in the right hand. You can [[visualize]] them right inside the palm or in the first joint of the index finger. In the left Ranjadati, left hand. And Iagiva or Pamadati in the {{Wiki|mouth}}, that is again in the same place as
+
inside into the [[HUM]] and the [[HUM]] also completely disappears stage by stage into [[emptiness]]. That is called the subsequent dissolving. The second one is, the whole complete ceasing is one that dissolves all the [[body]] completely instead of successful dissolution dissolving at simultaneous dissolving. So one must apply these two different [[methods]] still in the impure [[body]], [[illusory body]], one must [[meditate]]. First it is, dissolution takes place in the [[mind]], after that still [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]] and making or going through the process of dissolving and [[meditating]] on [[shunyata]] by the power of the [[absorption]] in [[shunyata]], then finally one completely eradicates all the [[delusions]], all the kleisha [[avarana]] will be completely eradicated. When that happens then together this [[impure illusory body]] will also cease to [[exist]]. By the continuation of the [[meditation]], the [[absorption]] into [[shunyata]] and then kind of [[visualizing]] the process
  
the Vajeataste [[goddess]] that is placed at the [[root]] of the {{Wiki|tongue}}, the Hiagiva is also at the [[root]] of the {{Wiki|tongue}}, where Avalokitishvara was. In the [[secret vajra]] there is Amitakundalini. Amitakundalini or Begnindati is the same. [[Achala]] in the right shoulder and Turkiraza in the left shoulder, Nelidanda in the right knee, [[Mahabala]] in the left knee, and in the [[crown of the head]] Ushnishachakravati, one who lived there on top of the [[mandala]] is now in the [[crown of the head]]. In the two heels Sumbaranza, two Sumbaranzas. So they are all complete, now all the [[deities]] are all complete. So these [[deities]] are integrated with the 32 parts of our, or qualities or parts of our [[body]] and [[mind]]. So these [[deities]] [[visualizing]] them in the different locations in our [[body]] is not very easy to [[visualize]] right from the beginning, but as one practices and acquaints one’s [[mind]] they are not that difficult, but this is one of the important
+
of [[meditation]] where one becomes [[HUM]] and [[HUM]] also dissolving only [[nada]] becomes [[emptiness]]. Then again go through the process of dissolution. First in [[mind]], then through acquainting more and developing the acquaintance after it happens in [[reality]]. That completely ceases the [[illusory body]], is completely ceased and once more the [[clear light state]] is [[realized]]. This [[clear light state]] which is [[realized]] with the [[cessation]] of this [[impure illusory body]] is called the actual [[clear light]] or the [[clear light]] of the meaning of [[the fourth]] stage of completion, in the [[path]] of completion. So this [[absorption]] of [[shunyata]], it is in one session. The first part of the session is called "uninterrupted part" and the second part of the [[meditation]] is called "fully {{Wiki|liberated}} part" and with the power of the fully {{Wiki|liberated}} part then one eradicates all the kleisha [[avarana]] and one becomes an [[arhat]]. After abiding in this [[clear light state]], in
  
parts of the [[sadhana]]. So as [[Je Rinpoche]] has explained before the stages of dissolution at the time of [[death]], and these various [[experiences]], the [[mirage]], the smoke, the spark and the dim {{Wiki|light}} and then the reddish, the whitish and the reddish and the darkish and the [[clear light]], those stages have been explained. So now we should, these [[deities]] in our [[body]] they now will begin to dissolve gradually, not all simultaneously, but by little group by group. At this stage then we should, this corresponds exactly to that process of dissolution at the time of the [[death]] and so we should in the [[meditation]] think we are going through the process and also [[experience]] those inner [[signs]]. So when we begin the {{Wiki|recitation}} which is DAG YUR MY from my [[own]] [[body]] and then it begins the process of dissolution. So first the [[deities]] which dissolve [[Vairocana]], so the first group which dissolve those [[deities]] of the [[form]] [[nature]], everything to do
+
actual [[clear light]], after remaining in that [[state]] for a while then once again one we must awake from there, then again the [[energy]], there is now the [[pure]] [[energy]] which is free from [[obstacle]], free from [[defilement]], that [[pure]] [[energy]] then produces once again a [[body]] an [[interested]] [[body]].  
 +
 +
[[Je Rinpoche]] says there are a few discussions about this point which are not necessary to be translated. Now the [[mind]] which is now free from all the [[delusions]] and has [[attained]] that [[cessation]] of all the kleisha [[avaranas]] and so [[attaining]] the [[state]] of an [[arhat]]. Now this is again in union with a [[subtle energy]] which is now called "[[pure]] [[energy]]" because it is free from [[defilements]]. This [[energy]] again produces an [[illusory body]] which is [[pure illusory body]] and
  
with the [[form]], the [[earth element]] and so on, so [[Vairocana]] and [[Locana]], or Chaima, then also the [[Bodhisattva]] Chittigharba who are two in the [[eyes]] and also the Vajraform, the [[goddess]] Vajraform, are also in the [[eyes]] and out of the [[Bodhisattva]] Maitraya which is in the [[crown of the head]] and Yamandati the croada in the right hand and also the Atilla in the right shoulder. So these [[deities]], these first group of [[deities]] they dissolve, and they become [[empty]] in our [[body]]. At that time we should think that now the [[earth element]] of the {{Wiki|solidity}} and the [[form]] [[aggregate]] as completely dissolved. When these seven [[deities]] dissolve, then one again gives very clear view of [[Shunyata]] so the [[mind]], our [[mind]] which is in a [[state]] of great [[bliss]], that is something which should be maintained all through, so that very [[blissful state of mind]] is completely absorbed into [[Shunyata]], into [[emptiness]]. By dissolving all these [[deities]] of these parts of
+
also in White [[Vajradhara]] with a [[consort]]. So this [[illusory body]] now is together with the [[state of mind]] which is free from delusion-obstructions ([[klesha]] [[avarana]]) which is in the [[state]] of [[clear light]] and is now together with the [[illusory body]] at the same time. That is called the first union or the first yugananda or the yugananda of the {{Wiki|training}}. Why it is called yugananda of the union of the {{Wiki|training}} is still the jenera yugananda or the {{Wiki|subtle}} imprint of the [[delusions]] are still not abandon. So therefore, it is not fully {{Wiki|perfect}}, but very near the [[Buddhahood]]. So here then the [[practitioner]] engages in what is called chirpa, this charia of the [[tantric]], this charia engages in various [[activities]], all the practices, all the [[activities]], [[extraordinary]], abnormal [[activities]]. So this [[extraordinary]] or abnormal [[activities]] of the herias, that helps very much the [[person]] in his [[meditation]]. As we see in the [[life]] of the
  
ourselves, then we should think that our [[mind]] [[experiences]] this [[mirage]] like {{Wiki|atmosphere}}. Now next move is [[Ratnasambhava]] in the {{Wiki|navel}}, Mamake in the neck in the [[heart]], the two [[Vajrapanis]] in the two [[ears]], also the two Vajrasound [[goddesses]] also in the [[ears]], then Turkiranza in the left hand, so Trukiranza in the right hand and no Pranidati in the right hand and Turkiranza in the right shoulder, no in the left hand and the left shoulder. So [[Ratnasambhava]], Mamake, Pranjadati, and Turkiranza, this group dissolves into {{Wiki|light}} and is [[empty]] again. So when these six [[deities]] dissolve, then again one’s [[mind]] is even more deeply, each time deeper and deeper absorbed into the [[emptiness]], into the [[shunyata]], and by this the [[state of bliss]] also increases each time. So that is the stage where [[water elements]] are dissolved into the [[fire]] so smoke like [[experience]] occurs in the [[mind]]. We should at this time think actually that we are going
+
many great [[masters]] of the {{Wiki|past}}, [[Indiana]] and [[Tibetans]], for example the great [[Indian]] [[siddhas]] if we read, most of them have been [[monks]] who observed all the shelas very precisely, every little shela very precisely, and who has been already very great [[scholars]] and studied all the [[dharma]] very extensively and gained a very good {{Wiki|learning}}, and after they have put all these into practice and [[attained]] all the realizations on the common [[path]]. And on the basis of that then they enter into the [[path]] of the [[tantra]] and first practice the [[stage of generation]], practice very appropriately, accomplish it and then stage of completion. And when some of them have [[attained]] very advanced [[state of mind]], then they leave all their usual way of [[life]], and they change their [[life]] completely and then they roam around the country doing all kinds of crazy things. Because at that [[moment]] they have reached the actual [[state]] where this kind
  
through these forces of dissolution and the [[water element]] is now completely dissolved and it is smoke like [[experience]] occurring in your [[mind]]. The [[mind]] remains in a [[state]] of complete [[calmness]] and [[emptiness]] and [[blissful]]. Now next move is [[Amitaba]] in the {{Wiki|throat}}, also the [[goddess]] Kirkarmo in the neck, and Akashagharba in the {{Wiki|nose}} and Vajrasmell [[goddess]] which is also in the {{Wiki|nose}} and Hayagava or Panidati in the {{Wiki|mouth}}, and the Nelidanda in the right knee. So these [[five deities]] dissolve into {{Wiki|light}} and become [[empty]]. This dissolving [[deities]] again [[cause]] the [[mind]] absorbing more deeply into [[shunyata]], the [[emptiness]] becomes even more clear and also [[bliss]] also increased and one [[experiences]] that spark like {{Wiki|atmosphere}}. One 37
+
of {{Wiki|behavior}} is a very beneficial factor, every important factor [[to increase]] their [[realization]] and [[meditation]]. So they have reached that level. They are not doing because they went crazy or something, but it is a necessary point. For example there was a great [[Indian master]] who was called Chalvarey, called his Chalvarey, and he was also very great [[pundit]] at first, very [[great master]] and after he began his practice of [[tantra]] and [[stage of generation]] and completion and so he had a [[Tibetan]] [[disciple]], a [[Tibetan]] who was called a [[great master]] Turnbo, Turnbo Azure and he came several times to see this [[master]], this [[siddha]], and he saw him the first time, second time, then the third time 69
 
   
 
   
  
  
should think that the [[fire element]] has dissolved into the [[wind]]. Now next goes Ammogasiddhi in the {{Wiki|sex}}. So Ammogasiddhi in the {{Wiki|sex}} and [[Tara]] in the head, Avalokitishvara in the [[root]] of the {{Wiki|tongue}}. Also the Vajrataste [[goddess]] also in the same place, and [[Bodhisattva]] Savanevaranagambeni which is at the end of the {{Wiki|organ}}, the secret {{Wiki|organ}}, and also in the same place there is a [[Vajra]] ¬ so also one's [[consort]] which is on ones lap, that also dissolves through the secret {{Wiki|organ}}, and by this then she also dissolves into {{Wiki|light}}, so Vajratouch, that is Vajratouch. Then Begnindati or [[Amritakundalini]] is the same croada which is also in the {{Wiki|sexual}} {{Wiki|organ}} and also [[Mahabala]] in the left knee and all the Samantravajras in our joints. So all this big group of [[deities]] dissolves into {{Wiki|light}} and becomes [[empty]]. At this [[moment]] we should think that this [[experience]] of very {{Wiki|stable}} sort of dim {{Wiki|light}} of the moving [[fire]] spots stops and then
+
when his [[master]] had reached a very advanced [[state]] of the stage of completion and reached that point where one has to engage in this abnormal [[activities]] or behaviors. So third time when Turnbo Azure went to see his [[master]], then his [[master]] is living in a [[cave]] with wife and children and then also [[hunting]], lots of [[animals]], deers and so on, especially on the day of arrival of his [[disciple]] he had hunted lots of [[animals]] and he has skinned them and so very bloody {{Wiki|atmosphere}}, his [[master]] was waiting for the [[disciple]]. But his [[master]] being very practice of [[devotion]], very strong and [[faithful]], very firm didn't change anything, didn't occur even a [[doubt]] about this, and when he went to his [[guru]] and [[guru]] then gave him few very important teachings and instructions and he returned to [[Tibet]] and practiced them and he himself also [[attained]] very advanced [[state]], he became very advanced [[yogi]] of the [[tantra]]. Soon after, Chalvarey
 +
 
 +
the [[Indian master]] has [[attained]] also yugananda [[state]], [[Buddhahood]]. Before one attains [[full enlightenment]], that [[person]] who is developing the yugananda, or the union, attains the eight qualities of [[Ishvara]], that is like powerful, like [[extraordinary]] [[powers]]. When that [[person]] attains these eight [[Ishvara]] [[powers]], that means literally like eight [[powers]] lordship, something like lordship, [[Ishvara]] lordship. Then when he attains these great [[powers]] it also [[causes]] great {{Wiki|disturbance}} in all the abode of [[maras]], shakes the land of the [[maras]] and so on and [[causes]] a great {{Wiki|disturbance}} there and they already begin to {{Wiki|worry}} and so on. However, they are eight such great qualities and at that point then one has to make a great [[offering]] to ones [[guru]]. So one should make a great [[offering]] to the [[guru]] and receive the final instruction. This final instruction is received at the end of the day and as night begins one receives the final
  
the {{Wiki|atmosphere}} is filled with a very dim, very dim and [[calm]] {{Wiki|light}}.. Now comes Ushnishchakravati on the [[crown of the head]]. So that Ushnishchakravati dissolves into {{Wiki|light}}. So when Ushnishchakravati dissolves, then we should think that our [[mind]] and also the [[experience]] of [[bliss]] and [[absorption]] into [[shunyata]], this apprehension of [[emptiness]] becomes very very deep, the [[mind]] becomes very very {{Wiki|subtle}}, much more {{Wiki|subtle}} than those four previous stages. Then one [[experiences]] a whitish {{Wiki|light}}. Next croada is Sumbaranza, so the two Sumbaranzas in our two heels dissolves in {{Wiki|light}} and becomes [[empty]]. So by this then one [[experiences]] in that sort of whitish, very [[calm]] whitish {{Wiki|light}} changes into an {{Wiki|atmosphere}} or like a very clear [[space]] filled with some kind of dim reddish {{Wiki|light}}. After that now there remains only [[Manjushri]] in the [[heart]] and [[Manjushri]] dissolves into [[clear light]]. As soon as [[Manjushri]] dissolves into the [[clear light]] then this [[experience]] of the reddish {{Wiki|light}} and completely turned off, then there is like a black- out. So this stage is in two parts, first part remains [[conscious]] of this black out [[experience]] and the second part one becomes completely [[unconscious]], without any [[object]]. So this is like a preparation this practice of, this [[meditation]]. We are {{Wiki|training}} ourselves, [[combining]] this process of the [[death]] with the process of this [[meditation]] and so by this if one accomplishes this practice, if one makes a good progress in this practice, then there is the possibility after to change the process when it actually occurs. We are all [[subject]] to that sooner or later, so when it actually occurs, then instead of letting it sort of uncontrolled in the usual way, we completely change the whole process and then instead of normal [[death]] and [[intermediate]] and so on, we change it into a real [[path]], [[path]] leading to the
+
instructions and then begins the [[meditation]] and after midnight then one attains [[full enlightenment]], the full yugananda. Now the [[body]] still remains in the same [[form]], the [[form]] is the same. It is a [[Vajradhara]] [[form]] which is [[pure]] in its [[essence]]. It is the [[appearance]] of the [[Wisdom]] and now this, not only the [[body]] but the [[mind]] also is not free from all the [[obstacles]], even the last one the jenera [[avarana]]. So therefore, one becomes [[Buddha]]. By the power of vajra-like [[meditation]], then one completely destroys the last [[obstacle]], the jenera [[avarana]] and when this is eradicated, when this last [[obstacle]] is [[purified]], then one’s [[body]] actually becomes the real [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]], fully [[enlightened body]] of the [[Buddha]], [[Vajradhara]], and the [[mind]] becomes, as soon as these [[obstacles]] have been eradicated, immediately the [[mind]] becomes [[omniscient]], that means simultaneously perceiving all [[phenomena]] without exception in their [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[nature]]. Then
  
[[enlightenment]], changing the [[death]] into the [[Dharmakaya]]. So after that darkish and [[unconscious]] [[state]] of [[experience]], then we again awake, [[consciousness]] again awakes and then one [[experiences]] a special, a very special [[object]] that is complete [[emptiness]] of everything and very clear, [[mind]] is very clear and [[very empty]] without any {{Wiki|color}}, [[form]], anything like that. That is the actual [[death]] and that is called the [[Clear Light]], Basic [[Clear Light]], or the [[Mother Clear Light]] [[State]]. So therefore, now all the [[deities]] inside the [[body]] have already dissolved up to the [[Manjushri]], it is all finished. Now what remains is one’s [[own]] [[body]] of [[Akshobya]], so that also dissolves completely and then this [[Clear Light]] [[experience]] is [[perceived]]. Now there are no more [[deities]] left. What is still left there are the seats, the seats of the [[deities]] are still there [[empty]], because the [[deities]] have already left and disappeared, now only the [[empty]] seats are
+
the [[mind]] attains this [[quality]] then attains all the other qualities of the [[Buddha]] such as the seven aspects of the unions. Then one attains all these qualities of the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[bliss]], the [[great union]] and everlasting and full of [[compassion]], sort of ever-steady, [[permanent]], ever-steady, {{Wiki|eternity}}, all these kind of qualities [[attained]] and from then on there is no end to all the [[omniscient]] [[mind of the Buddha]]. So they are uninterrupted or unbroken {{Wiki|stream}}, they have [[attained]] the [[quality]] of unbroken {{Wiki|stream}}. That means this [[body]] is everlasting, that means it never really comes to an end and it prevails all [[phenomena]] and all, its [[body]] becomes all- pervading, that means [[infinite]]. So this kind of [[extraordinary]] [[body]] of the [[Buddha]] will be seven qualities, something which can be seen, which can be [[perceived]] only by aurea [[Bodhisattvas]]. Let alone the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[body]] of the [[Buddha]], even the [[impure illusory body]] is beyond the
  
there. So one’s [[own]] place is also [[empty]]. So at that [[moment]] then our [[consciousness]] has reached to the subtlest level or in other words the subtlest level of [[consciousness]] now becomes [[manifest]] and so this [[experience]] this total [[emptiness]] with no any [[phenomena]] [[appearance]] or [[fabrication]] is completely [[void]] and [[empty]] and also very clear. Not sort of dull [[state of mind]], but very [[awakened]] and clear [[state of mind]] and [[very empty]] [[experience]], also very [[blissful]]. [[Mind]] is in a very [[blissful state]]. We should then think that now you have reached the [[Dharmakaya]], the actual [[Dharmakaya]] [[state]] of [[Guhyasamaja]].
+
[[ordinary perception]]. The [[illusory body]] is something which can be [[perceived]] between each other and those who are higher or more advanced, but those with lower [[development]] cannot see it, cannot have [[contact]] with it, the [[illusory body]]. To attain that [[state]] of the yugananda is not, although there are generally what is called [...]  
 
   
 
   
An example of this [[Clear Light]] is something like when there is no [[moonlight]], no sunlight, but {{Wiki|darkness}} complete {{Wiki|darkness}}, like in the night. After midnight
+
[...]
 +
...not indispensable, that to attain the yugananda one must engage in that kind of {{Wiki|behavior}}. For example the [[great master]] [[Je Tsongkhapa]] has [[attained]] the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[solitude]] [[mind]], and he didn't take a [[physical]] [[consort]]. When he had reached the third stage the [[solitude]] [[mind]], and there in place of taking a [[consort]], [[physical]] [[consort]], then he entered into [[parinirvana]]. He passed away. So he used instead of the union with a [[physical]] [[consort]], he has integrated
  
in autumn when there are no clouds and the sky is completely clear, then a little after midnight if one looks up in the sky, then it has a special aspect. So it is completely without any, unchanged by any {{Wiki|light}} or anything like this, but it is [[very empty]] and very clear, so something like that. All our usual [[thoughts]] and gross, the function [[activities]] of the [[consciousness]] have already stopped long ago, now this kind of [[activity]] is no more there and so the [[consciousness]] has become very fine and very {{Wiki|subtle}} and it is in that [[absorption]] of the [[Clear Light]]. So the gross levels of the [[consciousness]] are already dissolved and the {{Wiki|subtle}} levels have already dissolved and now the most {{Wiki|subtle}} like the [[inherent]] [[mind]], inborn [[mind]] is now awake and functioning. So although in our [[meditation]] the [[mind]] is still in the gross level and the [[subtle mind]] has [[not manifested]], but we should [[imagine]] it, we should think that all
+
that [[attainment]], that inner [[attainment]] of this [[realization]] with the process of actual [[physical]] [[death]]. So he showed the [[deed]] of [[attaining enlightenment]]. At the time of his [[death]] when all the energies also enter into the [[channel]] and so on, he integrated that process with his practices of [[development]] of the [[path]] of completion and integrating the two then in place of [[bardo]] he generated himself in the [[illusory body]].  
these have dissolved and the [[mind]] is in it very {{Wiki|subtle}} level. This way we should train our [[mind]], then when we make progress in the practice of [[tantra]], gradually it while we are still living not really dying, but in [[meditation]] this kind of process of dissolution can take place. So the three {{Wiki|principles}} of the [[stage of generation]] are the three transformations, that is [[transforming]] the [[death]] into [[Dharmakaya]], the [[Bardo]] into [[Sambogakaya]], and [[birth]] into [[Nirmanakaya]]. This practice, this part of the dissolving of the [[deities]] and so on and dissolving ourself, that is the first stage the first [[transformation]], [[death]] into [[Dharmakaya]]. In the stage of completion, this practice is in the [[stage of generation]] is a preparation to the stage of completion. Actually, in the stage of completion where one really gains the full capability, the power of the [[mind]] to [[transform]], in [[reality]] to [[transform]] these three, the [[death]], [[bardo]] and [[birth]].  
 
 
   
 
   
...instead of [[death]] occurring, one attains the [[Dharmakaya]] of the [[Buddha]]. In place of the [[bardo]], one attains the [[Sambogakaya]] of the [[Buddha]]. In place of the [[birth]] which is without freedom and [[conditioned]] by [[karmic cause]] and so on, one attains [[Nirmanakaya]] of the [[Buddhahood]]. So the actual [[transformation]] takes
+
There is a different explanation where when he [[died]], at that time a second [[manifestation]] then appeared and that engaging all these victorious, these {{Wiki|behavior}} and then [[attained]] the yugananda. That is another explanation. Another explanation is that although in ordinary view he didn't have a [[physical]] [[consort]]. However, he entered in union with the secret [[consort]], with [[Goddess]] Sariswati, then [[attained enlightenment]]. However, these are only performance of the [[guru]] for the [[benefit]] of [[sentient beings]]. In [[reality]] [[Je Tsongkhapa]] has already [[attained enlightenment]]. He himself came into the [[world]] as a [[manifestation]]  
place in the stage of completion; but for that one must train one’s [[mind]] and completely and also go through the {{Wiki|training}} to change the view and so on, of the [[stage of generation]]. Without this, the kind of [[transformation]] in the stage of completion can never happen. So at this [[state]] the [[mind]] [[perceives]] only one [[object]]; that is this total [[emptiness]]. So that the [[appearance]], the only [[appearance]] to the [[mind]] is that complete [[emptiness]] of every [[phenomena]] and we should also understand and the [[mind]] should understand this is not just sort of [[emptiness]] like [[space]], but it is the [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] [[nature]], the [[shunyata]] of the [[phenomena]].
 
  
So the [[appearance]] is total [[emptiness]], [[understanding]] is [[shunyata]], and the [[experience]] is great [[bliss]], the [[highest]] [[state of bliss]]. So the [[mind]] must have these three qualities or the aspects that apprehension of the total [[emptiness]] and of the [[understanding]] of the [[shunyata]] and the [[experience]] of the great [[bliss]]. That [[mind]] which has these three qualities, we should think that is the [[Dharmakaya]] which we must obtain. So this is called the [[state]] of [[transforming]] that into [[Dharmakaya]], that is the most, one of the [[principal]] [[essential]] practices in this [[sadhana]]. Without this, although one recites and so on, it just, the real [[essence]] or the real meaning is lost. So a short break. 38
+
of a [[Buddha]], not an ordinary being seeking [[liberation]]. Because [[Je Tsongkhapa]] has followed such a [[life]], a [[life]] of [[purity]], of the [[pure]] shela giving great, a [[pure]] shela as a safeguard against all the misunderstandings and all the miss practices of ordinary [[sentient beings]]. He has led a very [[pure]] [[life]]. Also he has also followed the great [[masters]], has also took the same example and kept their practice of [[Wikipedia:Absolute (philosophy)|ultimate]] practice of [[tantra]] in themself and not made it very public and doing all sort of odd things.  
 
   
 
   
 +
For example, the two great [[disciples]] as we see two sided [[Je Rinpoche]], Je [[Song Rinpoche]] and [[Kato]] [[Rinpoche]], they also were great advanced practitioners of the [[tantra]], see those and they have [[attained]] fully [[enlightenment]]. Actually these two great [[disciples]] of [[Je Rinpoche]] are [[Avalokiteshvara]], [[manifestation]] of [[Avalokiteshvara]]. Je [[Song Rinpoche]] on the right side of him is [[Avalokiteshvara]] and [[Kato]] [[Rinpoche]] on the left side of [[Je Tsongkhapa]] is [[Vajrapani]] in their [[true nature]].
 
   
 
   
Now after this [[Dharmakaya]] [[transformation]], then follows the [[Samboghakaya]], generation of the [[Samboghakaya]]. Generally there are [[three ways]] of generation of [[Samboghakaya]]. The [[five stages]] which is called Winjungnyke and then generation of the three stages, four stages and three stages, [[Dorje]] Sheke, and then three stages. All these for the [[Guhyasamaja]], [[Yamantaka]], Chakrasambharva, [[Vajrayogini]] and so on for these [[tantra]] are all according to the first, according to the five process of generation, that is the most elaborated. So this five process is called the five process of full [[accomplishment]]. So that full [[accomplishment]] refers to full [[accomplishment]] of the five guanas or [[five wisdoms]] of the [[Buddha]].  
+
There was a great [[yogi]], [[disciple]] of [[Je Tsongkhapa]], [[tantric]] [[disciple]] who was Konjatanyato Tomen Jatanyato and he was also a great [[practitioner of tantra]], but outwardly he was a simple, very [[pure]] simple [[monk]], but inwardly he was a great [[practitioner of tantra]] and he [[meditated]] for a very long time for many years in a [[cave]] in a place where no one could reach, for a very long time he [[meditated]] there and accomplished his practices and came back and helped so many so [[sentient beings]] and established center of [[dharma]] and so on.  
 
   
 
   
So [[Je Rinpoche]] has just explained that is not need to be translated, now all these [[five stages]] of [[accomplishment]] which are in other [[tantras]] like [[Yamantaka]] and so on, they are complete in all of them, but there is a slight difference, some are more easy and some are more complicated because they are [[taught]] for the disposition of different [[sentient beings]]. However, they are complete in all of them and this one is one of the most elaborated one, this [[tantra]], so it
+
Also a younger brother of [[Kato]] [[Rinpoche]] who was called Paso Shayeltson, he was a great [[practitioner of tantra]] and [[attained]] [[illusory body]] in his [[life]]. And his [[disciple]] of Chergydorgy took [[siddha]] trigidacta. He also was a [[practitioner of tantra]] and especially of [[Guhyasamaja]] and he also [[attained]] [[illusory body]] in that [[life]]. By [[attaining]] the [[illusory body]] his [[body]] remained [[permanent]] or ever-lasting, he [[attained]] ever-lasting, so he never passed into [[Parinirvana]],
  
will follow afterwards the process of the accomplishments. So now we are now in the [[state]] of that total [[emptiness]], the [[Dharmakaya]]. The seat, the {{Wiki|sun}} disc is still there. So now [[HUM]] appears, ones [[blissful state of mind]] takes the [[form]] of the [[HUM]] which changes into another {{Wiki|sun}} disc. So this would be now sort of a double {{Wiki|sun}} disc. So on top of that {{Wiki|sun}} disk appears [[OM]] the [[letter]] [[OM]] which changes into a [[moon disc]] on top of it. Out of the [[moon]] appears the [[letter]] [[AH]] which changes into a [[lotus]] with 8 petals. On top of the [[lotus]] there is [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] one on top of the other, [[OM]] then [[AH]], then [[HUM]]. So then they all dissolve into one so then the {{Wiki|sun}}, the [[moon]], the [[lotus]] and the letters they all [[transform]] altogether into a large [[moon disc]]. So from this [[rays of light]] go out and  
+
and he still [[lives]] and sometimes in conference with [[fortunate]] [[beings]]. In [[West]] of [[Tibet]] in the valley of [[Param]] there is a great mountain and he is still [[meditating]] in this mountain all the time. Not only him, but he had many hundreds of great [[disciples]] who were all great [[yogis]] who had [[attained]] advanced realizations in the [[tantra]]. There have been a lot of [[people]] who have come into [[contact]] with this living [[master]]. So he is like, he blessed his [[body]] in such a way like the [[sixteen arhats]]. The [[sixteen arhats]] they also had never entered into [[Parinirvana]] and living for the [[benefit]] of [[sentient beings]] still now.
 +
 +
So there are many stories like that, however it staking time and maybe just like tales, ten tales, stories, just reading like a story. So there is not much use to speak a lot. So [[Je Tsongkhapa]], among his great number of [[disciples]], of course there have been more who have [[attained enlightenment]] without [[knowing]] why other [[people]], but there are already 120 who have [[attained enlightenment]] which is noticeable which is approved by everybody.
 +
 +
There was a [[Nyingma master]] who lived in the [[West]] of [[Tibet]], [[name]] was [[Lama]] Chimi Laje. On time he was a little bit sick. He has composed {{Wiki|biography}} of [[Je Tsongkhapa]], a very beautiful one. So his [[disciples]], the [[disciples]] of this [[Lama]], then reading the [[life]] of [[Je Tsongkhapa]] who was, their [[master]] had composed and said that [[Je Tsongkhapa]] was definitely a very [[great master]] and has [[attained enlightenment]], he is really an [[enlightened being]]. However, it doesn't seem that he had a lot of [[disciples]] who has [[attained]] [[highest]] advanced [[state]] of [[tantra]], all very [[enlightened]] and so on, although he didn't have a great many
  
touches all the [[world]], every place, the [[mountains]], the [[forest]], the ocean, everywhere, it touches every [[world]] and it dissolves all of them into {{Wiki|light}}. Together with the [[worlds]] then also the [[rays of light]] [[transform]], also the [[sentient beings]] have dissolved into {{Wiki|light}}, into the [[rays of light]], and they are all absorbed back into that [[moon disc]], the large [[moon]]. So when we recite the [[mantra]] DHARMADHATU SOBAWA AMOGO [[HUM]], so at that [[moment]] then everything has dissolved into that [[moon]]. Now that [[moon]] is one’s [[self]]; that is one’s [[body]]. So all the [[phenomena]], they are all [[imputed]] by one’s [[mind]] and {{Wiki|projected}} or [[imputed]] by [[mind]], and there is nothing which [[exists]] from their [[own]] side. Therefore, the seed or the [[essence]] origin of all the [[phenomena]], that is the [[mind]]  
+
[[siddhas]] or [[yogis]] around and so on. So their [[master]] into eradicate or eliminate this [[wrong view]] of his [[disciples]], then he composed again another text, counting all those [[enlightened disciples]] of [[Tsongkhapa]] so there are 120 in this {{Wiki|biography}} of the [[disciples]] of [[Je Tsongkhapa]], it is called [[The Golden Rosary]]. Like that [[Je Tsongkhapa]] and his [[disciples]] they were, a lot of them who had [[attained]] through the power of the [[tantra]] the [[state]] of yugananda.
  
and the [[energy]], it is [[energy]] which is with the [[mind]], [[mind]] and [[energy]]. The [[subtle mind]] is [[subtle energy]]. So that is the [[nature]] of every [[phenomena]]. So we should think that this [[moon]] has this [[essence]] of the [[energy]] and the [[mind]]. So then out of this [[moon disc]] appears a [[letter]] [[OM]]. Then [[AH]], then [[HUM]]. So [[OM]] [[AH]], [[HUM]]. [[OM]] white, [[AH]] [[red]], and [[HUM]] blue, one on top of the other on the [[moon disc]]. So from these three letters, three colors, [[rays of light]] go out. So these [[rays of light]] invite all the [[Buddhas]] from every [[direction]], all the [[Buddhas]] included in the [[five families]], they are all invited. They are all absorbed into the three letters. After the [[absorption]] of the [[Buddhas]] into these three letters, then the letters change into [[vajra]] with tiny [[OM]] [[AH]] [[HUM]] inside the center
+
Likewise in other [[traditions]] like for example, in [[Kadampa]] with, following the [[great master]] [[Atisha]], there were also so many great [[masters]] that came after him and who many of them have already [[attained enlightenment]] in their very [[life]]. Also in the Nyngma [[tradition]], the [[great master]] [[Padmasambava]] came from [[India]] to [[Tibet]] for the [[benefit]] of [[sentient beings]], although he didn't live very long [[in Tibet]]. He didn't compose a lot of texts or give lots of extensive
  
of the [[vajra]]. So now we have become [[vajra]]. First we were a [[moon]], now we have become a [[vajra]], and we recite [[VAJRA]] AMOGO [[HUM]] that means "I am of the [[nature]] of the [[vajra]]". The [[moon]] still remains and now on top of the [[moon]] is [[vajra]]. First we are on the [[moon]], now we are [[vajra]]. So the origin or the seat of that {{Wiki|sun}} disc is still there, so on top of that there is this [[moon]] now and [[vajra]], which is our [[body]]. Now this [[dorje]] with tiny letters inside, they all change. Then we become the [[primordial Buddha]] or the [[first Buddha]], that is [[Vajrasattva]], [[Vajradhara]], white [[body]], three faces and six arms, holding the same except for the difference of the {{Wiki|color}}, but holding the same implements in his hands, adorned with ornaments, garlands, and like as usual, without a [[consort]]. The
+
teachings and so on, but he was a great [[siddha]] himself and he lived during that short stay [[in Tibet]]. He has helped so many [[sentient beings]] and so many great [[masters]]. Like the 25, the direct [[disciple]] of [[Padmasambava]], who have all [[attained enlightenment]] in their [[life]]. And like that in all the [[traditions]] there have been so many [[siddhas]] and [[yogis]] who have [[attained enlightenment]] in their very [[life]]. For example in the [[Sakya tradition]] before that in their line
  
[[reason]] why this [[first Buddha]], or the first [[body]], [[Buddha body]], is [[Vajradhara]] is [[visualized]] in [[white color]] is that in the actual [[attainment]] of the [[Buddha body]], in the stage of completion, end of stage of completion, when we attain what is called the {{Wiki|perfect}} [[illusory body]], so this {{Wiki|perfect}} [[illusory body]] is [[caused]] by the [[subtle energy]] which is the mount or which is always a companion with the [[subtle consciousness]] That {{Wiki|subtle}} energy's natural {{Wiki|color}} is whitish, so therefore when the [[illusory body]] is produced by this, in the {{Wiki|future}} when the [[illusory body]] is produced by this {{Wiki|subtle}} [[cause]], this [[subtle energy]], so since it's natural {{Wiki|color}} is white the first [[illusory body]] is always white. So [[corresponding]] to that we are already [[visualizing]] the first [[body]] of ourself as
+
for [[practitioner]] of old [[tantra]] or Nyngma [[tantra]]. Also there were a lot of great [[yogis]] before then. And Quintoyelbo had a son who is called Kunganengbo. Then after this Kunganengbo who has founded in this {{Wiki|present}} [[Sakya lineage]] has decided that [[tradition]]. After him until now there have been so many great [[masters]], great many [[yogis]] in this [[tradition]]. In [[Tibet]] many of these great [[masters]], not only among the [[disciples]] of [[Je Rinpoche]], but all the other
  
the [[Samboghakaya]] the white [[Vajradhara]]. So this white [[Vajradhara]] we have become now is {{Wiki|equivalent}} of ordinary [[Bardo]] or [[intermediate]] being. In our normal process then we go through the process of dissolution, we reach the basic [[Clear Light]] [[state]] and remain there for some time without any control, just remain there for some time, then the [[consciousness]] lightly sort of moves, agitates, then immediately at the same [[moment]] then the [[Clear Light]] [[experience]] ends and the [[consciousness]] already has departed from this broken complete [[relation]] with this [[existence]] and immediately it is, the [[Bardo body]] has formed. The [[Bardo body]] is not like our [[body]], gross [[physical body]], but it is made of [[energy]], like [[dream]] [[body]], and usually the [[Bardo]] being, as soon as one is in the [[Bardo state]], in the usual case then [[Bardo]] is it is the common [[experience]] of [[Bardo]] that it is a very lonely [[experience]]. One [[feels]] very lonely in the [[Bardo]], very lonely and uncontrolled, without any freedom to move or to leave or to stay, one is constantly sort of running about, wandering about, sort of pushed about by the force of ones [[karma]] and reaches everywhere. Then, depending on the [[cause]], the [[karmic cause]] one has [[accumulated]] sometimes one encounters very frightening and very confusing [[experiences]] and [[appearances]] come to the [[mind]] and then [[suffer]] very much until one finds ones {{Wiki|future}} [[rebirth]]. So now here we are sort of purifying that [[state]] and changing it into the [[Samboghakaya]] [[state]]. So here actually, [[Bardo]] being must be explained in detail. However, there is
+
[[traditions]] too, most of the great [[masters]] they outwardly lived as a very [[pure]] [[person]] observing all the [[pure]] shelas. Inwardly then a great [[practitioner of tantra]] and who accomplished the [[stage of generation]] and completion. Although their [[attainments]] are very high they are never boasting about it and never show-making, never showing off that inner [[realization]], or claiming that I see a [[god]] and {{Wiki|demons}} and [[spirits]] and this and that and this way cheating [[people]]  
  
not very much time. One can read a little bit about it in the beginning of the Vajraturge [[books]]. But the most accurate explanation about the [[Bardo]] is found in the [[sutra]], especially in the [[sutra]] which [[Buddha]] [[taught]] to his [[disciple]] [[Nanda]] which is called "The entering into the [[womb]] of the Mother", the [[sutra]] is called. There the very precise and accurate explanation of [[Bardo]] is given. So anyway, these [[Bardo]] [[sentient beings]] and out of [[attachment]] they return to their [[own]] home and [[family]] whatsoever. Of course the [[family]] members and so on being unable to see them, so they are ignored. So that hurts their [[mind]] very much and they [[suffer]] very greatly from this [[ignorance]] of the [[people]]. So now in place of, in a normal [[Bardo]], then going through all the [[experiences]] of
+
and they never have those often have done anything like that. So there was a [[great master]] Janasantiluf, he lived for very long time over 100 and he grew very old and outwardly he looked like very very old [[monk]] who was even little bit like he was reading praise and shaking and outwardly very [[pure]] very old [[monk]]. But inwardly [[attained]] the yugananda [[state]] of the [[tantra]] and [[enlightened]] in that very [[life]]. And now about the great [[deeds]] of the [[masters]]. For example, among the [[Indian]] [[pundits]]. [[Nagarjuna]], he lived for 600 years of our time. So compared to that long [[life]] of [[Nagarjuna]], Tsongkhappa who came in our time who
  
[[confusion]] and running about, always keeping busy and encountering frightful [[experiences]]. In place of that by purifying that then here this [[Vajradhara]], [[Vajradhara]] [[Samboghakaya]] [[Vajradhara]] [[form]] has to now perform various [[activities]] of the [[Buddha]]. So now we are in the [[body]] of this white [[Vajradhara]] and now all the [[Buddhas]] in [[ten directions]] in the [[form]] of [[Akshobya]], they enter in [[blissful]] union with the [[consorts]]. So the [[Buddhas]] in [[Akshobya]] [[form]] absorb into [[blissful]] union and by this [[blissful]] union then countless [[forms]] of [[Akshobya]] are produced and they [[gather]] above us, above the [[mandala]] in the [[space]], filling the whole [[space]]. So these [[Akshobya]] [[Buddhas]] that are [[gathered]] in the 39
+
lived only 54 years old. Although he lived much shorter, but the services by another he could offer and help and he could give for the [[sentient beings]] equals that of the great [[masters]]. He [[offered]] a very great service to the [[dharma]] and [[sentient beings]]. Even now days there are many great living [[masters]] who have [[attained]] so many great qualities which of course cannot be seen from the outside but they have [[attained]] inwardly very high realizations, but the most of them the [[Wikipedia:Authenticity|authentic]] great [[masters]] they all outwardly do not claim any high realizations or high [[powers]] and like this nor they show any [[extraordinary]]  
  
 +
[[miracles]] and [[powers]] and so on. They just lead a very [[pure]] [[life]]. So now in this [[age of degeneration]] in [[person]] which like himself who doesn't know anything, without any qualification and qualities also have to take the position of a [[guru]] so however, although he doesn't know a lot, however one thing he never does is to tell lies. It is sometimes unfortunate to see that because of the [[age of degeneration]] there are many, for a lot of [[people]], going around and claiming oneself very highly [[realized]] being and showing odd behaviors and so on and pretending to be very highly [[realized master]]. [[Je Rinpoche]] says of you
  
 +
that by your [[own]] {{Wiki|past}} very [[wholesome karma]] you have come to the [[dharma]] and you have a great [[interest]], different from most of the [[people]], have a great [[enthusiasm]] and [[interest]] and [[desire]] to learn and practice [[dharma]]. That is very very good. Also by your [[wholesome karma]] you encounter with the good [[teachers]] and good guidance and so on. That is very, you should know you are very [[fortunate]]. That is a very great [[gift]]. So therefore, one should practice as much as one can and also at the same time one must be very careful about finding [[gurus]] and this kind of thing. Because of the kind of [[danger]] that [[Je Rinpoche]] has
 +
 +
mentioned before now, the more he sees [[people]] and meets [[people]] the more he hears about this kind of dangers, this kind of pitfalls, one can fall very easily. So everyone must be {{Wiki|intelligent}} to disconnect. In all the teachings of the [[dharma]] there is a great {{Wiki|emphasis}} about the need of developing [[virtuous]] [[state of mind]] and observe the [[law of karma]] and fruit and developing [[Bodhichitta]]. This is a general ways of the [[dharma]]. And one should not, although they are not the same qualities, in other [[doctrines]] or in other [[religions]] or in other [[traditions]], but it is still wrong for us to criticize just like that to
 +
 +
despise about it and sort of completely abuse. That is not proper. Although there are many more practices in some [[religions]], like {{Wiki|killing}} [[animals]], {{Wiki|killing}} lots of [[animals]], sacrificing, [[offering]] to their [[gods]] and so on, and these are surely not correcting to do. However, they are doing with some [[motivation]] to attain some kind of [[happiness]] and some kind of [[liberation]] with their [[own]] point of view and they are doing it. Of course through 71
 
   
 
   
[[space]], they bless all the [[sentient beings]] in the [[samsara]], and they {{Wiki|purify}} through the [[rays of light]] and fluid of [[amrita]] coming from their [[body]] and completely washes away all the [[impurities]] of the [[sentient beings]], and the [[sentient beings]] attain a high [[state of bliss]] without any fault. Then these [[Akshobya]] [[Buddhas]] then after completing this work to help the [[sentient beings]], they all [[gather]] just above our [[body]]. They all merge into one [[body]] of [[Akshobya]] and that is just straight above our [[body]]. So now like normally, the [[consciousness]] of the [[Bardo]] being enters into the [[womb]] of the Mother. Like that, we as
+
following such a way, such a practice it is quite impossible to attain a real [[permanent liberation]] or to [[attain enlightenment]] through such a method. For example in [[Christianity]], in the [[Christian]] [[religion]] they all speak a lot about [[God]], for example [[God]]. Of course this is something beyond our [[comprehension]].  
  
[[Vajradhara]], white [[Vajradhara]], must enter into the [[body]] of the [[Akshobya]]. So one is raised from ones seat and entered into, absorbed into the [[Akshobya]] or one doesn't need to jump up from ones seat. So this time instead of the [[Akshobya]] entering into our [[body]], we enter into Akshobya's [[body]]. When we take [[rebirth]], [[parents]] do not enter the [[Bardo]], the [[Bardo]] enters into the [[parents]]. It is [[symbolic]] of that. So this is like a [[purification]] of the [[Bardo]] going through the various [[activities]], that is confusions or [[experiences]] and then trying to enter into the Mother. So when we are in the [[state]] of [[Samboghakaya]] in that white [[Vajradhara]], the [[Samboghakaya]] [[form]]. The [[Samboghakaya]] is like [[extraordinary]] [[form]] of the [[Buddha]] which cannot be seen, cannot be [[perceived]] by ordinary [[sentient beings]], only [[Bodhisattvas]] of certain level can see it, but ordinary [[sentient beings]] have not the possibility to have [[contact]] with it. But now when we enter into the [[Akshobya]] then we are taking the [[Nirmanakaya]] [[birth]] and we are becoming [[visible]] and apparent to all the [[sentient beings]], even to the lowest one. So here we need to know how the process of taking [[rebirth]] for an ordinary [[human]] be ng. So usually [[Bardo beings]] go through this [[experience]] of [[confusion]] and disappointment and [[sadness]] and also sometimes in [[tantra]] some frightful [[experiences]] like burned into a [[fire]] or sometimes [[Wikipedia:burial|buried]] under the [[earth]] or sometimes drowned if the [[water]] and like that, many [[experiences]], sometimes chased by other [[beings]] and so on, various [[experiences]] like that. If a [[person]] is a good
+
It is beyond our ordinary [[comprehension]]. Whether such a [[God]] [[exists]] or not, this is something beyond our ordinary [[comprehension]], so lead that aside. However, there are lots of [[people]] following the [[Christian]] [[religion]] who sincerely work for the {{Wiki|welfare}} of [[sentient beings]], the {{Wiki|welfare}} to help [[people]], [[suffering]] [[people]] and so on. [[Rinpoche]] doesn't know whether they have some real profound [[practice of meditation]] or not, he does not know. So whatever their [[philosophical view]], or whatever their [[profound view]] is, anyway what some noticeable good qualities in some of the practition of the [[Christian]] [[religion]] is  
  
[[meditator]], then when he encountered this kind of [[experience]] he can remember that one is in [[Bardo state]] and one is in fact encountered with [[illusions]] of the [[Bardo]] and this is very helpful. So one thing which [[Je Rinpoche]] has forgotten to explain before is when ourself, in the [[form]] of [[Samboghakaya]] [[Vajradhara]], enters into the [[Akshobya]] [[body]], becomes one with the [[Akshobya]] [[body]], then we come down and sit on the cushion. Then we have [[transformed]] from the [[Samboghakaya]] [[body]] into [[Nirmanakaya]] [[Vajradhara]] or [[Vajrasattva]]. Now we endow blue [[body]]; a blue [[body]] with three faces and with all The respective arms and things in them. So it is very necessary, very important for us to know exactly what happens at the basic [[death]] and [[Bardo]] and so on, because it is quite difficult to
+
their sincerity in helping other [[sentient beings]]. Also to [[tolerance]], [[patience]] and also {{Wiki|emphasis}} on the [[teaching]], [[teaching]] {{Wiki|emphasizing}} on [[love]] and [[compassion]] and [[patience]]. For example if someone hits on your right cheek, show the left cheek and so on. This kind of [[teaching]], this aspect of [[teaching]] he finds very good. So the [[practitioner]] of the [[dharma]] should develop the right [[wholesome]] [[character]], [[wholesome]] behaviors of one’s [[body, speech and mind]] and if that is developing, then one definitely is a true [[practitioner]] of [[dharma]] and practice of [[dharma]] is going on the right way. Although how much we practice,  
  
accomplish the whole [[path]] in this [[lifetime]], since our [[life]] is rather short and the practices are many. So therefore, although we cannot accomplish the goal, the final goal in this [[life]], however, if we know all these {{Wiki|processes}} we must go through, then it is very helpful for us to be prepared for the right [[moment]] and right situation. First we go through that total [[empty]] [[experience]], then next [[moment]] we are in [[Bardo stage]], and the [[Bardo stage]] is just like when one is in a [[dream]]. This [[body]] is also like a [[dream]] [[body]], like [[mental body]]. The [[Bardo]] being is like a little feather in a big storm and [[wind]]. It just moves about like completely crazy and it doesn't need to make any [[effort]] to reach someplace. Wherever one [[thinks]], where one intents, there one reaches, instantly
+
how long we practice, if our behaviors of [[body, speech and mind]] are running downward then there is something wrong. There is a [[person]] from [[Switzerland]] with [[red]] [[hair]], tall guy, he was seeking some kind of [[spiritual]] help and he encountered somebody, somewhere in [[India]] he has encountered with a [[guru]], [[master]]. The [[guru]] and a circle of some kind of [[practitioner]] and he received some kind of [[mantras]] and some kind of practices and he practiced them very sincerely with the rest of his group. So finally he [[realized]] their main [[object]] is to use these kind of [[mantras]] to [[cause]] trouble to others, bring [[sickness]] and bad [[luck]] and
  
one is there. So it goes through many things, [[mountains]], walls, nothing can stop. So like in a [[dream]], then many [[Bardo beings]] they do not really realize that one has actually [[died]] and is in a [[Bardo state]], so one [[thinks]] one is still living in an ordinary way with all the old acquaintances. So therefore, one goes back to one’s house and tries to do everything as usual and since there is no response, no {{Wiki|reaction}}, nothing, no fruit, no response, then that gives a great [[suffering]] and a [[feeling]] of disappointment in the [[mind]] of the being. If we know these from now well and prepare for it, then actually when we face the situation, one will realize, one will be able to realize where we are and what we have become and then apply the remedies, the helps to like even [[taking refuge]] in the [[Triple Gem]] at that [[moment]] and practicing [[mindfulness]] of the [[Triple Gem]], [[mindfulness]] of the [[guru]] and so on at that [[moment]], it helps very much. Those [[Bardos]] with [[fortunate]] [[karma]] who is going to take a [[fortunate]] [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]] or in higher [[forms]], like [[gods]] and so on, then the [[Bardo body]] is also radiant, more radiant, like golden or very white or golden [[body]], very radiant and also it is going through {{Wiki|light}}. There is always {{Wiki|light}} for the [[Bardo]].  
+
so on to others. When they do that, when that works then of course they get a chance to help them and this way they make a good business. Then after he completed the {{Wiki|solution}} about this whole group and what they are doing and then he left them finally. He came to [[India]]. [[Je Rinpoche]] met him in [[Dharmsala]] after he returned from his first visit to the [[West]] and he was very sick and already became a little bit crazy. So he couldn't, [[Je Rinpoche]] couldn't help very much. At that [[moment]] in [[Dharmsala]] it is difficult for someone who already so much confused like that and has been so badly misled by a wrong [[master]]  
 +
 
 +
and like that. However, [[Je Rinpoche]] found him already in Moongod, arrival [[Je Rinpoche's]] already there. Then in Moongod [[Je Rinpoche]] had to keep him, he kept him there and fed him, he had had nothing to eat also. So like that he kept him there for some time. Of course he was not really suitable or fit [[student]] to [[teaching]] because he has no [[enthusiasm]] for {{Wiki|learning}} [[dharma]] and he already with his previous [[gurus]] and so on so much, his [[mind]] so closed, plus he is also not very well [[mentally]]. So he couldn't help very much in that [[respect]], so [[Je Rinpoche]] did some [[pujas]] and some [[prayers]] and get him some protections to wear on
 +
 
 +
his [[body]] and so on. Gradually it helped him and he became much more [[calm]]. As soon as he got better he never stayed. He again left and go somewhere, he went somewhere and then he returns. Then as soon as he gets some trouble then he returns to [[Rinpoche]] to help him, then he gets better and goes away. This happens already three or four times. Now he is away, at this [[moment]] he is away somewhere. Of course if someone in such [[condition]] is really in a great need to practice [[refuge]] and these kind of things, but isn't [[interested]] in them, so he is wasting his [[life]] a lot. Anyway [[Je Rinpoche]] will go on to help him
 +
 
 +
whenever he can. Maybe he expects to see him again when he returns. His [[mind]] is full of confusions and [[illusions]]. When he is in a good [[state of mind]], when he is in a [[calm]] [[state of mind]] all he does is play a {{Wiki|flute}}. He plays it for everybody, sometimes for the [[dogs]] and so on. When he is in a [[disturbed state]] of [[mind]] then he complains a lot about [[seeing]] [[god]] and {{Wiki|demons}}, this and that, all kinds of things around him. So there is not very much {{Wiki|hope}} in him because unless he changes his [[mind]] sometime and really begins to do something seriously.  
 
   
 
   
If those [[bardos]] who are going to take [[rebirth]] in the unfortunate [[realms]] like [[hell]], [[pretas]], [[animals]] and so on, their [[bodies]] are the {{Wiki|color}} like a [[river]], like
+
However, the [[reason]] why [[Je Rinpoche]] has explained all this is the great importance of being very careful in searching for one’s [[spiritual]] guides. In searching ones [[spiritual]] guides is a very important and very [[dangerous]] issue, therefore one should be very careful about this. Therefore in the {{Wiki|future}} it
  
[[water]], also sometimes like a burned piece of [[wood]]. Also such [[beings]] also [[experience]], [[feels]] like it is walking on the knees or walking upside down, that is how the being himself [[feels]]. A [[person]] who is prepared if he faces this kind of [[experience]], some {{Wiki|inauspicious}} [[signs]] like that occurs, immediately realizes that this is not a very good sign. So immediately then one can seek the help or pray to the [[Triple Gem]] or pray to the [[gurus]] and so on, so there is still a possibility to reverse the [[destiny]]. Also sometimes the faces like one is [[Wikipedia:burial|buried]] completely under like a landslide or like an avalanche coming over us and completely [[Wikipedia:burial|buried]] and very frightful. Sometimes drowned carried away by very [[violent]] [[river]] like a flood coming and completely carried away. Sometimes one
+
is so you should not just run in anywhere wherever there is some [[teaching]] or something going on, then running there like a {{Wiki|dog}} usually runs wherever there is some [[food]] or {{Wiki|smell}} or something. Not that way, but before one goes to look for a real [[spiritual guide]] and [[teaching]] and so on, first analyze. Also try to get as much [[information]] first about the [[teaching]] and everything. When one is satisfied then one decides. Also when you take the [[teaching]] of [[dharma]] for your
  
reaches a place that is completely on [[fire]] like a [[forest]] on [[fire]] or big house on [[fire]] like that, and one is caught in it and then again [[experienced]] very paranoid and very frightful [[experience]]. Sometimes one is completely carried away, blown away, like a big storm like a tornado, hurricane like that, one is completely carried away and [[experiences]] great {{Wiki|fear}}. So if the [[person]] is prepared at that [[moment]], then one realizes that it is all [[illusion]], "I am a [[bardo]] being which cannot be harmed by [[water]], [[fire]], and this kind of thing. I am not a [[physical body]] and I shouldn't be frightened. This is only an [[illusion]] of my [[own mind]]. So one, instead of being worried about this, one [[concentrates]] and one [[meditates]] or one prays and this way one can change the process again.
+
practice, you take something which is fit to your [[state of mind]], to your level of capacity. You should not take anything which is very fantastic and which is really very powerful and very high. Although something is really very high, very powerful but it may not really fit to ones capacity of the [[mind]]. So then there is not much use, so one should take what one can take. So it is important to [[meditate]] on [[impermanence]] and [[sufferings]] and [[impermanence]] as a basis
  
Sometimes one faces a very frightful, encounters a frightful being like a monster or like that, very large with a very frightening [[appearance]] or very frightening [[animals]] or frightening monsters like that chasing one’s [[self]] and throwing things at you and so on, again very scared. If one develops a good acquaintance with this kind of practice while we are still living, so when at the end of our [[life]] when these process of dissolution start to take place, then one will [[recognize]] this and then one instead of being frightened or being confused, then immediately one generates the [[motivation]] to really go through these stages very with a full control of the [[mind]] and also without {{Wiki|forgetting}} ones practices and ones [[meditations]] and so on and also to use the last of the  
+
and also to develop a real [[concern]] for the {{Wiki|future}} instead of just sticking to this [[life]], then generate, [[taking refuge]] and develop [[Bodhichitta]] for the [[benefit]] of [[sentient beings]]. Then it is a very good [[path]]. One should also begin to [[practice tantra]]. But on the basis of the [[development]] of [[Bodhichitta]], without this foundation the practice of [[tantra]] has no meaning. So practice [[Bodhichitta]] as [[principal]] [[object]] to develop then practice the [[tantric meditation]]
  
[[Clear Light]] [[experience]], to use it as an opportunity to realize [[Shunyata]]. Although we cannot realize [[shunyata]], one may realize depending on one’s practice, may not realize. However, try to sort of intend to do that. If one has such a power of the [[mind]] then everything as one goes through these stages, then one will be, one can still remain very [[conscious]] and fully controlled and also [[Clear Light]] stage can be integrated with the [[practice of meditation]] which is a very useful opportunity, for the [[mind]] is very {{Wiki|subtle}} and there are many possibilities there. Also as one leaves this [[life]], if one has a good power of the [[mind]] one can, of course if someone is very 40
+
as much as one can or recite the [[mantra]], recite the [[prayers]], practice the [[sadhana]]. From time to time do some short [[retreat]] and like that then the practice will go very well, and all what one does will be fruitful. Then a very important thing is to keep the [[precept]] of the [[tantra]] and [[vows]] and [[samayas]] as good as one can, because if one keeps these [[vows]] of the [[tantra]] and [[Bodhisattva vows]] then even without developing very much in this [[lifetime]] one has still the
 
advanced then there is no more [[Bardo]] coming, but if not, but still if one goes from this [[world]] from this [[life]] with the full [[intention]] to remain fully [[conscious]] and controlled during the following stages, during the [[intermediate stage]] [[Bardo stage]], then by the power of this [[motivation]], then as soon as one  
 
  
is in [[Bardo]] one would know where one is and what has happened to one’s [[self]] and then one can immediately make use of that stage too and [[meditate]] on [[Bodhichitta]], [[meditate]] on his [[personal deity]] or [[take refuge]] or [[meditate]] on ones [[guru]], or whatever necessary, then there is no [[danger]] of any kind. So therefore, the [[Bodhichitta]] [[development]] and acquainting one’s [[mind]] with the [[Bodhichitta]] is very [[essential]]. It is something which is helpful which we need always in this [[life]], in [[Bardo stage]], up to the fully [[enlightenment]], we need always [[Bodhichitta]]. This foundation must be there all the time and so
+
possibility to [[attain enlightenment]] in sixteen lifetimes. Then of course at the time of [[death]] if one can integrate the process with the three transformations of the practice of [[tantra]] that is best. If not, if one can [[die]] in the [[state of mind]], with the [[mindfulness]] of the [[guru]], [[mindfulness]] of the [[deity]] and the [[guru]] and [[Bodhichitta]] that is already a very good way to leave this [[life]] and go to the next. The best way is to live and to [[die]] out of a [[state]]  
especially at the time of need, [[Bodhichitta]] is the best help. If one [[dies]] and one’s [[mind]] is in a [[state]] of [[Bodhichitta]] so that is the best way. Also if one can [[die]] in a [[state of mind]] fully devoted and [[mindful]] of the [[guru]], ones [[guru]], that is also one of the best. So then if the being is going to take [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]], then the [[Bardo]] being is led by its [[karmic]] {{Wiki|instinct}} [[karmic force]], led to his {{Wiki|future}} [[parents]] and it sees the [[parents]] in their [[sexual union]] and one is sort of attracted, one is sort of led there out of [[attached]] [[mind]] and if the child is going to take [[rebirth]] as a {{Wiki|male}} then it is more drawn towards
 
  
the mother and if the child is going to take [[birth]] as a {{Wiki|female}}, more close or drawn or attracted to the father. In this way, depending on the kind of [[attachment]] the being has, then one reaches ones [[parents]]. So the [[Bardo]] [[life]] ends with great [[attachment]] and disappointment and by this then the [[Bardo]] [[life]] ends and the [[consciousness]] immediately simultaneously the [[consciousness]] has already entered in the {{Wiki|cells}} of the [[parents]]. Then there is no, all the [[senses]] and {{Wiki|organs}} have not yet developed but still the [[consciousness]], the [[mind consciousness]] is there and already the [[body consciousness]] has already developed,  
+
of [[Bodhichitta]]. And in this way then out {{Wiki|future}} will be even more [[fortunate]], even more favorable and more [[fortunate]] then the {{Wiki|present}} one. Because one has [[accumulated]] very great imprints of [[dharma]] in this [[lifetime]] so these definitely will give a very great [[root]]. In [[India]] there was a [[great master]] Pasobandu. He was a very [[great master]] and he lived in a [[cave]]. He was a very great [[pundit]] and he [[knows]] so many texts and [[sutras]] by [[heart]] and all night he is [[chanting]],  
  
although the [[body]] is very little it is only like a drop, but still it is a [[physical body]] and so that [[body consciousness]] already has developed. So then it goes though, various energies developing within the [[body]] and which helps to develop [[week]] by [[week]] the [[body]] and starting from the drop of {{Wiki|cells}} and then after five weeks then it has already become quite gross. So like that then going through the stages of [[development]] when in the [[womb]] of the Mother and when the days are all complete, the months are all complete, then we again come out of the Mother and become [[visible]], we then become [[visible object]] to other
+
[[chanting]] all these texts. He was such a great memorizer that he [[knows]] by [[heart]] that his 99 hundred thousand [[stanzas]] by [[heart]]. So when he was very old then he still continued to recite these texts that he memorized, so it is very difficult and is very weak and difficult to recite so much non-stop reciting, reciting so he filled a big pot with a kind of oil and he sat in it up to the neck in the oil and then he recites and in 15 days he completes his 72
 +
 +
all the [[sutras]] that he has memorized. All this oil which he sits in absorbs in his [[body]] and helps his [[body]] to maintain his strength. Just above his [[cave]] is a nest for a {{Wiki|pigeon}}. That {{Wiki|pigeon}} always hears all time his {{Wiki|recitation}} of [[sutras]] and so on. After some time that {{Wiki|pigeon}} [[died]] and has taken [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]]. From very young age that child could recite a lot of [[sutras]] and like that, many verses from the text. Everyone was very surprised and asked what [[incarnation]] you are and so on. He said my [[master]] is Pasobandu [...]  
 +
 +
[...]  
 +
...and so already still [[Arjuna]] the [[monk]] was still very young by his {{Wiki|past}} [[karmic imprint]] he has memorize, he could memorized so much text that he could recite by [[heart]] 46 hundred thousand [[stanzas]]. Finally he became a [[great master]] who was called Norjutempas, in [[Sanskrit]] Saudramati and became a very great [[siddha]]. Therefore we have also received a lot of teachings of [[dharma]], of various levels we have received many teachings. So all these teachings have also left a very great imprint in us. If we make [[effort]] and if we generate the right [[motivation]] and offer the right [[prayer]], this will be fulfilled. [[Je Rinpoche]]
 +
 
 +
will also pray for our accomplishments. Many of you when come to see [[Rinpoche]] he will always ask to come back again, you live long and so on. But of course no one has any freedom of control or power over the [[death]], so there is no real freedom, they cannot make any choice about this. One of course has a wish to live long and also pray, so [[prayers]] and so on, but [[Je Rinpoche]] says that he is already now 77 years old. Anyway of course he prefers to live, still some time it is good for him to. Of course if he [[lives]] still for sometime there is no [[doubt]] that he would like to return here. He also enjoys coming back here
  
[[people]]. So from the first [[moment]] the [[consciousness]] entering into the {{Wiki|cells}} of the [[parents]], although the [[body]] is very little, just a bit of liquid, however it is already a [[human being]]. A [[human being]] has all started. Therefore this kind of, out of [[ignorance]] then the [[people]] who makes [[abortion]] and like that, who destroy that little [[body]], although it is tiny but still it is a being, it is a destruction of a [[human being]]. Those [[beings]] with the [[fortunate]] [[karma]], those [[bardos]] of [[fortunate]] [[karma]], who take a good [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]] or otherwise, then when [[bardo]] [[life]] ends and when they actually take a [[rebirth]], they
+
in place of Geshela. He is taking [[care]] of so much like [[own]] [[parents]], taking [[care]]. So he is having a good time. Also wherever he visits in other centers of [[dharma]] he is very well treated. In [[India]] also the [[Tibetans]] they look after him very well. So therefore for him also to live some time is a very good opportunity. Whether he [[lives]] or [[dies]], [[Je Rinpoche]] says if you practice, try to practice as much as you can what you have learned from him or have received from him or received the [[teaching]], if you try to put it into practice that would make him most [[pleased]], give him the greatest [[happiness]]. Until now [[Je Rinpoche]] has no {{Wiki|disease}} of any kind in his [[body]]. From his [[birth]] until now he has never spent even one day in a hospital in [[India]], [[Tibet]] or in the [[West]]. Of course he can't, this is not a all a [[reason]] that he will be healthy all the time and not [[die]], because even very healthy strong [[people]] [[die]] all of a sudden. So therefore if he still [[lives]] for some time he may again come around. Wherever he is, anyway he will never forget all his [[disciples]] or his friends, [[dharma]] friends. So therefore, he includes everybody in his [[prayers]], in his [[prayer]] and [[protection]] and the [[people]] that he met here in the [[West]] and also the [[people]]  
[[experience]] more [[pleasant]], more [[pleasant]] and agreeable [[experience]] like one is sort of [[standing]] up sometimes or sometimes one is entering into a very beautiful mansion or sometimes one is sort of climbing up a stair. This kind of [[experience]] one gets before such a [[rebirth]]. Those [[human beings]] although have a [[karmic seed]] for taking [[rebirth]] as a [[human being]], but with very little stock of [[merit]], then when they enter in the [[womb]] of the Mother the [[bardo]] being [[experiences]] as he was being chased by something or running away from [[rain]] or something like that and escaping and hiding, like finding a hiding place and
 
  
this way it enters in. Those with very [[fortunate]] [[karma]] and good stock of [[merit]] and also with power of himself, then he can choose his {{Wiki|future}} [[rebirth]], choose the [[parents]], the right place, the [[parents]] then out of [[free will]] then entering into the Mother. So since we are all [[subject]] to [[death]] and no one of us who has any guarantee, not only we all must [[die]], but we also are not very far from it, most of us. Here in this group, the oldest is [[Rinpoche]]. Then all of us we are all near [[Je Rinpoche]] or some of are coming nearer and nearer to [[Je Rinpoche]]. So therefore we are not very far from the end so we must always keep
+
in [[India]] and also in [[Nepal]] and also in the corners of [[India]] and so on. Wherever he has visited sometimes he would even take notes of the names of the [[people]]. He can't do that for everybody, however whenever he prays and makes [[pujas]] and so on he [[thinks]] of everybody. He is obliged to do that because when he meets [[people]], the [[people]] ask him to pray for them and he always says yes and yes. If he doesn't do that it would be cheating [[people]]. That would be very wrong on his part, so he has to do that. Sometimes he also does [[pujas]], sometimes when it is necessary he does special [[pujas]] or like that for [[people]].  
  
that in [[mind]] and try to practice [[dharma]] as serious as one can. If one can practice some [[dharma]] in this [[life]] then the imprint, it always definitely leaves a very good imprint in us which will be very useful and very helpful in the {{Wiki|future}}. So that's all for this morning.
+
Because he receives a [[letter]] and [[people]] ask him. For example the [[German]] lady who was here some days ago, she had a daughter and this daughter had lots of problems and difficulties, nearly coming to [[suicide]] one time and so on. Much much problems like that. So that [[German]] lady came to see [[Rinpoche]] last time when he was in [[England]]. That daughter is again, she wasn't a [[Buddhist]] or a [[practitioner]] of [[dharma]], but she was also involved in some kind of [[spiritual]] thing and going to some old lady giving some kind of practices. The mother, the lady who came here, she [[lives]] in [[Munich]] in {{Wiki|Germany}} and the daughter [[lives]]  
 
After becoming the [[Nirmanakaya]] [[Vajrasattva]] now we should [[visualize]] the [[body mandala]]. Now the mansion, house or the mansion is still there which we have created before, as well the seats of the [[deities]] are still there. Now one’s [[self]] in the [[form]] of [[Vajrasattva]], the front, the back and the two sides of the [[body]] then is integrated with the mansion. So that doesn't mean that our [[body]] will fall into pieces or taken apart, but our [[body]] remains as it is and from
 
  
the front, from the back and the two sides of the [[body]] a second [[emanation]], second [[form]] goes out and integrate in the walls. So the four corners of the four walls have become part of our [[body]], they have become integrated with our [[body]]. Then the {{Wiki|nose}}, the {{Wiki|mouth}}, and the urinary {{Wiki|organ}} and anus, these four passages or [[four doors]], again a second [[emanation]] they go out and absorbed into the [[four doors]], four gates of the [[mandala]]. At this point we should also think that our [[body]] contains now a [[pure]] [[energy]], not the kind of [[energy]] gross [[energy]] as we ordinary [[energy]] we have, which [[causes]] all the [[agitation]] of the [[mind]] which gives rise to all the various conceptions, but these have already been [[purified]] of going through the [[transformation]]. Now we have only the [[pure]] [[energy]]. So then the [[five energies]] which we have inside in ourself which are the supports for the [[five wisdoms]] of the [[Buddha]], the [[mirror like wisdom]], the
+
in [[Japan]]. Then that girl was very very sick, and so no one could help, that old lady couldn't help and finally when the [[doctors]] said that she would [[die]] in a few days. So then the mother called her and gave the address of [[Rinpoche]] in [[India]] and told her to write to [[Rinpoche]]. Of course [[Rinpoche]] didn't know at that time what was going on. He has received a [[letter]] from this girl explaining her [[conditions]] and asking for some [[prayers]]. [[Je Rinpoche]] has written, it is
 +
very difficult to do something immediately when somebody is so far away and so on. So [[Je Rinpoche]] immediately sent a [[letter]] saying that you should [[take refuge]]. Then [[Rinpoche]] did a little [[puja]], even in [[India]] did some [[puja]] and making some [[offerings]] and some [[puja]]. Gradually she began to recover and she got better and better and finally she recovered from the trouble that she had. But she didn't know how to do really the [[refuge]] but she didn't have any
  
[[wisdom of equality]], [[discriminating wisdom]] and [[wisdom]] of [[action]] and the [[Dharmadhatu wisdom]] or the [[dharma]] [[sphere]] [[wisdom]]. All these [[five wisdoms]] each of these [[five wisdoms]] has a particular [[energy]] to support it. This [[wisdom]] [[energy]] which has [[five colors]], they dissolve, they absorb into the walls. As [[Je Rinpoche]] has explained yesterday, these walls have five layers, five layers with [[five colors]]. Starting from the outside the white, [[yellow]], [[red]], [[green]] and_ blue and they each layer is about four fingers wide. So these [[five energies]] with the [[five colors]] going out of the [[body]] second [[form]] of the [[five energies]] going out of leaving the [[body]] and absorbing into these five layers of the wall, and it transforms that wall into also part of our [[body]]. Then the [[consciousness]] of the [[tasting]], the [[tongue consciousness]] absorbs into the pugoo which is the thing on top of the wall. Then all the {{Wiki|intestines}} of our [[body]] absorbs into these
+
instructions about that. Quite recently now, the mother and daughter both of them have come to [[India]] to see [[Rinpoche]], traveling to [[Rinpoche's]] {{Wiki|college}} to ask [[Rinpoche]] to be there at the time of their arrival. So they came and [[Rinpoche]] gave a few teachings. [[Rinpoche]] had to go somewhere to another [[monastery]] and they followed him there and they stayed around there for some days. Both of them were well and [[happy]] and then they went back. Last time she saw
  
[[precious]] garlands or ornaments, ornamentation hanging on this pugoo, then the {{Wiki|muscles}} and the veins of the [[body]] they absorb into the little details of that [[garland]]. Then the white seminal fluid is absorbed into also part of this ornament which has some [[mirror]] which is all around, is [[transformed]] into those. Not [[mirror]] but crescent, [[moon]] crescent. There are many [[moon]] crescents, it Then the [[visual consciousness]] is absorbed into the mirrors. The [[smelling]] [[consciousness]] is absorbed into the [[flower garlands]] around the house. The {{Wiki|tongue}} absorbs into the [[bell]] handing around the corners of the building. These are decorations around the house outside, and the [[bodily]] {{Wiki|organ}} absorbs into the layap, how do you call this thing to dust with the little handle and then this sort of tail, like duster, there are many dusters, beautiful white dusters. So these are all a part of these decorations. First there are these garlands going like that, then inside these garlands there are some little 41
+
[[Rinpoche]] she said that everybody is fine. When then came, when that daughter came to [[India]] [[Rinpoche]] [[taught]] the power of [[meditation]], [[Tara]] [[mantras]] and [[refuge]], how to do [[refuge]] and she is ready now. So when someone does sincerely the [[prayers]] and [[take refuge]] and so on definitely has an effect, do [[pujas]] and so on, it definitely has an effect.  
 
   
 
   
ornamentations hanging down like this in these curves inside. At the end of these sort of fringes which is hanging there are some [[forms]] of [[moon]] crescent and [[bells]] hanging at the end and little [[mirror]] and things. Now the [[ear consciousness]] and the [[body consciousness]], they are absorbed into those banners and  
+
There is man whose [[name]] is [[Tibetan]], [[Sanje Tenzin]], and he had some trouble, he cannot sit properly and he had also trouble with the lung. This lung problem this [[agitation]] in his [[mind]]. When [[Rinpoche]] was in [[Switzerland]] this fellow, this [[Tibetan]], came to see him. At that time he was not in really good [[condition]], but was not so bad. [[Rinpoche]] gave him protections [[mandalas]] to wear on his [[body]]. Then he said he, that [[person]] told him that he would come to [[India]] and  
  
things which are [[standing]] on top of the gateway, that thing, that special little roof at the outside of each gate which we received yesterday. Those banners and things which are put on top of the each gate, those two [[consciousnesses]] are absorbed into them. Then the {{Wiki|legs}}, the two {{Wiki|legs}} so now two {{Wiki|legs}}, two thighs and two arms and upper arms and lower arms, the eight pieces absorbed a second [[form]] of these absorbed into the eight pillars So these eight pillars are not the ones which are inside the mansion, but they are outside as the wall goes like that, through the corridor and comes out and then goes like this, at the end of each wall there is a pillar so those pillars. So these limbs, a second [[emanation]] of these limbs, are absorbed into those pillars and those pillars become a part of ourself. So as we remember, the inside the [[mandala]] there is the inner circle of [[deities]] and there is outer circle, and there just there also those eight vases. There are eight vases, [[red]] vases filled with [[amrita]]. So our {{Wiki|abdomen}}, a second [[emanation]] of our {{Wiki|abdomen}} is absorbed into those vases. Inside each corner of the building there is a special ornament which is a [[crescent moon]] and then a [[jewel]] and a [[vajra]] top. Also outside of each corner that is on that stage where those [[goddesses]] were [[standing]], at each corner there is again the same ornament, the [[moon]] crescent, the [[jewel]] and the [[vajra]]. Also they are in each of that the wall goes like that and the corridor then it goes like that. So from outside if you go around, if you
+
become [[monk]] and so on and he didn't show up. Anyway he got better, now he is recovered from this lung problem, this [[mental]] trouble. One day he lost his [[protection]] [[mandala]]. He had a terrible father who was a drunkard, always drinking and always fighting with the [[people]]. Then the son again was again agitated.
 +
 +
Therefore what [[Je Rinpoche]] wants to say is that he prays, he includes everybody in [[prayers]] and there is no problem for him to pray for everybody and also give these protections and [[blessings]] if necessary. However, he cannot answer every letters. Even he couldn't write one single [[letter]] to Geshela. Unless there are very important things, usually letters [[Rinpoche]] says that they are not much use, they are just to say I am well, I {{Wiki|hope}} you are well and just a piece of paper. So he doesn't see there is much need to do that. I am well, I {{Wiki|hope}} you are well and I {{Wiki|hope}} to see you again, with best wishes and so, and then put that in an envelope and spend few [[money]] on that, put stamps, and all these things. [[Je Rinpoche]] [[thinks]] it is not
  
circumambulate around, then there are two corners where the corridor is, there are two corners there and there are also such ornaments. The hearing [[sense organ]], the {{Wiki|ear}} {{Wiki|organ}}, [[emanates]] second [[forms]] and absorbs into those crescents and [[vajras]]. Ones [[aggregates]], the [[five aggregates]] are absorbed into those [[five paths]] on the floor of the mansion as well as on the ceiling, they are in [[five colors]], starting from the [[East]] they are white, [[yellow]], [[red]] and [[green]] center and blue. The [[five aggregates]] are absorbed into those. Then the secret {{Wiki|organ}}, then {{Wiki|navel}}, [[heart]] and the {{Wiki|nose}} absorbed into those four [[tubo]], we call that thing, that kind of special decoration on the outside of each gate which is supported on pillars, remember that rather complicated thing? It is absorbed
+
into those. Our [[visual organ]], the [[eyes]] are absorbed into those on top of the [[tubo]] there is a decoration, the [[wheel]] and the two deers. So there are four [[wheels]] so our [[visual]] {{Wiki|organs}} are absorbed into those [[wheels]]. The [[mental consciousness]], our [[mind]] is absorbed into those deers, eight deers. The inner {{Wiki|organ}}, [[smelling]] {{Wiki|organ}} is then absorbed into a [[banner]] which is on there, on those four places. Our [[mental]] {{Wiki|organ}} is absorbed into the [[lotus]] on which the [[deity]] is sitting. So this way our [[body]], from the part of our [[body]], a second [[emanation]] is absorbed into those different [[objects]] in the [[mandala]]. Thus the [[mandala]] has become a part of ourself, has become a part of our [[body]], so it becomes a "[[body mandala]]". So previously the mansion was something which was created by your
+
very important, it is not very necessary to do very often. If someone has a real difficulty, or some real need they will surely write then we will know it and if there is something we can do then we do it. Also sometimes without receiving a [[letter]], one hears about this already before. Therefore these are some personal things he just felt to say, if ever some of you writes to [[Rinpoche]] and doesn't receive an answer and doesn't hear anything, then don't think that he has forgotten you completely or something like that. As he told you before I always remember everybody and pray for everybody. He will pray. A [[prayer]] is
 +
a [[prayer]] and he is not sure whether it will always be effective or not. However, what is really definitely effective is if you practice from your [[own]] side as much as you can, that definitely has an effect on you and if that combines with his [[prayer]] the results will be very [[extraordinary]], very good. If from your side, make no [[effort]] let alone [[development]] of [[Bodhichitta]], even take no [[refuge]] anything at all like this, then from his side even going on praying, praying, praying that isn't, there is not going to be very much result of this [[prayer]]. Then it would be like [[Rinpoche]] praying for completely dried [[wood]], a [[flower]] to grow on a completely dried [[wood]].  
 +
 +
So now [[Je Rinpoche]] will not go to speak very much, it is just to waste time and anyway keep whatever is in your [[mind]] and all the time try to practice, try to be {{Wiki|sincere}} in your practice and make [[effort]] as much as you can. Most important thing is to develop a [[wholesome]] [[state of mind]], develop [[Bodhichitta]]. On the basis of that, if you can, go practice some [[sadhana]] like this, try to do some [[tantric]] [[meditations]], do [[retreat]] and so on, that is very beneficial, very
  
[[mind]] and it just existed, but it was not really a part of the [[body]]. So now here, through the [[absorption]] of these parts of our [[body]] into them, then the mansion although it has the shape of the house and so on, it is still a part of our [[body]]. Now that is the creation of "[[body mandala]]" outside one’s [[body]] in the mansion.  
+
helpful. If this is all too complicated and you don't have the time and everything, you cannot practice all that, then just [[concentrate]] on Avilokitishvara. Avilokitishvara is seen as the [[embodiment]] of all the [[Buddhas]] and all the [[gurus]] and everything. And recite [[OM MANI PADME HUM]] all the [[wholesome]] [[state of mind]] for the [[benefit]] of all [[sentient beings]], recite [[OM MANI PADME HUM]] as many as you can up to 100 million times. If one recites 100 million times [[OM MANI PADME HUM]], Avilokitishvara has guaranteed that [[person]] will take [[rebirth]] into Sukarati.  
 
   
 
   
Now after this we must [[visualize]] the [[body mandala]] within the [[body]], so again all the [[five aggregates]], the [[four elements]] and so on all the 32 parts of ourself, our [[body]] must be [[transformed]] into the [[deities]]. Therefore first we [[visualize]] an [[OM]] in our head, a white [[OM]] which is of the [[nature]] of the [[form]] [[aggregate]]. So we [[visualize]] the boundary of that is from the [[crown of the head]] up to the {{Wiki|forehead}} where the [[hair]] ends. That [[OM]] changes into a [[Vairocana]] as
+
[reading question] so this has already been answered. It says "wishing [[Rinpoche]], Dear [[Dorje Chang]], thank you very much for all your [[kindness]]. Please live long for the [[benefit]] of all [[sentient beings]], with deep [[respect]] and [[devotion]]", Chambaradis. So [[Je Rinpoche]] has already answered that. [[Je Rinpoche]] will try to try, of course, to fulfill such a wish and he will pray and also you also need to pray since we have developed a guru-disciple link or like bond,
 +
 
 +
[[relation]]. So on that very [[pure]] [[relation]] then undamage to the [[pure]] like or [[relation]] then if one expresses a good {{Wiki|sincere}} wish for the [[benefit]] of each other it definitely will be fulfilled. So the [[puja]] this evening will start at 7:00pm. It cannot start earlier because some [[people]] cannot be here earlier than that.

Revision as of 01:45, 27 November 2020

before, with three faces and six arms. So the description of the details we have had already before, so we visualize that. Now from there, from the forehead and neck, that is the location of the feeling aggregate transforming into a red AH, not feeling aggregate, it's a perception aggregate transforming into a red AH, changes into Amitaba red, with three faces and six arms. From the neck to the heart center then the consciousness skanda or consciousness aggregate takes the form of a HUM blue. So this HUM changes into Akshobya with blue color, three faces and six arms. Now from there, from the heart center level, that is right across the nipples, just from there to the level of the navel. The feeling skanda transforms into letter SO, yellow letter SO. So it changes into Ratnasambhava. Now from there...[...]...of Sanskara Skanda, volitional skanda aggregate, half in green color which changes

into Ammogasiddhi green. So that is starting from the navel up to the root of the thigh or end just where the thigh begins and up to the end of the hip. So those are the five Buddhas, Tatagathas. Then the four elements. Now in the navel there is Chirma, white body. If one visualizes just a deity in some parts of the body, that's not called body mandala. The meaning of the body mandala is for example when we visualize Chirma in the navel, then we should think that this Chirma is in fact it is the nature of the earth element, solidity element of our body and we should see it as one. It is just a form of our earth element. If we integrate the deity with our element, then it is called body mandala, not just simply visualizing a deity in some parts of the body. Then in the heart center, all the water element of our body takes the form of letter MUM, which changes into Mamake. Then in the next center of the heat element or

fire element of our body takes the form of Kirkarma, red color. Then on the crown of the head ones air element taking the form of letter THAM, green which changes into Tara, Green Tara. Now in our eyes, the eyes themselves take the form of letter KLIM which changes into Bodhisattva Chittagharba in our eyes, which are our eyes. Also in the eyes ones, the form that is sense object, visual object form aspect, the appearance aspect, takes the form of letter ZA and changes into Vajraform goddess. So two Chittagharbas and two Vajraform goddesses. So those two the male and female deities in there, the Bodhisattva and the goddess of form, sit together embracing each other. Then in the ear organs inside transforms into OM and they change into Vajrapani, two Vajrapanis, yellow color. Also the sound aspect of our body takes the form of letter HUM which changes into the Vajrasound goddess as the consort of the Vajrapani.

They are embracing. Inside the nose, the smelling organ, changes into a letter OM which transforms into the Akashagarva, blue in color. Then the smell aspect of our body changes into the Vajrasmell goddess, red color. Akashagarva is not blue, it is yellow, and the consort is red. They are embracing. At the root of our tongue, the tongue or the gastritory organ itself changing into OM, letter OM, which changes into Avalokitshvara in red color. Then at the same place, the taste aspect of our body takes the form of a hull (?) green, which changes into Vajrataste goddess, green body. We should visualize these deities very small ant like reflection, not something which is very concrete, giving discomfort in the body, but something like a reflection, very fine and subtle body. Now in the heart center the mental organ taking, transforming into HUM which changes into Manjushri red color. He is alone there. At the end of the secret organ, sexual organ, right at the end, then in the tactile sensation or the tactile then the body organ the physical organ then transforming into the letter HA which changes into Sarwanewana, not HA but OM 42

changes into Sarwanewana becomes being the Bodhisattva like that at the end of the organ. And at the same place the tactile aspect of our body takes the form of Vajratouch goddess at the same place down there. So this Sarwanewana becomes being is green and Vajratouch goddess is blue, they are in union. Now

in all the joints, the joints themselves transform into sun, the color of the sun is green and they transform into Samantabadra green body in all the joints. So there are 360 Samantabadras in us. Then on the crown of the head, the nerves of the veins taking the form of changing into letter MAE which transforms into Matraya, white Maitraya on the crown of the head. So all the peaceful deities are already complete. Now there are still the croadas. So we have visualized the Yamandati in our right hand before, but that time only just visualizing the deity just there, inside there; but now we should think

that the right hand itself is transforming into a HUM which changes into the Yamandati. In the left a letter HUM which is of the very nature of our left hand, then transforming into Rajanadati. Then the mouth, the HUM which is the nature of our mouth, transforms into Hyergliva or Phenmandati at the root of our tongue, red color. In the secret organ, the secret organ itself changing into a HUM which is the nature of the secret organ itself, then transforming into Benadati or Amritakundalini. So in the secret vajra or in the secret organ that three deities. Although they are three deities, three different in appearance there are three deities, but in nature, in essence, they are three different aspects of ourself.

First there is the Asavveranabecombeni which is one of the Bodhisattvas which is the physical organ of ourself, who is embracing with the goddess who is called Vajratouch. So this is the touching aspect, the tactile aspect of our body. Then there is now this croada, Amritakundalini, or the Benadati which is of the nature of the organ itself. So there are three deities, three different appearances with the three different essences. Now the right shoulder, the

letter HUM which is the nature of the right shoulder, changing into Achela, blue. On the left shoulder the HUM which is of the nature of the shoulder itself transforming into Taglandsa, blue. In the right knee the HUM which is of the nature of the knee itself transforms into Aneladanda, also blue. In the left knee a HUM which is of the nature of the knee itself transforming into Mahabala, dark blue color. The crown of the head a HUM which is the nature of that part of the body itself, transforms into Ushnishachakravati. The two HUMs in our two heels which is the nature of the heels themselves transforms into two Sambaranzas. Those deities remain in these different locations in our body and we should think that they are in appearance of the deity, but in fact they are the parts of our body. So that is the body mandala. After that comes the blessing of the body, speech and mind. So further we should visualize on

the crown of the head under the skin in between the skin and the skull a little moon disc, with OM in the center, white OM in the center. This OM is radiating out five colored rays. These rays of light coming from that OM send a lot of countless Chenma, one of the first of the four goddesses, the four consorts of the Buddha, the Chenma, countless forms of Chenma emanating from these rays of light, and they go out in every direction. They invite all the Buddhas n the form of Vairocana. So we should visualize this Vairocana as coming in a big assembly with one central figure with a consort, embracing with a consort, and the rest of the Vairocanas around this central figure without consorts. So now we are sort of in front of that Vairocana. Now so Vairocana is in front of us so we make a request to Vairocana with the following verse, asking the Vairocana to bless our body and to turn our body into the vajra body

of the Buddha. So the Vairocana is the form of the body aspect of all the Buddhas. Amita of the speech and Akshobya of the mind. So here we are making a request to the Vairocana saying "Oh glorious Vairocana you are the holder of the vajra body of the Buddha and I am a practitioner or the developer of the non-duality of the body, speech and mind of the Buddha, so therefore bestow upon me the blessings of the body of Buddha. Then there is the next verse which says "All the glorious Buddhas of the ten directions, again bless me with the same" the rest of the lines are the same "bless me with the vajra body, turn my body into vajra body, I am the developer or practitioner of the non-duality of the three aspects of the Buddha". The first request is made to the central figure Vairocana. The second request is made to all the other emanations of the Buddha. So we make the request to all of them together. So now as

we have created before a lot of Chenma, which is the consort of the Vairocana, a lot of them. From the rays of light we have created a lot of them filling the space. So all the rest of the Vairocanas who are without a consort and they all embrace with the Chenma that we have created. So by this embracing and the union with these consorts, then the Buddhas and their consorts they completely melt, blissfully melt in the light and flow of amrita. Or if it is easier to visualize that they dissolve in light and they all become light. They all dissolve into white light and that white light absorbs through the crown of our head. Our body is filled with this white light. Then it purifies all the obstacles and in particular all the physical obstacles and it turns our body into the vajra body of the Buddha. So with this mantra OM SAWA...is a first verse and that means that is like in a prayer form that "may my body

become the vajra body of the Buddha and so on". Then there is OM SAWA TATAGATHA KAYA VAJRA SOBAWA ADMAGO KAYA GO HUM. With this mantra we think "I have become the embodiment of the bodies of all the Buddhas." SARWA TATAGATHA, all the Buddhas. KAYA means body. VAJRA is vajra. SOBAWA is the nature, the entity. ADMAGO HUM means I am. So ¬ I am the entity or the nature of all the vajra bodies of the Tatagathas, of all Buddhas. So we should hold this divine pride that "I have become or I endow this vajra body of all the Buddhas." Now for the speech, then again on red lotus on our tongue a red letter AH appears and which sends five rays of light, five colored rays of light. So these rays of light send out countless forms of Klerkarmo, that is the consort of the Amitaba. A lot of them go out in all directions. So this invites all the Buddhas from every direction in the form of Amitaba, red form Amitaba, with one

central figure which is already embracing with consort and the rest without. Here again we make request. Two verses. First verse to the central Amitaba, the second to the entourage. So it says again, "Oh Glorious One, the glorious one who holds the vajraspeech of the Buddha, the very dharma, One who holds the essence of the dharma, then again asking for the same requests." It says "I am the practitioner of the non-duality of the three bodies, the three aspects of the Buddha, the body, speech and mind. Therefore please bless me and turn me, turn my speech into the very speech of the Buddha." After that again dedicating to the entourage we sing "Oh Tatagathas of the ten directions" and we make the same request. So the essence of the request is " I am trying to develop this kind of trying to achieve these three attributes of the Buddha, so therefore please bless me and transform my speech into the

Buddha's body and speech. After that those Klerkarmos that we have sent out which went out from the letter AH in our throat they enter in union with the Amitabas and with very great bliss they completely melt into the light. So all the deities and their consorts their bodies completely melt into the red light and that red light comes down and absorbs through the tongue in our mouth, and it spreads all over in the body and it purifies all the speech obstacles and attained the power of the Buddha's speech. We recite the mantra OM SOBAWA 43

TATAGATHA WOKA VAJRA SOBAWA AMAGO HUM,

that means "I am the nature of the vajra speech of all the Buddhas." There is a mantra and a verse which has the same meaning except this time it is all for the speech of the Buddha. And we should hold the divine pride that one’s self is the embodiment of the speech of all the Buddhas. Now we should visualize a HUM in our chest which changes into a sun disc, and another little HUM appears on top of the sun disc which sends out again five colored rays of light. So these rays of light create a lot of Mamake or the consort of Akshobya and they go out again, like before, and they invite again a big assembly of Akshobyas in front of us. Like before the central figure is with consort and the rest is without and we are now sitting right in front of the assembly, and we are calling "Oh Glorious One who holds the vajraspeech of the Buddhas, and I am the practitioner of the non-duality of the three attributes of the Buddha. So Glorious One bless me and turn my mind into the vajra mind of all the Buddhas." After that same request is make to the rest of the assembly by

calling them "The Tatagathas of the Ten Directions". So altogether we are asking their help, their blessing to purify the obstacles of our mind and to turn our mind into the omniscient fully enlightened mind of the Buddha. After that, all the Mamakes that we have created and the invited Akshobyas, they enter in union, and they experience immeasurable state of great bliss. So by this extreme, experience of this extreme joy and bliss physical and mental joy and bliss, they melt into a dark light and that light finally absorbs into the center of our chest. So this dark light which enters through our chest,

completely spreads through all parts of our body and it completely purifies all the obstacles, in particular that of the mind and we also experience very great bliss; and we should think that we have received the vajra mind of all the Buddhas. Again we make this prayer that the Buddha mind which is omniscient, which is all wholesome, all virtuous, so "May my mind also become like that," is the essence of this little prayer. Now the body, speech and mind are all complete. So now we should think that we have become the very holder of all three aspects of the Buddha. So there is a mantra of this

particular mantra like for the mind, that is OM SAWA TATAGATHA CHETA VAJRA SOBAWA AMOKO HUM. So CHETA means mind and also heart, so that is the mind of the Buddha. That means "I am the embodiment of the Cheta or the mind of all the Buddhas". So now we become the very embodiment of all three attributes of the Buddha. So this is not just only a few Buddhas, one or two Buddhas, but we have become the embodiment of all the Buddhas and received the blessing of the mind of all the Buddhas.

Then we should recite this mantra again OM SAWA TATAGATHA...Now this time we should say all three, body, speech and mind OM SAWA TATAGATHA KAYA WOK CHETA VAJRA SOBAWA AMOGO HUM, "I have become the embodiment of the body, speech and mind of all the Buddhas. The holder of the non-dual essence, inseparable

essence, entity of the body, speech and mind of the Buddhas." So we are from the generation of the Nirmanakaya or the Vajrasattva or the Nirmanakaya form. Until now we are in that same form, with the form of blue Vajradhara or Vajrasattva, with three faces and six arms. Now we should generate what is called the triple body of ourself. So our external body is in the same form as Vajradhara, blue, and now inside the heart we should visualize in the center of the heart we should visualize a lotus with variegated petals, colored petals, with moon disc on top, and on top of the noon disc there is Jeanasattva in red color, one face and two arms only, holding bell and vajra, embracing with a consort of the same color. That is called Jeannasattva. Our external body is Samayasattva. The external Vajradhara body is Samayasattva. So that is our external body and inner body. Now inside the chest of the Jeannasattva there is a little moon disc with a tiny blue vajra on top, standing on the top. In its center there is again a very little blue HUM. This tiny little HUM is so

distinct, so clear, and it is producing endless stream of light all the time. So usually the deity and this seat underneath, they are also, they are a union, it is a union already, a union of method and wisdom. There is always a union of method and wisdom everywhere so that is why some deities are sitting on the moon, some others on the sun. So our external body, Samayasattva, the blue Vajradhara, is sitting on a sun disc. So the sun disc is the wisdom and the Vajradhara itself is the method, so here is again established that union of method and wisdom. Now inside this Jeannasattva, the red colored Jeannasattva, Jeanna means wisdom body, so therefore because it is a wisdom body then it is sitting on a moon disc which is method aspect. So that again makes another union of method and wisdom, deity the wisdom and moon disc the method, so union of method and wisdom. So the tiny little vajra and HUM inside the chest in the innermost, that innermost body which is Jeannasattva. Now we should visualize the lord of the Family or the Guru, the lord of the Family

on the crown of our head. We should visualize the lord of the Family Vajradhara on the crown of our head in white body, holding bell and vajra and embracing with a consort of the same color. So the consort is Vajradatishwari. So now the lord of the family Vajradhara and the consort Vajradatishwari enter in blissful union and then from the junction of the secret, their secret vajra and lotus, from the junction of their two organs then the rays of light and fluid of bliss run down, come down, and enter through the crown of our head and gradually fills our whole body and makes a thorough purification throughout the body and we experience very great, our body filled with that and we experience very great bliss. So here we should make a short break.

So now that was the blessing for, process of blessing of one’s body, speech and mind. Next is the creation of deities in the mandala. Now we are in the form of Vajrasattva and this Vajrasattva is without consort, this is without consort, that we are now. Right now it is without consort. Now for the

creation of the mandala, then the deity must have consort. Therefore, now we generate from our chest a consort, a female consort, not particularly in the form of a deity yet, just a consort, ordinary consort form, a girl of about 16 years old like that, is produced from ones chest, from the HUM in ones chest and placed in front of us. So this consort then changing into void, then takes the form of Vajratouch, the actual consort of the deity. So when it says "From my chest I create a consort of my kind" so this means a consort which is inseparable from one’s self. So this consort then OM SHUNA...SOBAWA AMOGO HUM with this mantra then that consort becomes void, completely void and meditates on shunyata, becomes completely void, not inherently existent consort but becomes completely void. So at the same moment the consort's body completely disappears. Then out of the voidness appears letter KUM, a blue KUM. That

blue KUM changes into blue vajra with KUM inside Then that vajra completely changes and then the complete form of the Vajratouch goddess appears, with three faces and six arms, blue color, with Akshobya in the crown, holding the same implements in her hand like ourself, with vajra, wheel and lotus in the right hands and bell, jewel and sword in the left hand, and half of the hair is made into a knot and half falling on the back, a very beautiful and very youthful and with radiance and all the beautiful complexion, and adorned in all the precious ornaments and garments and 44

exactly like the YUB, exactly like the YUB, with all the ornaments. So now before entering in union with this consort we must place deities in the body of the consort. So although we place deities in the consort's body but it is not body mandala. So for a body mandala it needs a body, a physical body as its basis, like we have to transform. Like we have transformed all our joints and nerves and veins and limbs and so on like that, it needs a physical base.

Since this consort is created by us it is, the consort is, holds the essence of wisdom, so therefore it is not a physical ordinary form, so there is nothing really to purify, to transform, so the deities are simply placed in her body. So like ourself in the consort also from crown of the head to the forehead, a letter white OM which changes into Vairocana with three faces, white body, three faces and six arms, just like in our case. Forehead to the neck a red AH into Amitaba. From the neck to the heart under the breast the HUM, blue HUM, changing into Akshobya, so they are not like before, now like the aggregates or organs changing into something, not like that. But simply the syllables are visualized and they are transformed into these deities in her different parts of the body. From yellow SO, letter SO which is in between the heart and the navel, it changes into Ratnasambhava, yellow Ratnasambhava. From there up to the root of the sex then there is the letter HA, from green HA then Ammogasiddhi in green body. Now here this is less complicated because one doesn't have to think that certain elements or certain organs or certain parts of our body or body changing into the first letter then deity, rather we

are just placing the letters and they are changing into the deity. So LAM into Cherrna in her navel then HAM into MAMAKE in her chest, then PAM, red PAM changing into red Klerkarma in the neck, and green TAM changing into Tara in the Crown of the head. So in her two eyes there is the vajraform goddesses embracing with Kittagharba, Bodhisattva Kittagharba. So there is a difference in the YUB in the YUB when you visualize these deities they are the Bodhisattvas, the male figures as the principal embracing with the consorts. Now here it is the consorts which are embracing with the Bodhisattva. In the YUB there is the Kittagharba Bodhisattva in the eyes sitting facing in the same direction as the deity which is embraced with the vajraform goddess. Now here the vajraform goddess is the principal figure from the side of the consort, so the vajraform goddess which is embraced with a male consort that is Kittagharba. Now in the ears, before it is Vajrapani embracing with vajrasound goddess, now here is the vajrasound goddess embracing with Vajrapani. So in short, in the YUB, in the male deities then when you place these inner deities, then all the male figures are facing like the principal deity itself, and the consorts are facing the opposite and embracing. Now in the consort in the goddess, in the female deity then it is the female goddesses in different places which is by keeping the principal place and facing the same direction as the outer body, and the male deities are embracing facing opposite. So in the nose then vajrasmell goddess embracing with Markashgharva. The root of the tongue then the vajrataste goddess embracing with Lokitshvara. So in the secret lotus of the consort, vajratouch goddess embracing with the Sarvanivarana become Bene Bodhisattva. So now in the limbs we have visualized before in the YUB there are the Mahakroadas. Here in the consort they are Mahakroadees that is the same thing but in female form, Mahakroadees. So in her right hand,

instead of Yamandati there is Vajravatali, it is a kroadee, it is one of the wrathful female guardian, Vajravatali. In the left then Shangimetuma that is also a kroadee. In the mouth there is Tonyacherma. Tonyacherma. In the secret lotus there is Ekazati and in the right shoulder there is the kroadee which is called "The Mother of all Tatagathas". In the left shoulder there is a kroadee Natsoenchenma, the variegated jewel, this guardian. In the right knee that is Natsobema, variegated lotus, that is the name of kroadee. So this Natsobema is not a flower, it is the name of that guardian who, Vishuapadma. Then in the left, there is Vishukarma, so this is also a kroadee in the left knee. In the crown of the head then there is the Akashvajre, that is also a

kroadee. Then in the two heels there are two forms of goddess of earth. So like the Vajradhara is endowed with all these deities encased in different parts of the body, that consort is also endowed with the same number of deities in her. So now the two secret organs of the YUB and YAM must be consecrated. So therefore, first the secret organ of the YUB transforms into vajra, blue vajra with five prongs and the central prong is like a passage and with a hole at the end. So outwardly it is the male organ. Inwardly it is like before for the tongue. So here inwardly it is the vajra with a hole at the end. First a HUM then changes into a vajra, that blue vajra. So when the blissful fluid comes down, then it reaches to the end of the vajra but does not emitted unless for

some very particular purpose like creation of mandala and out of drops and so on. Otherwise it is always held back at the end of it. Therefore, at the end it is closed with the letter PE, yellow. So both organs, outwardly they remain as they are, but inside, inside the main organ there is this vajra which has in the central prong there is a passage which is sealed with PE at the end. So now for the consecration of the organ of the consort. The Bhaga or the female organ changes into, first it becomes void, then it changes into AH, red AH which transforms into a red lotus with 8 petals. Again, in the center of the lotus there is a passage which is the hole is again closed with the letter PE, yellow letter PE. So this is outwardly this is the normal organ but

inwardly there is this lotus, red lotus. Both organs are filled with the 5 colored rays of light inside completely. Now to engage in the sexual union with the consort, then we should first hold, although our body remains the Vajradhara body, or Vajrasattva body, but we should hold first the pride of Ratnasambhava, we should think that "I have become Ratnasambhava" all the body doesn't change. Then begins the actual act of the union, when one recites the mantra OM SARWA TATAGATHA ANRA VAJRA SOBAWA AMAGO HUM. So the reason why we must hold the pride of Ratnasambhava here is when the Guhyasamaja Tantra was taught in the divine mandala of the Buddha, at that time this OM SARWA TATAGATHA ANRA VAJRA SOBAWA AMAGO HUM, this mantra has been spoken or taught by

Ratnasambhava. Then there is the SARWA TATAGATHA PUJA VAJRA SOBAWA AMAGO HUM, there is a second mantra. This has been taught by Ammogasiddhi. So therefore, we must hold here first for the pride of Ratnasambhava while we recite this first mantra. So as one begins the union, at that time we should recite OM SARWA TATAGATHA...while holding the pride of the Ratnasambhava. So this OM SARWA TATAGATHA means "all the Buddhas" ANRAG means the "ultimate attachment", ANRAGNA or desire, VAJRA SOBAWA AMAGO HUM "I am the embodiment of the vajra, the attachment or the vajra passion of all the Buddhas". So with this one begins the act and when, by beginning the act then one starts to experience bliss, the great bliss, then we must again change back not changing form but

changing the pride back into Akshobya. So with holding the pride of Akshobya we must recite the mantra HUM. So the HUM is like singing, like the sound of singing, a natural sound coming by the experience of the bliss. So by continuation of the act of love, then the experience of the bliss increases. After that with holding the pride of the Ammogasiddhi, then we must recite the mantra PE SARWA TATAGATHA PUJA VAJRA SOBAWA AMAGO HUM. So by the act of the union, then one experiences a very great bliss and by the heat of the great bliss spreading throughout the body then all those deities of the body mandala, inside our bodies, they all melt into the fluid of the bliss, and they all melt and fall down. So they all melt in the blissful fluid, the fluid 45

of bliss, and run down. Then through the vajra of ourself then they all go into the lotus of the, secret lotus of the consort. So the drop which falls into the lotus of the consort divides first as one drop then that divided into two. One part of the drop forms the mandala, the external mandala, the mansion.

First it becomes a DRUM, letter DRUM, then changing into divine mansion inside the lotus. Except for the side, it is just like the mandala in which we are living, square with three doors and everything, with all its deities, with seats of the deities and everything. So the mandala is in the lotus of the consort, so therefore, the direction which faces you, that side of the front of you, right in front of you, that direction is again East. Then the second, the other half of this drop then divides into 32 drops and then they settle on those seats, two on the central seat and one on each of the other seats, so 32 drops. So the position of all these drops are just the same as the position of the deities in the mandala. So the two drops right in the center, the

central seat. Then there are 8 drops around the Tatagathas and their consorts. Then again there are four drops in each corner that is for the four goddesses, the form, sound and so on. Then again there are 8 drops, two at each door one at each side of the door, so there are 8 drops for 8 Bodhisattvas. Then there are 4 drops into the four corridors for the kroadas and also 4 drops in each corner, for more kroadas. Then one drop up there under the canopy for one more kroada and one under the deity for one more kroada. So altogether 32 deities. So these radiant drops which are now on the feet of the deity they first transform into 32 syllables, then the 32 syllables into 32 implements, then into the deities. Then after that so these drops change into the syllables of each deity, placed in between OM AH HUM. So OM OM, OM AH AH HUM...like that for each deity there is one syllable placed in between OM AH HUM.

On the central seat there is OM AH that is the mantra, OM AH, then HUM HUM. HUM is the syllable for Akshobya. Right in front of it for the consort OM AH, CUM H1IM, the CUM is for the Vajratouch. So that is not very difficult to visualize. As one recites these mantras, then one thinks that these mantras or syllables are there on the different seats. Then for the Tatagathas OM AH OM HUM, OM AH SO HUM, OM AH AH HUM, and OM AH HA HUM. Now for the goddesses OM AH

LAM HUM, OM AH MAM HUM, OM AH BAM HUM, Otl AH TAM HUM in the same direction. That is the inner circle. Now for more goddesses. Now the syllables for those four goddesses; are ZA HUM BAM HO, therefore OM AH ZA HUM, OM AH HUM HUM, OM AH BAM HUM, OM AH HO HUM. Then starts the Bodhisattva starting from Matriya OM AH MA HUM, then OM AH TELE HUM for Chittagharva, Now for South, OM AH OM HUM; OM AH OM HUM. Now the West door there are Manjushri and Avelokitishvara, Manjushri is with HUM, and Avelokitishvara is OM, so OM AH HUtl HUM, and CM AH OM IIUM. Avelokitishvara is first, Otl AH OM HUM, OM AH HUM HUM. Now at the Northern gate there are two Bodhisattvas, that is Sarvanievarana becomebeni and Samantabhadra. Nievarana becomebeni is HUM HUM and for Samantabhadra is SOM

liUM All the Mahakrodhas they all have the same syllable that is HUM, so it says in the text then then HUMs with OM AH HUM. So that is OM AH HUM HUM, OM AH IIUM HUM, Ot '1 AH HUM HUM like this each place for the krodhas. So in the text instead of repeating ten times, it says ten HUMs. So now the syllables must be changes into the symbols or the implements, then back into the deity. Then we are almost complete constructing the construction, then it won't be very difficult. So here we will stop for tonight.

So Je Rinpoche first gave a brief review of yesterday's teaching. Now we have reached the what is called the "Right of the Mandala", the khyil 'khor rgyal mchog, that is the Rite of the Mandala King, Mandala King. Then after that comes the Right of the Karma King, or action, will follow after. Now the Right of the Mandala King or Lord of the Mandala, or King of the mandala, stage now. We have entered in union with the consort and then all the deities in our different parts of the body melt into blissful fluid and they reach the lotus of the consort and the one drop which divides into two, one becomes the

mandala and the other one divides into 32 drops and they settle down on the seats which are already there and first...So here the generation of the deity is called "Three stage process of generation", like before when we generate as the deity, it was 5 stage process of generation; first becoming a moon, then sun and syllable, then implements then becoming the deity. Now here these deities are generated in 3 stage process. So they first change into the syllable, between OM AH HUM. So first they are four syllables for the 5 Dhyana Buddhas' that is OM AH CUM HUM, OM AH HA HUM, ON AH SA HUM, that is for the 4 Dhyana Buddhas and then there are the LAM AH PAM TAM, again in between OM AH HUM for the consorts. Then ZA HUM BAM HO, again these 4 syllables in between OM AH HUM for the 4 goddesses.

Then there are the 8 Bodhisattvas, MAM TALEM OM and a HUM. So there are Bodhidisattvas two at each gate there are the syllables which Rinpoche has given yesterday. Bodhisattvas, and then 10 HUM So they change into these syllables for the Be in place of OM AH HUM, OM AH HUM, like that for the Mahakrodhas. I made a mistake; they are not out yet in the actual mandala, they are still in that little mandala inside the womb of the mother. There the drops change into the syllables and settle there on their respective seats. So this lotus, the inner lotus of the secret place of the consort, it [...]

[...] ...is the womb, actual womb of a Mother. It is just the same location where a normal womb is, so it is just below the abdomen. So some people may think AH OM-- that is not very-- how can such a mandala with so many people, so many deities and so on can fit into there, and it would be very suffocating or something. But that is only our own unnecessary worry, with our normal usual conceptions. There is no such difficulty. Although it is in the womb of the

consort, but it is still in that very place, the mandala and deities and everything and fits in and also without any pressure, without any pressure. So it is like if one looks through a little hole in the needle, from that little hole you can see the whole mountain and whole valley and you can see --like that, in the little place one should think that the whole mandala fits into there. So also when we offer mandala, for example, the mandala base is very small, it is just something round which can be held in our two hands. However when we offer the mandala we should think that this can hold the whole universe with all the continents and Mt. Meru and everything can fit into that. This is something which must be created by your mind. If we think that we have a small mandala base in our hand and then a very large 46

something which is outside of that, around us or something, that is not the way to offer. One should think in such way the everything can fit into that little base of the mandala. So that is same. So starting from the front in the womb of the consort, then the front side of the consort that is the Eastern direction which is facing to you; it starts from there. So the first appears East there are two OM AH HUM HUM, OM AH HUM HUM, for the central deity and his consort so these turn into two vajras on the central seat. Then for Varircana OM AH HUM, that changes into a wheel, then in the South a jewel 7 precious jewel, and in the West a lotus, and in the North a sword. So a little correction for Ammoghasiddhi not a sword, but a cross vajra. Now the consort, starting from the Southeast, Southwest and so on are [...]

[...] ...the syllables LAM MAM PAM TAM PETRIM OM HUMs, change into, respectively change into wheel vajra and Utala flower and again a crossvajra. Then the four goddesses of form and so on, their syllables ZA HUM BAM HO change into mirror and a string instrument, something like vena and then a conch filled with perfume and a precious container filled with food, that one can visualize like very celestial fruits or nectar or something like that.

Now the 8 Bodhisattvas, starting from the Eastern door, so Eastern door there is Maitraya and Chittagharba both generate from wheels. There are two wheels. There is a slight difference. The Maitreya holds in his hand a wheel, but not just a wheel itself, but a nagabresha , it is a kind of, it is called the "naga tree " kind of plant, flower which supports a wheel on top. So -therefore this is, the Maitreya is generated from a wheel supported on a little

branch of this nagabresha, this plant. The other, the Chittagharba with simple wheel. Then the other Bodhisattvas of the South, East and North, they are all, on the South they are two jewels, in the west two lotuses, and in the North two crossvajras -not the crossvajras, but swords. So the reason the Maitraya Bodhisattva is holding this nagabresha in his hand is when Maitraya Bodhisattva will show the deed of fully enlightenment in the future, as a coming Buddha, after Shakyamuni, he attains his enlightenment under the tree, that particular tree of nagabresha. Like it is the Princadhata has attained the enlightenment under the present Bodhi tree or the Ashoga tree. So in the same way the Maitraya attains his enlightenment under a nagabresha - that is why he is holding that in his hand. So it is a great wish or prayer of Maitraya Bodhisattva that when [...]

[...] ...he attains, when he shows in the world the deed of attaining full enlightenment at that time he would liberate all those sentient beings who has received a seed of dharma in the teaching of Buddha Shakyamuni, whoever they are and whatever level they are, even if they are, by those who have taken various vows about refuge, upasaka, or shamanara or bhikshu or any other vows that one has taken. Whoever has taken those vows and practiced as received a

seed of dharma in their mind in the teaching of Shakyamuni, then whatever they are, even if they have fallen into unfortunate realms by doing a mistake, it is the wish or prayer of Maitraya Buddha to liberate all those sentient beings when he appears in the world, so we are fortunate enough to be at least that we have still a big hope. So Je Rinpoche says that if one of course if one practices earnestly if one practice well and make good effort, of course one doesn't have to wait that long, one can attain full enlightenment before that, or attain certain stages without waiting so long. However if one really

couldn't make that much effort and sort of still remains wandering around in the samsara, still if one has received an imprint, a good imprint of dharma in one’s self, then that is still the last chance for us. So we still have something, one can still have full confidence in. The Maitraya Bodhisattva had taken many of such vows and generated many great; wishes like that for the benefit of sentient beings. For example, he also has taken the vow that even if a person who makes a statue of Buddha, like Shakyamuni Buddha, just about the size of ones thumb, so little one who makes such a statue in the teaching of

Shakyamuni, that person will be established to the liberation when I appear in the world. And so it is to make statues, to construct forms of Buddha is very beneficial, but also to make wrong use of them is again a very unwholesome karma such as using for commercial purpose. So this is just external instruction or teaching which is not to be visualized or practiced in the sadhana. So there are the 8 Bodhisattvas and from these different symbols, generated from these symbols, and after that Mahakrodhas from all those HUMs change into their respective implements, what they hold. The first implement

in their right hand whatever they are the stick, the vajra, sword, and again a vajra, and again a vajra, and again. For example into the four gates there is a stick, a vajra, and a lotus and a crossvajea. So now from Southeast at the four corners there is a sword then a vajra, then a blue stick with a vajra, and a black stick with a vajra. And for USHNESCHA CHAKRAVATI on top and the SUMBARANZA below there are two vajras. So those are the symbols. First the letters then the symbols from which the deities will be generated and if one can visualize them clearly that is very good. If not, one should just think

that. They are all there, although one can't see them precisely. So then these symbols then change completely into 32 deities. They become, they take the complete form of the deity. On the central seat there is Akshobya, peaceful form, dark blue body, embracing with Vajratouch and then starting from the East, Vairocana, Ratnasambhava, Amitaba, and Amoghasiddhi. And then Southeast and so on, the four semi-directions, there is Chenma, Amamake, Kirkarrna and Dolma. So outside of this inner, circle, outside where the pillars are there is still another circle and then again there are the four goddesses; goddess of form, sound, smell and taste, they are around, Southeast, Southwest and so on. On the side of the Eastern door there is a Maitraya and a Chittigarbha. On the two side of the Southern door there is a Vajrapani and Akashagaba. On the Western door Avalokitshvara and Manjushri. At the Northern gate, Northern door there are Samantrabadra and Sarvanivarana Becomdeni. Then into the four corridors there is Yamandati and then there, is Prajnadati, Hairagiva or Branjadati, and then Benidati.

Then in the four coroners there is Achala, Turkiranza, then Nilandanda and Amabala. Then on top is Ushneshachakravati facing to the central figure, and down below there is 47

Sumbaranza which is facing the same way as the central deity. And we should think that these deities are not somebody else, somebody

One should think they are still a part of one’s self, they are still one’s self in these forms, because they have been created by ourselves, they are the production of the union of bliss and void and they have generated from the very fluid of bliss. So therefore one should think they are all a part of our

self. So therefore in this stage of mandala king or the lord of mandala, the ritual of lord of mandala, which is a practice that to help sentient beings, work for the benefit of the sentient beings, so therefore if we think we are external remaining quietly just sort of taking rest, and all so many external deities from outside they come and do all this work, then it is not a real practice of ourselves. So therefore, one should think all these are created from

ourself for the benefit of the sentient beings. So one’s self is fully engaged in the act. So in the sadhana, if you read the sadhana, each time is says in the central seat is one’s self in the form of that, on the East one’s self and always one’s self, one’s self is always emphasized. That is to assure that one doesn't think that it is someone else. And after this then one should reflect on all sentient beings, and generate a very deep compassion of all sentient beings by seeing their sufferings. We should also generate a very sincere motivation to liberate all these sentient beings, to separate all these sentient beings from their sufferings and the cause of suffering, which is the karma and delusions and imprints.

So at this time we should, when we generate the compassion, not only for generating our wish, not only just wishing or praying for it, one should in addition, to wishing and praying for that, one should take the vow, like take a vow make a decision to take this responsibility of separating, freeing the

sentient beings from their suffering, upon one’s self. Then we take the central figure the Akshobya, through the secret; lotus of our vajra and come up through the central channel to the heart level. Then we call him Vajradrak and that is like calling him, calling his attention. So we call and say Vajradrak there is exhortation and as soon as we say that then it goes out, multiply in countless forms and go out in all directions. So then they go out

and reach all sentient beings and purify their obstacles in general, in particular the hatred aspect of all sentient beings, and so by manifesting in various forms giving teaching of dharma and performing miracles, even touching, sometimes touching and blessing with their hand on, touching their body and giving teachings or showing various miracles, and sending rays of light and amrita on them and so on, many many different ways they have purified the

sentient beings from their hatred Turning the wheel of dharma for the sentient, in particular purify their hatred and then all these figures they absorb into one, they become one Akshobya as they come back to the mandala. They so this Akshobya is integrated with all the Akshobyas in all the Buddha fields, and also this Akshobya has another Akshobya on its head as the lord of the family, and who is in union with a consort. This Akshobya received empowerment from the blissful union of its lord on the head and so a stream of light and amrita going into its body and receiving the empowerment. Then it comes straight through the mandala and comes in front of us. So now this one has not any separate place reserved for him because the place is where we are sitting as Akshobya and we are not, it is not going back into the lotus of the consort, so it just remains there in front of us.

So then after it absorbs into our chest, one’s self in in the blue Vajradhara form, so this is absorbed into our chest. By this integration with this Akshobya coming in then our aspect changes. He are first Vajradhara, although they are not one nature, but we are in aspect of Vajrahara and now changing ,

into Vajra, what is called the Vajrahatred, we change into the aspect of Vajrahatred. So now the Akshobya is sitting on a moon-disc and ones -correction-- so when we take this aspect of the Vajrahatred as we remember when before we first we are sitting on the moon disc, we remember there was this moon at the beginning, on top of the sun there was this moon and we were sitting on that as Vajradhara or Vajrasattva and now when we change into Vajrahatred this moon is absorbed into the sun disc which is under it, so then our seat is no more moon, it changes into sun and also the appearance is slightly changed from

very peaceful into slightly wrathful, Also before we are in sort of a blue color Vajradhara, now by absorption of this Akshobya it gets darker very dark blue form, and the same number of faces, 3 faces and 6 arms. The Vajra in the first hand is now changing into a vajra with 9 prongs and the rest are all the same. Sitting in a red aura of light and this aura is slightly agitated, not completely calm this light. So after that now again from the lotus of the consort we take in the Vajratouch, that is the consort of Akshobya which is left. Which has not gone out with the deity; it is still there. Now we take

that, the Vajratouch to our heart, and we say her name calling, Sparshavajra, and she goes out and fills the whole space and reaches all sentient beings, then she purifies the obstacles in general and in particular the attachments to the tactile sensations and also makes offerings of blissful touch to all the Buddhas, and it finally absorbs into one body and that is integrated with all the Vajratouch in all the Buddha fields and also it receives the empowerment from Akshobya on its head. Then she comes in the mandala and absorbs into the consort on our lap. So then after that we are taken the same way,

each of these deities one by one up first into the heart then send out and go to all sentient beings and perform, each one has a particular responsibility putting that and integrated with the respective deity in the Buddha field and they absorb into one, they are empowered from their own respective lords of the family and then they come back and settle on their respective seats in the mandala. The Vairocana comes to the heart and we call Zinnazig, Zinnazig -- and as soon as we say Zinnazig, then it goes out, and fulfills the duty for the sentient beings. So the particular duty is to purify the ignorance of all

sentient beings and also for doing various other things, come into one, integrated with all the Buddhas, Vairocanas, empowered by the lord of the family. So it settles down on the seat on the Eastern direction. So that is just in front of us. This way then all go out and do the work and settle down on their places. When all 32 deities are complete, then the mandala in the womb of the Mother is now empty. After that this mandala is also, the mansion is also taken in, up to the heart, and with the mantra OM AH HUM it goes out and multiplies in countless forms. So those deities has each one fulfilled the duty,

the general duty and particular duty to purify the particular obstacles of the sentient beings, that different delusions and different aggregates and so on. Now here the mandala, the mansion goes out and purifies all the impurities of the world and of the places, the impurities of the plains, the mountains and water and elements and all the world all the mountains and ocean and so on, everything. All the impurities are completely transformed, their ordinary appearance is completely purified, they all turn into real Buddha field holding the essence of the Wisdom. And all the disagreeable appearances of the places are completely purified, they are no more existent, such as all 48

the dirt, the pollution and also in the landscape the things which are dangerous, which are not agreeable which are rough, which has undesirable things growing and so on. All these kinds of aspect of lands is completely purified. So all these divine mansions that are created are absorbed into one, and it also integrated with all the divine mansions and Buddha fields of all directions. Now this one has no empowerment of the lord of Family, the mansion has not- So it is finally absorbed into the mansion in which we are living.

If you have a practice which is an essential received the teaching in Lam Rim or in Lo Jong then there is is called "Thong Len" that is "giving and taking". So this is an essential practice in the Lam Rim meditation where one takes all the suffering and all the undesirable qualities of the sentient beings in the form of like a pollution, like a smoke or sort of taken in or absorbed into us and then we send out the rays of light which are of the nature

of our happiness, our merit and all the good qualities, virtuous qualities to giving all sentient beings. This is an essential practice -in lam rim. So this visualization which is being done now is somewhat similar to that. Here also when we send out these deities and so on, each time we should do it out of generation of pure motivation out of compassion to all sentient beings, seeing all sentient beings endowed with these particular difficulties and obstacles and so on, so out of very compassion, great compassion then we send out these manifestations in order to free the sentient beings from their respective delusions and all the difficulties.

So if one can, at the beginning of each of these deities if one can generate the motivation for the particular kind of difficulty of the sentient beings, that is very good. If that is too complicated then at the beginning one should generate a very sincere motivation to purify all the sufferings and the cause of suffering of the sentient beings and out of that motivation then we send out all the deities. When the duty is fulfilled, when the work is done, at the end we should always rejoice very deeply for what could do, for what one has done. If one does this meditation with that kind of motivation it is one of the best methods to accumulate merit. So this completes what is called the 'Ritual of the Mandala King" or the "Lord of the Mandala".

Now we should start the ritual the rite of the king of the action. So now begins the recitation of mantra. We have to recite 32 deities, 32 mantras of 32 deities, so each time we should visualize that all these deities they have in their heart center the mantra circle, their respective mantras around the syllables, their own syllables. To be precise one should visualize the particular symbol like jewels or vajra and so on, in their heart center. If one can

visualize the different implements with the syllables in them and then surrounding with the mantra that is most precise, it also has a great significance.' If that is difficult one can visualize simply the syllables surrounded with their mantras in the heart of each of these deities. So in general there are six different japas or six different recitation ways of reciting the mantras and the way of the recitation mantra here is called samaya japa

recitation. And also that is called "chorypa deva" that means like the recitation of establishment and then "chongu deva" that is complete or comprised into one. So all these circles of mantra in these deities they are all very radiant. So each syllable of the mantras, letters of the mantra is very radiant like a bolt of light a flame like this, and inside there is the shape of the letter. So all these syllables, the letters of the mantra should be visualized

very radiant like a bolt of light. So when the mantra has not many syllables like OM AH VAJRA DEK HUM HUM, then such mantras are not long, so we should visualize each letter like a bolt of light standing like this. So all the circles of the mantra, they are standing on a moon disc or on sun disc according -to on the disc on which the deity is sitting. So if the letters of the mantra are many, then each of the letters are like a bolt of light individually and sometimes if the mantra is with many letters, then there is a ring of light on the disc and inside that ring of light like you see in the ball these wires

inside, in the flame, you see the wires like that, then there are the letters of the mantra in the ring of light. Then rays of light go out from these mantras and also at the end of the rays of light coming from these letters are many deities manifest. So when we exhale then all these deities go out from the syllables and go out in many forms and help the sentient beings and when we inhale then they come back in to the mantra. So first of all one must do so called vajra visitation. So the syllables are OM AH HUM, but this is not a verbal recitation. So the vajra recitation is neither a verbal recitation nor a

mental recitation. It is recitation of the respiration. So one keeps quite. Shut your mouth and then very calmly and quietly aspirate. The actual vajra recitation is something practiced in the state of completion. So as a preparation to that you should practice here a few vajra recitations. So without any movement of the mouth or the tongue or anything like that just then one should think that one's respiration the breath inhalation and exhalation and the holding of the breath has the sound of OM AH HUM. For example the very good bell made of very good material, when if it is hanging somewhere then the wind

blows very strongly on it and it gives kind-- so in a similar way without any real loud sound, a very clear loud sound then when we inhale then one should imagine this air, breath coming in has the natural sound of OM, so something which you can hear from inside. At this moment we are in the central figure of the, deity with a mantra circle inside with a HUM syllable in the center. We should at this moment think that we are inside that HUM, we are inside that central syllable. So as the breath comes in, then we are here in our chest in the HUM, the HUM is one’s self, so one should think that a draft is coming

from a window, from the ventilation or somewhere like that, the wind is coming from above because we are in the heart, so that is like blowing on your head, like that the breath is coming from the top. So it is like the draft or the breath is coming through the central channel and sort of glowing on us, oneself as a HUM, and then one hears from there is a sound OMMMM of that wind. We should not let it out immediately and must maintain keep that for a while. So during its -- settles, the breath settles inside, it settles with the natural sound of AHHHHH. And when it leaves when it does out then -- it goes out with the sound of HUMMMM, with the natural sound of HUMMMM, a long HUMMMMMMM. So OMMMM it comes in, with AHHH it rests, and with the HUMMMM it goes out. That is called vajra recitation. And there are some more positions if one can, then when the breath goes out HUMMMM then it goes out and helps sentient beings and makes offerings to the Buddhas, but however if it is too difficult, it is not indispensable. After one can do this about three times and then one should begin the verbal recitation of mantra. So this vajra recitation is a very powerful one. One can do it several times and after it, then when one begins the verbal recitation OM AH HUM HUM the first mantra. So not OM AH HUM HUM

- it is OM AH BENZADIK HUM HUM that is the mantra of the central figure and while this -- and if one recites this loud it is called the krodha recitation, the wrathful recitation when 49

one recites it loud. At this time then one should think of rays of light coming out from the syllables and bringing all the fulfilling the work of helping sentient beings and so on. If it is done in a group then everyone together can recite loudly OM AH BENZADIG HUM HUM or the chant leader begins out loud OM AH HUM HUM then everyone remains quiet and quietly recites OM AH HUM OM AH HUM. If one is doing a retreat or the practice individual alone, the sadhana or something, then one should recite quietly not making a lot of noise, quietly recite OM AH BENZADIG HUM, quietly. It should not be so loud that other people can hear. But if it is too quiet, too low that one can't hear what one is saying, then it is again a fault. And if one does it too slowly, like if one does it OM AH BENZA that, that's again a fault.

...too speedy, that's also fault And, if one recites correctly with the correct speed and so on, but with very little use, so reciting very powerful mantras with a mind which is fully engaged into business and to conversation with the people and visiting places and so on, then there is not very much power. Otherwise, if one does it, and fit in it, the recitation of mantra is a very powerful method. So if we cannot do very much visualization of rays of light going out from the syllables and going out reaching sentient beings and purifying, making offerings to the Buddhas. If this is too difficult, then one should concentrate one's mind and very deeply pray to one's guru which is inseparable from the deity, to the guru deity, concentrate on one's guru deity, and deeply pray to the guru deity for the blessing and empowerment with this state of mind, if one recites mantra that is also very effective. And after reciting this three times, then we move to the next mantra OM PRASHA VASACOMBUM, so that time we are concentrating in the mantra in the consort's heart. So OM PRASHA VASACOMBUM so next mantra is OM AZENERGY OMMO, that is in the chest of Variochana. Each time when we do this we are, one concentrates on the mantra circle in the chest of each deity. We are not thinking this is someone else, we are just looking into the hearts of somebody else, but one

thinks that one is that, that is still part of ourself. Because one's self is the chief, as well as one’s self is the entourage. So therefore, it is all inseparable. So therefore, we all the time we should follow this unity. And then OM AZENERGY, OM ARENIDEK, SO HUM ARENIDEK SO HUM then OM AROLIK AH HUM, OM AROLIK AH HUM, SO RANASAMBAWA and so on, all these 32 mantras one should recite a few times like that. And when we reach to the last mantra, that is OM ASUMARANZA HUM HUM, that is there are [throdat] down there, then all 32 mantras have been recited and then we should recite Vajrasatva mantra, the 100

union with the consort. Then by union with the consort then one experiences very great bliss, and in that bliss one's body dissolves into light. So by dissolving into light...the consort first dissolves into one's self then one's body also dissolves into light. So one's external body which is Samasatva dissolves into light and absorbs into the inner body, reaching Anasatva the red one, with one face and two arms and the chest. And that Anasatva red one is absorbed into the Ranasatva HUM, the vajra with the HUM in his heart. And it dissolves further and after a while a little HUM remains, only HUM remains, and the HUM starts to dissolve from the bottom, first the U sign, the subju into the body of the HA, the body of the HA into the head of the HA, the

headline of the HA, the headline of the HA into the crescent, the crescent into the dot, the dot into the little flame, the first curve, second curve, third curve and then completely dissolve into emptiness. Now the 30 deities are still there but the central figure has disappeared. So now there is a request of some verses and we should think that each verse is being sung by those four consorts, the Ginma, that one on the southeast, southwest, and so on the Ginma, Mamake, Kerkomo, and Dolma, these four consorts by having seen the chief, the central figure having disappeared, then they long to see the deity again, so they make the request. They sing this verse of request for reappearance. So explanation of this verse will take a very long time. So now after

these requests of the four consorts, then instantly on generate again on one's form as the deity, reappeared there and by this reappearance of the central deity, all the deities in the mandala are very pleased, they are all very pleased and overjoyed by the appearance of their Lord, then after the great joy then they make a few more praises then also make the offering, outer offering and inner offering, that's all. So at this moment, the praise is not done by those deities around by themselves, or one is reciting it, so there are five verses of the praise then four praising then one send out again many deities and goddesses out, praising goddesses out, and they from outside praise to the whole assembly they make these five verses of praise. After the praise then

offering comes. And then offering deities are generated from one's chest and they go out and they make offerings of the arghum to the whole assembly in the mandala. So after completing all the external offerings after the music and then inner offering is made. So although in the text it says that one's left thumb turns into the great ocean and one's left ring finger into Mt. Meru then taking, stirring the, Mt. Meru stirring the ocean and so on, but that is not to be visualized, it is just symbolic of that. Then we put our ring finger in the inner offering and take one drop and sprinkle it and say OM CHERDO. OM I offer. So this first sprinkle with OM CHERDO is something like t sting a food before it is served. It is something like that. It is actually a cook's job.

After that then we take the container, the bottle or whatever we have, take it in our two hands. So there are two ways of offering, offering with the bell in the left hand, holding the bell then sprinkling it with the sound of the bell, or without anything in the hand. As soon as we, when we sprinkle like that then we should think from one's chest immediately Vajrataste goddess that form with four arms, a lot of them go out and they offer to all the deities the offerings, the amritas, to all the deities. So the inner offerings are made first to all the gurus and so each time when these offering goddesses bring it to all the gurus, then these objects, they send out a tube of light from their tongue, from their vajratongue, and then taking from the skull the

essence of this amrita. So we should visualize at this time all the lineage gurus, they are gathered into like a big cloud inside the mandala this in front of us, a little above us, a little in front of the oshnishchakrabody. So the first offering is made to one's root guru which is in the form of Vajradana, so with the first line of prayer which says, "to the root guru who is the embodiment of all the Buddhas of the ten directions, and so on...at that time we are offering it, taking it up on the level of the crown of our head and sprinkle one time then at that time we offer our root guru who is in the center above all. Then hold it in the level of our forehead, offering it to Vajradara, that is Vajradara who first turned the wheel of Dharma of the Vajrayana tantra, and then who is a manifestation or different form of Buddha Shakamuni and so Vajradara and then to all the other lineage gurus, the Vajrapani and Indrabodi and so on, to the rest of the gurus. So the reason why one's root guru is placed in a highest of all, in the center of all, that is needless to say in the practice of tantra, even in the paramitrayana one's root guru should be respected as the highest of all as the most kindful and most precious of all. We should also remember that one's root guru is the very personification, the very 50

embodiment of all the Buddhas of the ten directions and three times. Also who is the source of all the 84,000 aspects of the teaching of dharma and who is the chief of all the great assembly of sangha, the aurea sangha. So is the one form of the triple gem. So to that precious root guru we offer with OM AH

HUM. So then we offer to the rest of the gurus and when we complete all of them then we offer to the deities. So all the deities, the meditational deities, the yidims, they are all included into 32 deities of the Guhyasamaja mandala and they are visualized in the front corner of the giant triangle in which our mandala is. In the front this is like that, there is one point is in front of us, and two in the back, so in front there is a space there and there in the space we visualize the 32 deities, so we offer one by one VAJRADEEK ASATRA.

Then after completing all these names of each of the 32 deities then there is a passage which said, "other than that all the yidims, all the deities of all four tantras, we make offerings". So at that moment we think that all the other forms of the deities of the four tantras Anatarayogacharya and Kyriatantra,

all the deities, such as Yamataka, Chakrasamvara, Avilokitishvara and so on, all the deities in a big assembly, and we make offering to them. And then after that visualizing all the dharma protectors on the lotus on which the mandala is, on the lotus, big lotus with 64 petals. On those petals then one visualize all the dharma protectors, those who are the protectors of the dharma, who have seen the face of the Buddhas and who have taken the vow, to protect the dharma to his, practitioner of the dharma to protect the sangha and so on. So all those dharma protectors are visualized there in a big assembly and we make offering to them.

Then outside the fire in the fence, outside there, we visualize all the worldly gods and devas and nagas and suras and so on, all types of spirits and gods, deities, gods of the mountains, the river, the earth and one's own place, and all kinds of spirits and gods and pretas and so on, and all kinds of spirits, as well as all sentient beings. They are all transformed into Guhyasamaja, they are all there in a big assembly and to them we sprinkle OM AH HUM and at that time they all receive this blessing, this offering that purifies them completely and gives them great experience of bliss.

So that is inner offering. Now there are still the secret offerings and so on and dissolving of the mandala which we will do this afternoon.

So after the recitation of the mantras then the deity disappears and the four consorts sing the request for the reappearance of the deity. The deity appears again, then praise and offering of outer and inner offerings are already made. So there are, the names of the gurus, one can find them in the text. There are a few Indian gurus and then some Tibetan gurus. In the Tibetan gurus, there are two who are called DOK something, DOK something, there are two with DOK like a family name and this DOK and this DA and NA in Tibetan looks very similar. So there are many people who say that it is WAK, but it is not really WAK. The reason why a lot of people tend to say WAK is because there are a few great Tibetan masters like WAKLASAR FEWSHERAP and so on a few great translators with the name WAK. That is why they think they are really like that, but W AK is a name of the country that is in the Central part, East part

of Tibet, Central-East Tibet and this DOK is in sung in the west and people don't know and so they often say WAK instead of DOK. So in the lineage of the gurus that there are two lineages of this tantra, starting from Vajradhara and there is one lineage of Vajradhara, Vajrapani, then Indrabodi. Indrabodi is a great tantric king at the time of Buddha. So the great conqueror Indrabodi had made a request, a very special request of Buddha to teach him a dharma

which isn't very hard and he is unable to renounce his kingship, his entourage, his queens and surroundings, so he asked Buddha to teach such a dharma where one can still attain enlightenment without renouncing, without taking the part of the detachment. So Indrabodi proved to be a very great fortunate being who is a real, the best kind of disciple of tantra, with the power of mind, with the fate and everything. So therefore Buddha, appearing in the form

of Vajradhara, then gave him the teaching of Guhyasamaja Tantra. So Buddha, in the form of Vajradhara, gave this teaching of Guhyasamaja Tantra to Indrabodi and other great many very extraordinary disciples of gods and human beings and so on, and this teaching has been the teaching collected, all the tantra, like most of the tantra is collected by Vajrapani, or some other, and this is collected by Vajrapani and compiled by Vajrapani and so first we

offer to Vajradhara, then to Vajrapani and Indrabodi and Nindrama, another yogini, and so on, that's one line. So the Indrabodi, the great Indrabodi, then he had a son who is also called the Jr. Indrabodi and they are all attained through the path of the tantra, the state of Vajradhara, the state of enlightenment in their very life and the Indrabodi finally, not only himself, but all the whole being in his kingdom all attained, being led to the field

of Akinishta and let alone the people, even the cows and dogs and so on in that kingdom all attained a state of Akinishta and the whole kingdom has become completely empty. In the one of the daughter, the daughter of king Indrabodi, had been afflicted with leprosy and she asked the help of Indrabodi, although Indrabodi was very powerful yogi, he could admittedly cure this very great problem, but there was a very great purpose so he sent her, gave a direction, and sent her towards the East. And she after became a Vachuni, she has taken ordination as a Vachuni and she after became a great siddhi herself, who was called Palmo, so Galmo Palmo, Vachuni Palmo. So she left her place and went very far towards the East and her personal deity was Avilokitishvara. She was always praying to Avilokitishvara and reciting always her mantra OM PADME HUM. One time she reached in the mountain and forest, she reached a big rock with

the figure of Avilokitishvara with a natural formation of Avilokitishvara on it. She went there and she prayed and prostrated and so on, and there were a few, there was like a little house, little temple nearby where a few monks were living. So she used to go there to do her prayers and prostrations and so on. The monk let her stay there during the day, and then in the night he always had to leave and go away somewhere, because it was a monastery. And then

she, after she didn't feel very well at this place, then she went somewhere else again. She saw a rock with a form of OM MANI PADME HUM on it. So then she day and night prayed to Avilokitishvara, just staying never leaving that place, and then from the 8th of the 4th lunar month, the 4th lunar month, that is the month of Buddha's enlightenment and that month from the 8th to the 15th the full moon, she continued in one session completely sitting there, meditating and praying to Avilokitishvara non-stop. And that full moon night, at midnight then 51

Avilokitishvara with a 1,000 head and arms the glorious form Avilokitishvara then appeared to her. When she opened her eyes from meditation she saw this most magnificent form of Avilokitishvara in front of her and then that gave her very great bliss and very great happiness and she attained enlightenment on that night. So she, her disease was all completely cured and she became more, very again very radiant and youthful and radiant and so on and outwardly she looked like a yogini, a great yogini who has had the vision of the Avilokitishvara and was an extraordinary yogini, from outside. But inwardly she has attained the state of enlightenment and attained the state of Vajrayogini. All the damage that had been made to her body, to the fingers and limbs and so on, everything fully restored and she became more youthful and more beautiful, even much more that how she used to be when she was still a princess at the palace. So when she went again, when she appeared in public the people saw this big change in her and they thought maybe she is no more a Vachune, she is no more doing any of her hard practices, her asceticism and maybe she has lost all her chelas. Then the Bikshus in those days used to carry what we call cursil. The cursil is kind of walking staff, piece of wood then with metal at the bottom and metal at the top with a little statue on top and a few rings which when shake would make some sound. Then she went out in the town and then in front of a great public she said "if my chela has broken, if I am no longer a bikshu, if my chela has broken, then may I die immediately, if my chela is still pure and faultless, may I continue to live." And, saying this,

calling the work of the truth, she cut her head with a knife and she put her head on that walking staff and stood holding it in her hand. She didn't, of course she didn't die, and the head again joined, connected to the body and performed lots of miracles. Everybody was very surprised and repented very much for disrespect and despising and so on. She has attained the state of the Vajrayogini, particular that aspect of Vajrayogini who is called "beheaded

Vajrayogini", that is a form of Vajrayogini which has her head in one of the hands. We can take the initiation of this too, and there is a whole complete practice of that particular Vajrayogini where one meditates on one's body without a head, with the head in the hand, and the three nadis coming up from the neck and from each nadi then different energies...

[...] ...faces on that deity, so she has attained this enlightenment through that way. So in general the meditation of praying to Avilokitishvara and recitation of mantra OM MANI PADME HUM is very beneficial and a very powerful practice which is good for every purpose and in particular for curing the disease of suffering of people, of sentient beings, like diseases like leprosy and so on. It has a very special effect and also to protect from interference and so

on, especially if one does it with a very pure motivation of love and compassion. So this Bikshuni Palmo and all of her disciples, all the lines of her disciples they all have achieved, actualized Avilokitishvara and they all helped mostly people, very suffering people like sick people and so on. So in the, one master who was one of the disciples of this Bikshuni, then one time he had a very bad infection on all over the body which was so painful, like so burning, like on the fire and then he completely escaped from everybody and went into the forest and it was so painful so that he dived into the lake, into a little lake, when he sat in the lake, the lake was boiling. So when this person was so much suffering from this special karmic fruit the Bikshuni Palmo came and then gave a blessing on his body and then taught the stage of generation of Avilokitishvara. So finally this master practiced very seriously and

finally also had the vision of Avilokitishvara and cured himself from all the problems and helped so many sentient beings. And like this so many great masters like that appeared in the line, in the line of disciples of Bikshuni Palmo and finally her teaching of Avilokitishvara reached Tibet. At that time in Tibet, all towns and villages and so on, and however by the special karmic link with Avilokitishvara, all the alm bowls, begging bowls of this Bikshuni

Palmo, and her walking staff, all these have been buried, been sealed under certain rocks and like that in Tibet, and which has been discovered by some great masters later, and now they can still be seen and worshipped and so on. So that's how the teaching or the practice of Avilokitishvara became the most predominant in all over Tibet all the time and also it is the first and predominant teaching all the time and there are also a lot of people who practice what is called Nune, the fasting ritual of Avilokitishvara, they are monks and even lay people, religious, it is a very common practice in Tibet.

So the great Indrabodi attained the state of holy enlightenment and then the Juni one has attained the same state and he gave the teaching of the tantra to all his subjects and everyone became a great practitioner of the tantra, and they were all very fortunate, all very extraordinary beings of extraordinary commerce and through the practice of tantra they all together attained the state of Akinishta and left this world including the animals and so on, so their land was gradually turned into a lake. Their place their country has turned into a big lake.

So then the next master in the line is KOLEWDO ANDREWMA is also a yogini who is born from nagas, it is a yogini, who has received these teachings rom Indrabodi. She has transmitted the teachings of Guhysamaja to VISUKAVA. VISUKAVA is a great Indian siddhi who has renounced and became a very great siddhi, a tantric master. Then it went on to many great masters, Nagarjuna and so on until now, so thus we offer the inner offerings and after that we...at the end, then we take a drop and place it on our tongue, this inner offering. One should think that one experiences very great bliss, this in the inner offering. Now the secret offering. So for that, again like before, the two organs of one's self as the deity and the consort must be consecrated in the same way like before, in the way of the vajra and lotus and so on. Light rays inside and all these things and then in union, experiencing very great bliss. Then this experience like before, experience of great bliss, stage by stage one experiences more and more bliss and that blissful state of mind is Shunyata

the union of bliss and void, that is the essence of the secret offering. Now the meditation, the actual meditation of the stage of generation is something one should do before the recitation of mantra. Thus before the recitation of mantra, after all the offerings and so on, before the recitation of mantra, one stops there and then quietly one meditates on the stage of generation. One first meditates on one's body as AKSHOBY A. For that, one should do all the

process of visual acts from the beginning of the sadhana, all those stages of visualization. That is like constructing, that is like actual construction of the visualization, of the meditation, of the stage of generation. When it is all done, all constructed, then we should concentrate and apply analytical and concentrated meditation on that. So before the recitation of mantra, you stop there, you stop the reciting sadhana and quietly then one practice, the actual meditation on 52

the stage of generation. So here one applies the analytical meditation. First one looks through one’s self in the form of AKSHOBYA very likely making a review of one's body very thoroughly from head to toe, everything. Then one expands further and one analyzes on the body of all the deities, Variocana and two consorts around, and then going further than those two consorts, then further, the true bodhisatvas and the carodas on that direction. Then on the

South direction, West, North, on all the doors, making a very thorough checkup or very thorough review of all these mandala inside. When you have finished inside, then go out and look outside how all the vajra ground and all those things are and then still going father and then the fire mandala, so one very slowly and quietly one has to analyze. This way, first we go out, after the light, completely outside of the fire mandala and so on, then when we complete outside, then we again start to look back at the fire fence, the vajra fence, the top and the bottom, the vajra ground, the lotus then this thing the cross vajra, with the letters going up and the street and the house and also on the roof and everything, then entering into the deities and so on, coming closer and closer up to one's own body. Also going upward the canopy and then the, like the roof, for inside of the roof then outside of the roof, the ornaments on the top, and also right up to the top of the mandala one should also look upward. Still there is on top, above the rooftop of the mansion, there is

still the vajra canopy, outside of that still the fire and everything, that one should look through. Then again slowly come down. Then go down again, downward, ones seat and then the stage with the deity symbol on the inside then still go down then going the center of the vajra, the cross vajra, and the center of the lotus, the vajra ground, then again the fire and so on, then going downward, and then back, back up to one’s own body AKSHOBYA. So it will not be very clear and precise at the beginning, but one should do this outgoing and this ingoing practice of analytical meditation and at first it is

blurred, not very clear, it doesn't matter. Then at the end one should hold the very strong pride of the deity. One is the AKSHOBYA. Hold that pride, hold the appearance and the pride of the deity and keep in that state for a while and meditate. Holding the pride of the deity for some time, then again to insure yourself, then again you look out and try see your own form, what form you are and what sort of entourage or surroundings you have and also what mansion you live and what kind of world in which you are. Again you look out. So therefore, one should practice the analytical meditation and the

concentration meditation, one after another, sort of in an intertwined way. First you expand and analyze everything, then after that you go back and collect your mind inwardly and just keep the concentration of yourself being the Vajradhara or the deity, and keeping that state of mind for a while without distraction. And again apply analytical meditation. Also one must apply the meditation or the concentration on shunyata. Although these mandalas and everything, one’s body, as well as other deities and their forms, and also the place and everything, although they are in multiform and multicolor and

appearance, however they are all void of inherent existence. All are created, imputed by one’s mind and so therefore, in nature they are completely void of inherent existence. With this understanding, then this keeps one’s mind in the void nature, the empty nature of every phenomenon and concentrate. Here when you meditate on shunyata, you simply meditate on the nature of all these appearances, but you are not destroying them. Not like before. Before, we must wipe out everything, and completely make everything empty. Then no more appearance, nothing. That has a special reason, to do that before. But here we are

not yet making them dissolve. They are there, the appearance are there, but you are now meditating. First you are looking at their forms and so on, and after you are sort of concentrating on their true nature of shunyata. So it is slightly different. One should apply the analytical meditation, analyzing all the appearance and so on, and then at the end holding the pride of the deity and also concentrating on the nature of the shunyata, the ultimate nature of all these appearances. If you have some understanding of the shunyata, and if you have already learned some certain reasons or way of analyzing

shunyata, you can apply those also in your meditation and meditate on shunyata. In this meditation of generation, state of generation, you must practice all of them. This first meditating on the appearance and try to see the clarity, or clear appearance of the whole divine, the place and the beings and so on, that is the opponent or antidote for the ordinary appearance. Then holding the divine pride that is the antidote for the ordinary clinging, ordinary grasping. At first when our mind is not fully acquainted with this, then the meditation on all these, the deities and mandala, aspects of the mandala is still very rough, is not in order. Some are big, some are small, some not very clear and so on. That doesn't matter. As one acquaints one’s mind with this, then it becomes more and more clear and one, when we get very clear then we can add the positions and try to do it really quietly, the right size, the right height, the right width and all this can be applied later. One should also sometimes meditate on one’s body in a very simple form. Just one deity with one face and two arms and then after increasing, adding two more faces and four more arms and making it three faces and six arms. The people who do

very very precisely, extremely precisely, was not worried about the time and so on, then it is also very commended in the text which has truly great meaning that one should first concentrate on a little spot of the deity like the forehead or something, one eye and try to make it really clear. When this becomes clear then one adds a little bit nose or something, then concentrate on the nose and when the nose becomes very clear. When we meditate on the nose and nose if one loses the first part then it still is not trained. One trains one’s mind until one can hold both. Than when that is accomplished, then adding some more, two more eyes, then the mouth and so on, gradually, very slowly and very precisely adding, that is one method. This is a very precise method and it takes very long time. There are people who practice first drawing the eye on a piece of paper, paint it very accurately, placing it on ones forehead, look into the mirror and see how one looks and then meditating. There are people who have done it. That is a very slow process. It takes many many years. So for us it is better if we do it in our way, although they are not very precise, sort of very vaguely, one starts with all these things from the beginning. Then the main thing is the concentration of the mind, and then gradually the clarity and precisions will grow. So it is important when we

practice that in a session of meditation, when one meditates on these things, sometimes it might become very clear, very clear and our meditation goes very smoothly and is really sort of very pleasant. So on such occasion one should not then, one should not go over time, if your usual session is going very well then let's try to make it really long. That is not wise. Even if it is going very well one should stop when one must stop. When it doesn't work and one cannot concentrate and cannot make it clear, if one still try to force yourself, that is also an interference on the meditation. One should never do it. If it doesn't work, then you should stop it. This way ones enthusiasm in the practice will remain very strong all the time, one will have no difficulty

to come back to the meditation. If one force one’s self too much and tries to meditate till one gets completely exhausted, then one loses gradually enthusiasm in the practice, after one will be totally disgusted with this kind of practice and will surely give it up. But one must make a good rule in one’s meditation and be strict in ones discipline of the mind, that is one has to meditate or: the deity with one face or something like that. Then it happens because our mind is so 53

agitated and so much confused. Sometimes instead of seeing one face then we see two faces, then if we let it go on with two faces and it is wrong, because this way our mind will get a bad habit of just fabricating anything. So therefore one should not let it go that way. Instead one should try to, although it doesn't work, one try to keep the right object. Like that one should be disciplined in the mind about meditating. Otherwise, then it will go wild. It seems that in Lam Rim, when you meditate on Lam Rim for example, you want to meditate on impermanence or something like that, and while meditating on impermanence sometimes suffering of lower realms or something else will come into your meditation, and you will think "Oh that is also very important, I will meditate on that". Then you are getting in a very bad habit to the mind. So if one is inclined to do that, then always it will go like that, always doing something else than what we really should be doing. When the mind gets that habit it is very difficult again to change. So practicing this meditation on the mandalas and this way for a long time, and when you gain the ability to see the mandala very clear, all the aspects of the mandala very clear, as soon as you visualize if there is appear there, then you are beginning to accomplish what is called the gross, gross stage of generation. This way training the mind when we can see the, all the gross forms of the mandala and they deities. For example the outer forms all very clear, although not very inner details, like little deities in their eyes and so on, but the external - their bodies and also all the parts of the mandala, when we can see them and can

hold this appearance without a distraction of the mind for 1/6 of a day, about 4 hours, then one has attained what is called the stability in this gross stage of generation. Still meditating and training one’s mind in that way, when one can visualize whole mandala and its contents in a little drop like inside a mustard seed. In a mustard seed one can visualize a whole mandala and its contents clearly, then one has accomplished the subtle stage of generation. When we can hold that clarity, that very subtle clarity of the mandala for 1/6 of a day or 4 hours, then one has attained the stability of the subtle stage of generation. To begin, to practice, to enter in the stage of completion this stability, the attainment of stability of the subtle generation is not necessary. When one attains this stability of the gross stage of generation one can already enter in the stage of completion and one can also accomplish the stage of completion. To practice these methods of tantra, in general, even if they are not very correct, even if they are not very precise and not very complete, however, try to practice them is always very effective and leaves very auspicious, very positive imprint in our mind which is very

good. But if one really wants to practice, very seriously, to accomplish all stages as described in the tantra then to accomplish the stage of completion one must first master the stage of generation, and to do that one really needs to develop Bodhichitta and right understanding of shunyata and refuge and these kind of things. Then practice them really very proper and also very precise. So in the stage of generation, when one practices the silent meditation for as much as one can, when one is tired of the meditation, then one begins to recite the mantra, recitation of the mantra. If one practices this kind of stage of generation, the meditation of stage of generation correctly, then one doesn't need to practice the usual so called tranquil abiding and vipashyana separately. When one makes progress in this, one has accomplished also the tranquil abiding and reprashana meditation. Because through the analysis of the deities, and the forms of the deities, as well as these mandalas and so on, through this one accomplishes the personalization, and through keeping the concentration of your mind which is necessary all through, and also holding the divine pride and so on, through this practice one accomplishes tranquil

abiding. So this is the method of accomplishing both in one practice. After the meditation one makes a recitation of the mantra as described before, then the request, praise, offering, outer offering and inner offering, then the secret offering through union with the consort and experience of bliss. When one experiences the bliss in one’s self one should think that all the deities in the mandala also experience that great bliss. That is the offering of the great bliss, the secret offering, and it is not just mere bliss of pleasure, but it is the bliss of mind completely absorbed into shunyata, into the emptiness, ultimate nature of every dharma and so that aspect is the offering of the thusness or the datadow offering. That means the offering of the shunyata. Thus all the offerings are complete. Then one already begins to, the mantra already begins to dissolve again. Like before we send rays of light from our body and bring all the deities in the mandala in your own body. Before what is called the special visualization where we also take all these deities in our body, at that time...

...people can fit into one body, in one person, and that is not this kind of problem. As they absorb they dissolve into different parts. They are not like ordinary people. If it is uncomfortable, one can make the deity as small as one likes and then absorb into one's body. So they absorb into our different parts and they dwell in their respective places in our body, like Variocana in the head, Amitaba in the neck, Akshobya is one's self, so that is different,

Ratnasambava in the navel, and the Amogasiddhi in the secret organ and then the consort helps in the different navel, the heart the neck and the head and so on, like before, all the deities are again in our own body in their respective places. Like we had for the creation of the body mandala we have now the parts of our body, like the front, the two sides and the back and then the four doors, then all the organs and sort of absorbed into those different parts of the mandala, like the walls and doors and pillows and so on. Exactly in the same way now backward, all this mandala its walls, four doors and its pillows and everything, then absorbing into those parts of ourselves. So now the deities are absorbed and also the mansion. Now one’s self and the consort

are still remaining and enter in union and from the junction of the two organs then rays of light go out in all directions. Not just light but also has the fluid of bliss in it like a fog, like a fog has the light but also has water, like that it goes out in all directions and purifies all the obstacles of the sentient beings. All the bodies of all sentient beings dissolve into light and become HUM. Since the sentient beings are complex, you should visualize a complex HUM filling the whole space and those HUM change into Vajradhara. After all sentient beings transform into Vajradhara, then they all are gone back and are absorbed into oneself. So when we recite this mantra OM YOGA SHUDA SWARA DARWA YOGA SHUDA HUM, then making this gesture, then all sentient beings

in the form of Vajradhara are absorbed into one’s self. So that completes this mandala meditation. This kind of meditation, meditating on a deity, that is very beneficial and then of course also in the practice of Lam Rim, all those stages of Lam Rim are very important in the practice of meditation. One should always apply the shamatha and vipashyana together, one after another, one cannot one should not leave one or the other. Then so if one practices the meditation without any sort, without any understanding, just simply sitting time. Not only a waste of time, but is very unwholesome because it can become very unfortunate. It makes the mind more stupid, more dull and stupid and becomes cause to take rebirth as animal. So instead of one practice the tantric meditation, like you are meditating on the form of the deity, one of several deities, if not with all big manner many deities, but one’s own 54

body, but one deity and meditating on it and apply the analytical and concentrative meditation on it after a very good motivation. Even if one cannot achieve or accomplish the state of generation, the subtle or gross and subtle, even if one cannot accomplish the path, but if one practice this, the clarity of the mind, concentration mind, will naturally increase and through practice of such a meditation one accomplishes the very powerful merit and

also is very powerful to purify the obstacles. So therefore it is much more powerful that just very ordinary shamatha or anything like that. The principal thing in the meditation, also in the tantric meditation is not to be just technique, visualization technique and visualizing the form, that is not the principal. The principal thing is the wholesome state of mind, developing a wholesome state of mind, Bodhichitta, and this love and compassion, Bodhichitta towards all sentient beings. That is the principal. On that basis, with this principal anyone visualize the deities and so on, then it is very very beneficial. So one should never lose the principal.

Then in different occasions when we have facing different problems with different solutions. Like for example, attachment. It varies - attachment giving lots of trouble, one should meditate on the impermanence and on the impurities of the body. On the impermanence and impurities of the object of attachment

and so on. If hatred is so much bothering, one should meditate, apply the practice of love and compassion, the loving aspect. If one is very strongly sort of attached or feel very miserly whatever attachment is towards, one's possessions and so on, one applies meditation on impermanence. Because when we leave from here, all this one's possessions, belongings, friends and relatives and everything is to be left behind. So this completes the stage of generation on the basis of the sadhana.

Now the stage of completion. The stage of completion is very vast and profound, even much more than the stage of generation, and there is a lot to speak and a lot to understand and it actually, to explain it very precisely it takes a very long time. However tomorrow Rinpoche will go to summarized description of the teaching of the stage of completion. For today Rinpoche would like to stop here.

Rinpoche has completed a brief explanation based on the long sadhana of the Guhyasamaja. If one practices these stages of meditation, beginning from the instant generation of the deities form, then stage by stage then try to visualize all those different aspects as clear as possible in the mind, not only just visualizing their forms, but also applying the understanding of Shunyata, the meditation of Shunyata each time in one's visualization. Then one's

practice of sadhana becomes a real practice of stage of generation. Before the recitation of mantra, then one should stop and do the silent meditation, make a very thorough analysis, analytical and concentrative meditation of the whole mandala. In Yamantaka sadhana, then before the recitation, there is what is called the remembrance of the significance of the mandala, or the meaning of the mandala as a part, but that is not here in Guhyasamaja. So one should do this silent meditation of the stage of generation after the mandala is all created, and the deities go out and perform the deeds of the Buddhas, and helping sentient beings, purify sentient beings and they all settle down on their place. And while they are still there, all there, complete and clear, that is the moment where one should do this meditation. The deities, wherever one visualized them inside, or outside of our body in the mandalas, one

should always meditate upon them, see them as part of ourself, not as something completely separate from us or unrelated to us, not somebody else, but they are all part of our own self. Normally we always see or apprehend all appearance as ordinary and that is how they appear to our senses, through our vision and so on, and also we cling, mentally we cling to these objects as ordinary objects and that is called the ordinary appearance and clinging. Also we grasp, we normally grasp them, grasp for all the phenomena as inherently existing. In the stage of generation even we have accomplished the subtle stage of generation, we cannot really sort of eradicate this kind of appearance and the clinging of ordinary appearance, this clinging. However through the practice of stage of generation one can purify very much this kind of clinging and appearance and also subdue. So in the meditation they are completely subdued and

when we make progress in the stage of generation we can purify this and we can subdue this kind of apprehension and clinging in the meditation. But when we are out of the meditation and then we can see them as usual. So after attaining a certain stability in this gross or subtle stage of generation, then we enter the stage of completion. The first stage of the stage of completion, the path of completion is called Luen, that is the solid chud body, or something like that. When we accomplish that then we develop Simwin or solution mind. After that then we should accomplish what is called impure illusory body of the third grade. When we have developed this impure illusory body, or imperfect illusory body of the third grade then we meditate on shunyata and through this then we accomplish the clear light of the meaning, the clear light of the meaning of the fourth grade. By this which is a direct opponent or antidote for

the cleashiona or the fourth grade then we have realized shunyata directly, a nonconceptual direct realization of shunyata. When through meditation on shunyata this imperfect illusory body completely dissolves and through the complete dissolving of that illusory body, going through the process of dissolution and it dissolving completely then one realizes the what is called the clear light of the meaning of the fourth grade and at that time we realize shunyata directly and that imperfect illusory body is completely ceased. The reason why, that illusory body, the first illusory body we attain, why it is called imperfect is because still, we are still at that moment, we are still not completely free from kleishaarva, the free from mental defilements. So that is why it is called imperfect illusory body. Then through meditation on shunyata when we realize, when we gain the direct non-conceptual, direct realization of shunyata, then by this then the defilements, mental defilements, kleshas is eradicated and as a result of that then we attain the path of seeing. That is the aurea state, the path of seeing. Though the state of completion is sometimes divided into six grades or sometimes into five. So if one divides it into six that is the solitude body, speech solitude mind, then illusory body, then clear light and the union, the yugananda, the sixth. If we divide it into five, then the speech and the mind are made into one. However, so we first attain the solitude body, then solitude mind. Solitude mind is also called the clear light of the example, the example clear light. So that means it is not real clear, not actual clear light, but like an example of clear light. The reason why it is not the real clear light, why it is called the example clear is because that clear light, that clear light stage there,

it is still not free. The mind is not free from the delusions, from defilements, still with the defilements. So therefore, that state of mind is also not perfect and that subtle energy which companions this clear light is also imperfect because it is still not free from all the 55

defilements. So therefore that subtle energy is the actual direct cause for the next illusory body, the imperfect illusory body. So since the cause is already not perfect, the fruit, the result, that illusory body, is also not perfect. So that is why it is called imperfect illusory body which needs to be purified and ceased. So Rinpoche says these stages in the path of completion it is very vast and profound, very difficult for even to gain a real correct

and precise understanding and it is complete understanding is very difficult, even for, Je Rinpoche said even for himself who is supposed to be a Geshe and has gone through long studies and so on, but took about a year to gain a real, a year of study to gain some understanding, correct understanding about the stage of completion. The stage of generation, although they may seem so very complex and very complicated sometimes, however they are not very difficult to understand and also not that difficult really to practice. It is a matter of effort, some effort and patience and effort for the realization for the meditation, otherwise they are not something really very difficult, something to visualize by your mind that houses the deities, the forms and figures and so on, which are not so difficult. But these, in the stage of completion, where everything is to do with the most all the subtle parts such as the subtle mind, the subtle drop, and subtle energy and so on. So therefore it is much more profound and much harder. However even to listen, to hear something about this is also a very good imprint. We have, as Je Rinpoche explained before in the stage of generation, when we die then our consciousness, our stream of consciousness takes, goes through the Bardo, then into the next rebirth and so on, so it is that which continues from one life to another, from life to life, from beginningless time. It is not the kind that grows, at this gross level of functioning mind, but it is the most subtle, most subtle, what is called the clear light consciousness. The most subtle consciousness that which manifests at the end, at the last moment of our life, it is that consciousness which is, it is the continuation of that consciousness which goes from one life to another. Together with the most subtle energy which is

inseparable with, sort of interdependent with, they are interdependent of each other, in support of each other. So these two, the union of these two, the subtle energy and the subtle consciousness which goes from one life to another, these two are the direct cause, the actual cause of Buddha's mind, the Dharmakaya, Buddha's mind and Sambogakaya the body, the energy produces the body of Sambogakaya and the subtle consciousness becomes changed into Buddha's omniscient mind. But to accomplish that state, they have to go through lots of process of purifications and process of transformations. It is like gold, they are like gold, no one can make gold like that, but gold has to come from the earth, the little particles in the earth are collected which is gold, they are collected and they are cleaned, refined and finally then it becomes a gold which can be used for various, for making ornaments and so on. But has

its very distinguished cause, or origin, but in order to make real good use of it, it has to go through lots of process of refining and so on. In the same way this subtle consciousness and subtle energy it is the very cause, the very distinguished cause for the mind and body. However it has to go through the process of purification. Until the mind completely has eradicated this ordinary appearance, clinging and grasping of inherent existence, or self existence, until then it is not free from kleshavarana, or the defilements. Therefore, they are called sache, that means defiled. Defiled body it is still defiled, that illusory body is also defiled body, and the mind is also still defiled. So such defiled mind and defiled body cannot become immediately the perfected body of the Buddha and mind. So it still has to be ceased and transformed. Through certain practice of meditations which are called subsequent dissolution

and the two states of samadhi and so on, applying those practices, then that illusory body then again goes through the process of dissolution. Finally then trough the clear light of the meaning of the fourth grade then one attains the direct realization of the shunyata, and the in two parts. The first part is called, non-interrupted part meditation, and the second is called the liberated part of the meditation. So when we attain that next stage, the liberated part, then we have gained direct full realization of shunyata and by this part then the dissolutions are ceased. So now this mind which is called the clear light of the meaning of the fourth grade because it has now eradicated the dissolutions it is called samiki-sam, that means non-defiled or transcendental, or non-defiled state of mind. That is the moment where one attains the path of seeing in the tantric path. There are generally five stages in the path. The

path of accumulation, the path of preparation, path of seeing, meditation and also that is the stage where one attains the path of seeing. In other words one becomes an aurea in the tantric path. At the end of this meditation, at the beginning of the meditation one attains the path of seeing, at the end of the meditation one already becomes an arhat. So then before we awake from this meditation of shunyata, already one attains the union, yugananda. In general this work, this term yugananda is applied to 21 different things. Sometimes this is an implication of non-duality. Sometimes it is like a oneness of two different things, like one nature of two different aspects. Sometimes it is called just two different things just being together all the time or sometimes applied to two different things interdependent. So even for two truths are also called sometimes the union and so on. So there are many many different

meanings of the yugananda. But now here the yugananda, which one attains for the grade of the clear light of the meaning that is called Lopezou that means yugananda of the trainings. That means that one still hasn't completely finished the training. So therefore this is still not completely perfect. One has attained what is called the union of cessation, of abandonment, but not the union of fulfillment of all the qualities. These now, all these terms and so on they may be more confusing, all this new terms and so on. However, we should learn more precisely about this and Je Rinpoche is just now planting seed, that all he is doing.

When we meditate on shunyata and when first one attains the non-interrupted path, then what is called the fully liberated path, and that is the actual state of mind which completely eradicates all the delusions. So the delusions are ceased so one has attained the cessation there, the cessation of the

delusions like the arhats. This cessation is together, is together with that clear light state. That clear light of the meaning. That clear light state of the mind, so they are now sort of integrate. Therefore it is called yuganadha, or the union. This is the union of the cessations. It is also called union of the cessation, because here the delusions are ceased. This is also called the yuganadha of the training. This means it has to be perfect. So it is not the real complete union, because the complete union, the perfect union is a union of body and mind. Here the body and mind are not completely, they are still, there is a duality of the body and mind. When that subtle, clear light state of mind, that clear light state of mind when it is in that meditation, that absorption into the shunyata, that is still, the illusory body has not, the pure illusory body has not created. So this clear light state from meditating on shunyata and ceasing all the delusions, and finally the subtle energy which is the support of this clear light consciousness which has naturally the 5 color rays of light, that subtle energy then has...



[...] ...not the final union. So when we are on that grade, on that fourth grade, when that clear light consciousness, that absorption of shunyata, then that illusory body is not produced and is not functioning. When that person awakes from this absorption, from this meditation, then the subtle energy produces

this illusory body, then again that clear light consciousness is again no more continuing. So they are successive, when the body is there that subtle consciousness has disappeared, or when the subtle consciousness is there the illusory body is not there, so there are still successive. So they are not in union, they are still not united. So they need to be still perfected. The illusory, then that illusory body engages in various activities accumulating merit and in many different ways accumulating great merit. Also this illusory body, the person in that illusory body meditates, still continues to meditate on shunyata. When that illusory, within that illusory body, that illusory body sort of develops that dear light, again going through the process of dissolution and so on and once again awake the clear light state of consciousness. Then it is these two, the body and the state of mind is called the actual yugananda, actual yugananda of the training which is now the direct cause to obtain the final yugananda of the Buddha. Between that period and when one attains the union of the training, until one attains the Buddhahood or the actual final yugananda or non-training yugananda, in between the two the practitioner has to engage in various activities which is called chirpa (Tib. spyod pa) or the various, that means like practices, various practices, various extraordinary practices. It can be done in very elaborate form or in very simple form which must be done. These various practices, the tantric practices engaged in such as, some of these practices are very odd practices or extraordinary, abnormal practices, and also it includes practices in connection with the consort practices, in connection with even sometimes hunting and many other things like that, including lots of advanced practices, advanced practitioner who has attained all the full confidence and full abilities of that stage, which is performed for about 18 months, and like this one engages in various practices like that which all help very much to give more power and strength in his meditation, in his visualization, in his meditation on shunyata, also an accumulation of merit and so on. By this then that person, that practitioner, still meditates on shunyata, continues the meditation,

continues to meditate on shunyata. Then again meditates on shunyata, then his realization of shunyata is still perfecting and increasing and finally he attains what is called the vajra-like samadhi, vajra-like meditation of shunyata and by this then even the most subtle obstacle of jnana- avarana, the imprint of the delusion is also completely eradicated. So until they are eradicated the meditation is called non-interrupted path and when all the imprints, subtle imprints of the delusions are completely eradicated, when they are completely ceased, then one attains what is called the completely liberated path. Simultaneously one has become a Buddha, one becomes a Buddha or attains the actual yugananda. So that is the stages in the stage of

completion. Now the way to proceed on this path of stages, one should first, mind must be fully cultivated through the practice of the common path, by developing the Bodhichitta. On very good foundation of the common path, sort of well developed in one's mind, then one should receive initiation, empowerment all four complete empowerments correctly. Not only just taking the four empowerments, but keeping also the samayas, the vows, the vows of the Boddhisatvas and that of the tantra. One should also have a good understanding, a correct and proper understanding of how to practice the actual path, the path of the method, the actual meditation of the tantra whatever it is.


For example, Gurusamaja, one should have first good knowledge, understanding of how to practice it. Then one practices the meditation, intensively one practices the meditation of the stage of generation, with the deities and mandalas and so on, until they become really so clear and vivid, visible and tangible, until we attain a sign, that they are almost tangible and visible. Then one should still perfect one's practice of meditation and to enter into stage of completion, even if one cannot accomplish the stability, in the subtle stage of generation at least one must attain stability in the gross level of generation. If one accomplishes the subtle stage of generation, then there are many other sort of siddhis one can accomplish through this such as the

eight great siddhis, or eight great common siddhis. If one accomplishes the gross stage of generation, although one cannot attain the eight great siddhis and so on, however one obtains the full power, the right and power to engage in all the activities in the tantra, peaceful prosperity, powerful and wrathful activities of the tantra. Even if like ourself who still has great difficulty to accomplish in the gross level of stage of generation, if we can make a complete retreat, a long retreat of the deity then one still obtains many right or powers to engage in, to perform peaceful and other activities. If one, when one practices retreat, not only does one practice recitation of mantra, but reciting the mantras but also try to meditate or visualize all this as much as one can. So this way if one can do the retreat very good if the complete or long retreat if it is very, if we don't have the possibility, then

what is called laroon, like laroon is something like permission, that is a short retreat, to complete some of the mantras or like that. If one can do that, one still has the possibility to accomplish certain minor powers and minor, one gains the right or the power to engage in minor activities. One can then perform certain activities, activities what is called pacifying or subduing, activities such as to subdue disease to clear away disease, to clear away interferences and also even influence all forces to exercise negative forces and to also to pacify disease and things like this. In certain minor

activities, pacifying activities one can do it, when one has done properly the retreat. So that is what is called the peaceful activity or pacifying activity. Then one also can perform the prosperous activity or increasing activity, that is to increase and life, there are certain activities which we can perform for longevity, to increase our life, also to increase the wealth and prosperity. Also to increase all the virtuous activities, also to increase one's surroundings, one's surroundings and entourage and so on. There are many activities like that for increase. Also there are activities of the power,

it's called power activities, that is power, mostly dominating power, to dominate means, to dominate people, to also to conquer, to dominate, certain powers to dominate, also wealth. Like these, there are many activities for conquering or for attracting, or attracting or conquering activities. Those can also be performed. Then there are lawful activities, that is to destroy or subdue and to destroy all the unwholesome interferences, the negative interferences for the dharma, for the sentient beings to destroy them completely. Of course to engage in those activities one cannot simply just do

anything what comes into one's mind. One must do them correctly, according to the actual right, according to the way. Each has a way to do, way to perform. There are certain rituals, certain mantras and so on, which must be done correctly, with the correct motivation, with the correct manner, but not just anything what comes into one's mind. If one makes a complete retreat, a long retreat, then also recite a great amount of mantras as prescribed, then also try to meditate, practice stage of generation, meditate on the stage of generation as much as one can, as clear as one can, 57

although one cannot accomplish it completely, but still to develop the clarity and the concentration in the meditation, then one can accomplish those activities without much effort. There are a lot of activities and different siddhis one can obtain, one can accomplish through the stage of generation. All cannot be explained, this is just only an introduction. Now if someone is entering the path of the completion on the basis of the stage of generation, then

one should meditate on what is called the colorful drop. So one should first, all the deities in the stage of generation, all the deities of the mandala are all absorbed like yesterday, they are all absorbed into us, the mandala and everything absorbs into us, then one also becomes empty, then one remains in a simple form, either in very simple one face two arms or with three faces six arms, in a simple form of the deity one remains. Now in order to practice the meditations for the stage of completion it is very important for us to know the actual nature of our body and the nature of our mind and then the nature of both. Also for that we need to know the gross, subtle and the subtlest nature of our body. The same thing for the mind, the gross, subtle and subtlest mind. The same thing for the third, that is what is the common nature of body / mind. There are also gross, subtle and subtlest. Just to explain

symbolically or explain very very briefly, the gross body means our real body with all these material, this physical body which consists of all the bones and flesh and skin and so on. Then the subtle body that is all the nervous system, all the nadi system inside the body and their contents, such as the energy and the fluid. The very subtle levels of the energy which manifests at the time of death like when we, when our gross breath stops, after the end of

the gross respiration, then still the mind continues through the whitish, the reddish, the darkish and the clear light, these four stage of experience. During that there is an energy which supports that mind which also gets subtler, subtler to the most subtle. Those stages of the energy is called the subtlest body. This is a specialty for the stage of completion of the Guhyasamaja one must know first about all the basic, the nature of the basic phenomena such as the world and so on in which we live. Then about one's own body, then how it exists, then our inner body, subtle body, then subtlest body, that is what is very important for the stage of completion in the Guhyasamaja tantra. In Chakrasamvara tantra it is taught in a different way, one must learn what is called navasta, that is means abiding the nadis, and the moving energy, and then the fluids. That is the nadis, the energy and the fluid, one must learn those basis. In order to activate those nadis and the contents of the energy and the fluid and so on, then one must practice all the various exercises, or practices in connection with the energy. For example first for the, what is called the nine- fold respiratory practice, for that

practice there are six exercises. So there are various exercises in order to make the body and the nadies and so on supple, so that afterwards all the practices of these energy and relation to these energies and everything will go smoothly. So these are preparatory practices, exercises. If one elaborated there are 20 exercises and in a very shortened form there are six major exercises such as filling the valley with air, like a vase, like a pot exercise. Then there is also the exercise, arrow like exercise where one stretches one's arms and then slowly one arm is taken under the armpit and then pressed like

this and then again pushed forth and so on. There is one exercise like arrow-like exercises, then there are also exercises where one turns one's body around. So to turn one's body around, then also there are exercises what is called dog vomiting exercise where one pretends like a dog which is throwing-up and then sort of pushing all the air and everything downward. There are six exercises like that. They are mainly taught in the Chakrasamvara or in Hejava tantra, they are explained in great detail. Since they are useful, helpful for all the practices they should be also in this practice.

In order to understand the nature of our body we must also know about nadis and the chakras. First we should know what is called the eight original nadis of the heart. It is called the original eight nadis of the heart because in the womb of the mother where the nadis first start from our heart level, from there starts all the nadis. Then the nadis go, there are three principal nadis, there is Oma, Roma, Tama and they go downward and upward. Also they develop

into those different chakras and different places. Now for the highest chakra is in the crown of the head which has 32 branches. That is like the 2 nadis making a knot around the center nadi, then there are 32 branches of nadi in the head. Then in the heart chakra there are 8 branches and first it is split into 4 branches. So there are 4 branches plus the actual central, and then the right and left, there are 7. Then on the side there is another nadi which is called Dultama that means free of impurity. That is another nadi from the side of those nadis, those 3 nadis, so that is 8 nadis. This Dultama nadi usually there is no energy going in it there is no fluid going in it. Only at the time of the death the energy goes in it, just once, otherwise in the whole life nothing runs in it. Not only itself contains no energy or nothing, it also causes the other nadis, it also blocks the other nadis for energy to go through. So the nadis are very very complex, so we need to know them precisely. The nadis have many branches, branches and so on and they come up through 72,000 nadis in our body, our body has now. Although all these, the basis of all these nadis are within our body, these are the nerves of our body, but when we meditate on them we visualize them slightly different from how they really are. There is a special purpose in the meditation, therefore they are visualized in a different way, all the chakras and so on which has a very important significance. There are 4 principal branches of the heart chakra, first there are only 4 then after they split into 2, so makes 8 branches in the heart chakra. It is called the Hamachakra Center. From the 8 of these sub branches, then each one split into 3 so there are 24 sub branches. Now Rinpoche said that actually these nadis are a very complex thing which needs to be studied very

precisely for many days. So it cannot be explained in great detail. However in the next chakra, in the Sambogakaya chakra, in the neck has 16 branches. First 4 then split in 2 then 8, then again 2, split into 16. In the head first again 4, then splitting in 2 is 8, then each of these 8 branches further splitting into 4, so it is 32 branches in the head. So the head chakra is called the chakra of great bliss. Now in the navel which is called the chakra of the Nirmanakaya or the manifestation which has 4 first divided by 2 is 8, further divided by 2 then 16 branches, each of the 16 divided by 4 is 64. Now in

the secret organ which is called chakra of the bliss-holding, that is again first 4 then 8 then 16. It is very important for us to know the exact locations and how they are actually existing because we must in the meditation, we must visualize when we actually penetrate all these different centers we must do it on the right spot. If we miss this spot and do it in the wrong place, then how much we make effort no result will occur.

Now about concerning the energies, there are 5 root energies and 5 branch secondary energies, so 10 energies. Each one has their own color. They have different centers in the body.


Also they have different elements, like there is the energy of the earth, energy of the fire, energy of the water, energy of the wind and energy of the space. They also have different purposes, different functions in the body. We need to know them. Then further there are still about 50 different kind of energies which are taught in some other tantras. We need to know how those subdivisions of the energies which are taught in some other tantras, how they

are actually included into those major ones. There are the 5 major root energies such as the life-holding energy, downward-upward running energy, raising energy, running energy, equalizing energy and all pervading energies. Then there are secondary ones which are the running energy, the very running, the completely running, and so on there are quite a lot, 10 energies. Each one of those energies have different function in the body. Some runs in the eyes which helps us to see, some in the ears which helps us to hear, some to smell and some to feel, the sensations in the body and so on. So they have different places and different functions for us.

Now about the drops. The most primary drop which is called Sosen life, ceasing of life, holding the drop, it is also called...[...]...these are the first original like two, like cells of the parents, essence of the cells of the parents which remains from that moment to the end of life, together in the heart chakra in the central channel which is, the union of two drops which remains there until the end of our life and which supports the subtle energy and

subtle consciousness, the subtle energy, life-holding energy and subtle consciousness. That is the place for them. So these two drops are called the life-holding drops. This is about the size of a lentil, this drop about the size of a lentil. Rinpoche says that there are many different shapes and sizes of peas and lentils, so it is too general to say lentil, but not as big as a real pea. In the tantras they always say the size of a chana, so chana is sort of a small pea. So it is smaller than a green pea and it is larger than a mustard seed, so in between the two. So we visualize this drop, the upper part white

and the lower part red symbolizing the two cells of the pattern of the father cell and the mother cell, and these two are joined together and that is called the life-holding drop. So this drop is the original, the primordial drop, indestructible one it is called and from that, from the white part a second one is produced which goes up, as our body develops, it goes up through the central channel and it remains in the head center. This further multiplies in the head chakra and then produces the fluid in the body such as the seminal fluid. Then from the red part of the drop, then it produces the

second drop which goes downward through the central channel and abides in the navel chakra. This has the, it has the function to produce. The red aspect, the red fluid in the body such as blood and also it has the function to product heat in the body. Actually there are drops everywhere in all the different chakras, but those are some of the principal ones. Now the different centers are actually they are actually, at each center there are knots of the nadis. These two Dima and Tama these are completely tied at the central one, make a knot here. The most difficult knot which is most difficult to be loosened is

in the heart center where these two nadis each make three knots, so there are six knots and in the neck and in the other chakras each one makes one knot so there are two knots, two in the neck and two in the head, two in the navel and two in the sexual organs, so there are these knots. Because knots tie the inner the central channel, that causes the central channel, these branches to come out and develop from the central channel, because it is depressed and the energy cannot run through. So these two side nadis have completely made these knots, very tight knots around the central one, so no energy can run through. These two have made this central channel sort of without any function. In the roma which is on the right side of our body, right side of our body,

right side of the central channel, that nadi runs the red fluid, the blood fluid. In the left which is called kyangma, in that runs the white fluid. So those are the principal nadis which we use in our meditational tantra, but otherwise our body is filled with nadis. Everything comes from the nadis, even the hair grow out of the nadis, even the teeth also grow out of the nadis, so everything is connected with nadis. Saliva in the mouth also is connected with nadis. Everything in our body is in some way related or connected with a nadi. But those are not necessary, unnecessary, they are not useful to penetrate or meditate, to activate. At the moment the energy, the current, since it cannot enter into the central channel, then it always runs through

those two nadis and this gives rise to all the conceptions that we have in our mind now. Since this activity of the nadi, and the energy and the drops, is very complex and a very vast field in itself so everything cannot be explained now. That is a very brief introduction and to explain in detail one has to go through also great contraries and so on, so one will have a real complete understanding, a correct understanding of it. At the moment anyway there is no real great need because we are not going to immediately practice something very advanced. Even if we practice it is difficult to accomplish a result immediately, so this much will be enough. In all the tantras, Guhyasamaja, Yamantaka and so on, there is the, one should practice first the stage of generation as a preparation of the stage of completion and the practice of the essential thing in the stage of completion is to channelize the energy into the central nadi. So to channelize the energy in the right way one must first train one's mind to get control of the mind, because mind and energy they are inseparable. They are always run through, where mind penetrates they are also, the energy also automatically, since they are so interdependent, it also penetrates in that place, that location. So therefore mind needs to be channelized. Mind is the most important factor in us which has the characteristic of knowing, or cognizing, cognizing various objects, whatever it comes in contact it immediately perceives or cognizes that object and it exists with a very

clear nature. But the mind has the characteristic of knowing various objects, but it cannot run. It is like a person with very clear eyes but who is crippled. This is just an analogy. One should not think that the mind also is sort of somebody like a crippled person, not something like that. It is just a symbol, just a symbol, like eyes can see, lot of things like that. Mind also can perceive lots of objects, however it is unable to run like a crippled person. Energy is like a person with legs, very strong legs, and it can run here and there without any difficulty, but it has no, it cannot know anything. It runs all the time, but it is unable to know anything because it is not a consciousness, or it is not a perception. It is like a blind person with legs.

If that person with legs carries the crippled on his back, then they can together can achieve their, their wish can be fulfilled. One will look and the other one will walk. In the same way the mind and the energy are interdependent. Therefore the energy is called the mount of the mind or the consciousness. Because wherever consciousness our mind runs, it always runs with the support of the energy. So they are inseparable and totally interdependent. Therefore, in order to channelize the energy into the right channel, then we should concentrate, our minds should concentrate on various spots and different spots in the nadis, in the centers. That is why we need to know very precisely and correctly the actual locations of the centers and so on in order to penetrate very correctly, exactly on the spot. So when we concentrate, our minds penetrated on the right in the right spot in these centers, then as our concentration, mental 59

concentration develops the energy also penetrates automatically to that point and by this gradually then the energy will start to enter into the central channel and with that constant running in the central channel then gradually all these knots around it will loosen and become more and more open. If we

miss the point, the place, then even if how much we try it cannot help the energy go into the central channel. It is like, for example there are certain slaughterers, like slaughterers who are very trained and very used to his work, then can find certain very important nerves or something. Just by pointing to that particular, even if the animal is very large, very big just cutting that particular nerve or that maybe needling or something like that, it can immediately kill that animal, although it is very big. A person who doesn't know about this spot in the animal, then cuts it or whatever way they do it, then it takes a long time for the animal to die. In the same way, like that, we should find the right spot in our body and concentrate there in order for

the energy to run into the central channel. So the actual knots which must be loosened, that is in the heart, the most difficult and most important, to loosen that is in the heart center, but if one begins, starts in that very spot it can be dangerous. Because if by penetrating here if the energy enters here in that spot it can agitate that original energy, what is called the life-holding energy there, then a person can become completely crazy. Although our final aim is here, but by being skillful and wise approaching, then one first begins either from the top, from upward, from above or from below, penetrating first on other centers rather than immediately to this heart one. Through penetrating on those four other places and developing the

concentration, then the energy starts to enter into the central channel. First it enters and then it abides. Abides means it just rests there, quietly rests there. And after it absorbs, when it absorbs then again, the similar process of dissolution, the experience of dissolution occurs. When the energy actually enters in the channel then there are various signs or experiences that one can, which occurs in our mind, in us like a sign of entering, sign of abiding and sign of absorbing. Je Rinpoche says that now anyway we wouldn't be able to finish so it is better to stop here. Like there was, giving an example there was a person, like very great comedian in Tibet, we had Obutempa, so he when he was doing some work, like he was doing something in the

morning, it will not finished anyway, so let's just relax. So he relaxed, then in the evening then again, it will not finish so there is no use to rush so let us relax, so that's what we should do now. Obutempa was a person who was always like deceiving people and very mischievous, very mischievous, always telling lies and very mischievous and always telling lies and deceiving people and so on. He is a manifestation of Avalokiteshvara, he was a manifestation of Avalokiteshvara to teach some intelligence to the stupid Tibetan people. When one begins to practice the stage of completion, first one should meditate on the what is called the multicolored point, or bindu. And for that instant of visualizing deities in many forms, one keeps one's own body as the deity,

then as the deity, then one first practices guru yoga as a preparation. For the practice of guru yoga one should visualize one's root guru in the form of Vajradhara in front of us, above in the space on lion throne. Then we invite Yanasatvas or deities from fields of the Buddha, from abode of the Buddha. These invited Buddhas absorbed into the guru, thus it becomes the embodiment of all the Buddhas, then we make prostrations and all the seven pujas. We offer mandala to the guru then request for the blessing of the guru in general and in particular we ask his blessing to clear away all interference for one's practice of the stage of completion and interference of the nadis and one's nadis and energies and all such interference of the practice of

completion. After all the prayers the guru absorbs into, through the crown of our head in ourself. The guru, at the end the guru absorbs into us and integrates completely with our mind and after that we should practice the nine-fold exercise of the breathing as a purification of the nadis. So first we inhale through the left nostril, 3 times inhale through the left nostril and exhale from the right, and 3 times inhale from the right and exhale from the left and then 3 times inhale from both nostrils and exhale from both nostrils. That is 9-fold exercise of purification of the nadis, combined with visualization of the nadis. So that is the nadis, all 3 nadis have been completely cleared, completely purified. After that in order to channelize the

energy into the central nadi we should concentrate at the lower end of the central nadi. We concentrate there at that place on a very minor little point, like a drop, which is about the size of a mustard seed or a little syllable or implement of the deity of that size. One can practice this kind of meditation early in the morning, but especially a convenient time is onachildra, in the evening. We are in the form of the deity embracing, in union with the consort, the place of this visualization is at the junction of the two organs. Now we should visualize this point at the meeting of the two nadis. The nadis of the deity and the consort lower two ends of the nadi, they meet in the lotus of the consort, and at the very end at the junction of the two nadis

in that space inside then one should visualize this little point with...to be precise then visualizing inside a little moon disc with the implement or without the implement, with the syllable or without the syllable, this depends on what kind of tantra or meditation you are practicing. It is slightly different from one tantra to another. One should practice this kind of single pointed concentration for a long time. Then after some time then the energy starts to enter from the lower end of the nadi. The first sign of the entering of the energy in the nadi is that one's respiration from the two nostrils when one is meditating, one's respiration from the two nostrils they become completely equal, balanced, with same strength, same force. Usually the average

respiration in a day of a normal person is 21,600 breaths or respiration in a day. Usually these different energies go out and in, such as the five principal energies. They are also called the five lower (or lord) energies then four consort energies, that many different energies like this, they go out at different times. So depending on these different types of energies then sometimes it is stronger in the right, sometimes stronger in the left, sometimes it is sort of equal from both nostrils. So if one checks very precisely there is always some difference. There is usually when we are not aware of our respiration and we are not making any use of these, so therefore we don't notice anything and we are not aware of all these differences. But actually there

are very precise differences, even when the breath comes out one nostril sometimes it comes from one corner, sometimes from the right corner, sometimes from the left corner, sometimes from the front coroner. There it comes in a different way and so there are such things, what is reporting there are like 12 great ways of respiration. This respiration from the nose is called nobukipa, respiration from the nostrils. So the respiration from the nose is tangible, from one to another, always like that and also the respiration, the energy going into the different channels inside and the different branches of nadis are also varied to sometimes on branch and sometimes another branch and it is never equal. When one actually begins the practice of...ices with the energy,

then one comes to realize all these differences. Now we have no, at the present we have no control of our respiration. However still if we check, if we check very precisely, analyze the respiration, one will gradually be able to notice the difference. For example, this respiration is also related, corresponds also to the lunar cycle of the moon. Beginning from the first day of the lunar month for 3 days the breath or the respiration is stronger in the right nostril, and from there it changes, it begins changes to the left. Then there are such things, back and forth it changes which occurs in certain periods. 60

When this kind of changes doesn't take place in the right time, there is something going wrong in us and when we know these kind of differences very well we will even be able to foresee our own death for example. Just the exercise with the respirations, with all these different exercises, with the respiration itself is not a very great practice. It is also not a very difficult and is not some, to hold the breath and so on is not one of the most

important practices. Therefore usually the lamas in Tibet will not sort of go into that kind of, are not carried away by this kind of respiratory exercises before the stage of generation. It is left in the stage of completion, and one practices first the stage of generation, because without this stage of generation, even if one just begins some exercises and masters these exercises it will, to hold the breath for a long time and so on, but there is not great purpose, there is no great use of it. Just exercises, just exercise, but there is no great use of it. That is why that lamas do not recommend to practice these kind of things before anything else, because when we have, if we have life preparation and practice the stage of generation and then apply these exercises then it can be used for a very important purpose. Otherwise just holding the breath in the abdomen is not a very big thing. It is just like a bellow. Also when in the stage of completion, when one begin these exercises with the lung or respirations, then it is very important to do it very

correctly, very exactly, also with the right position, like sitting in the Vairochana position first to receive the initiation and all the blessings, then sitting in the right position is always very important. If one sits in the right position, upright position, and the Vairochana position with the 7 qualities, then all the nadis inside the body, then they also will remain in a proper position how they should be without bending, and without being crooked, without bending or anything like that. By this then all the energy and all the current which goes through these nadis will flow very free...

[...] ...has received the 6 practices of Naropa, from the great Indian master Naropa, and there the most important practice is tummo, the practice of the heat practice. The tummo heat practice and aware first of all exercises and the position of the body is very strictly sort of emphasized. Therefore sometimes guru master Marpa was sort of sometimes boasting and saying that all these Tibetan meditators or Tibetan yogis, even their great realization, whatever they

achieved, cannot be compared even with just my way of sitting. My way of sitting is enough just to excel. All the great realizations of the Tibetan masters of that time have they gained. Therefore this shows that the position of the body is very important. One time when the fully enlightened Buddha was still living there was a monk who was always in meditation in practicing samadhi, with a very perfect position of the body, very upright and every part of the position all very correct. When he was always sitting under a tree, always in this position, a monkey on that tree always seeing this, sometimes he also sort of imitated the position of the monk and he did this a few times and so his position also became very correct and by this it gave him, he attained a very high samadhi by just sitting in this very proper position. But sometimes an exceptional- thing takes place where certain, there are some people, some exceptional people, when they sit in the right position, the Vairochana position, it never works, the meditation never works and never works, because of certain abnormal or somewhat different thing in his own body and for such person then different positions must be tried. There was a monk at the time of the Buddha and in his previous life he has swore, has shouted at, to an older, to one of his masters, saying that you are like a cow, never finishing, you

are mean or something like that out of hatred, he said something like this. Then so that person, the object of his critic was a very realized master, a monk, so by this then this person has accumulated very unwholesome karma which actually the strength to take rebirth in hell realms. But that person after doing repentance has asked forgiveness and confessed very strongly, and by this he has changing his destiny, he has taken 500 times rebirth of a cow. After ceasing this karma, this unwholesome karma, after 500 rebirths as a cow, then he has taken rebirth as a human being, but still somewhat similar, still somewhat in common with a cow. Also his inner biological, things inside, all these things are somewhat, very similar to the cow and when he ate something but then after it comes back and he can chew it again, chew the cud. Also his facial appearance also is not very agreeable. It is a little bit more like an animal. He has this thing hanging, the cows have this thing here, this skin, this fold hanging under the throat. So he tried to practice meditation sitting in the Vairocana position for a very long time, but no any samadhis were attained. Buddha seeing this particular karma of this monk then instructed him to change his position, to sit like a cow, exactly like a cow, to sit on four legs like this with head down and he did that and meditated in that position and

attained samadhi very soon. And attained the arhat stage in that very life. So like that there are certain exceptional beings like that with a slightly different system in the body because of their own particular karmas. However, for the general, generally then for a normal person then this position, Vairochana position is the best for the practice of meditation. In order to practice the meditation like that it is very helpful for us to know how these, all this about the chakras and nadis and everything what our body contains, to have a good knowledge of this is very helpful. So when the energy enters in the central channel then the meditator, practitioner will realize this equalization of the, to the respiration from his two nostrils. So this happens whenever he meditates, whenever he concentrates on the points then this happens. Of course when he wakes from meditation then again it changes. But as soon as he meditates then his respirations becomes equal. Then still one must continue to practice the meditation, concentrate on the point, on that subtle point. Then the respiration will begin to, the energy will begin to abide, not only enter, but abide in the central channel, and when that happens then the outer respirations, the breath will stop. One is sitting, one can sit very still, very awake, very still, but without this outer respiration. One should

still continue to meditate, to concentrate until this abiding energy completely absorbs into the central channel. So when the energy begins to absorb into the central channel, then all these experiences which, experiences of the process of dissolution again occur, like the dissolution of earth into water, water into fire, fire into the wind, wind into the consciousness, then the first is what is called appearance, when we experience this whitish, then the near increase, that is the reddish appearance, then near attainment, or close attainment, that is the darkish then clear light. All these stages of experience will occur. As this process of dissolution takes place then the meditator experiences exactly the same inner experience; the smoke-like

experience, mirage-like experience, smoke-like experience, then spark-like experience, then dim-light experience, sort of dim-light without any motion, and after that then the whitish, then reddish, this darkish then empty very clear space, all will be experienced. But when the practitioner wakes from his meditation then again he starts to breathe. During his meditation, from the outside it is like a dead person, although he is not sort of collapsed, but is sort of sitting in the meditation position, very correct position 61

although without breath so it is like a dead person. But of course there is no, the body still remains warm all the living aspects of the body will not perish. So first the, all the energies will all not enter, abide and absorb at once, simultaneously, little by little. So therefore, this first signs of dissolution they are not so clear, they are not so clear. This is of course a person who has practiced the stage of generation and now from there moving to the stage of completion, then this practice of the concentration on that subtle point and this sort of helping then the inner sign, outer sign occurs. But this kind of practice can even be practiced before the stage of generation. Even without Bodhichitta and the proper motivations, the proper foundations, just practicing these techniques of the meditation and the concentration of the mind and so on, skillful people can still achieve some similar result like that. For example, stopping of the actual respirations and so on. Even if the energy does not really enter into the central channel, but when the energy is sort of channelized in that direction on the outside, but not really in the right way, but still in that direction and concentrating on those particular locations, area, that already can cause certain experiences, not exact the same but similar ones. So when the energy is not correctly channelized, if when the energy enters not really inside the channel but around the central channel, then these experiences of fire, water and so on, similar experience occurs, but without any order, not in the successive, in the correct order, but sometimes some experiences come before and completely in the wrong order. So this kind of practice has no real great fruit, no real benefit. Also, even the tummo, heat of the tummo can also be ordinary tummo, what is called ordinary heat can be generated, stimulated through practice of concentration, penetrating mind in that area when one is very deeply concentrated and when the energy is sort of gathered around there, not really into the central channel, but gathered around there, this can cause the heat to increase, but still not exactly the same as how the real tummo, the subtle tummo, but ordinary gross tummo can be activated. This kind of ordinary heat, or tummo, is something which generates rather easily and it also can be felt quite obviously from the level of the navel, the heat starts to increase rather rapidly. The real awaking of the tummo heat from inside the channel it comes very slowly and something very subtle, from first it's almost one can't feel really anything and it begins with a very subtle subtle heat and very fine one, deep from inside. There are quite a few people in Tibet who have generated the ordinary tummo heat and from outside they look quite fantastic because they can sit in a very cold weather or freezing cold weather, they can sit on the rooftop and only

wearing a little piece of cloth and still sort of sweating and so on, this kind they can perform this kind of powers. This kind of achievement or this kind of practice has no real great benefit. It does not help us to develop Bodhichitta, it does not help us to even in the tantra it is not a real result of the practice, not the desired result of the practice. So it cannot help the mind to overcome the delusions and so on. It is just the heat, that is just the warmth of the body, just like sitting by the fireside. It is only maybe to impress some people, besides that there is very little benefit. There is nothing to carry in the future life. So that is why most of the authentic masters in Tibet, they do not encourage the disciples immediately to engage in all these techniques of meditation with the tummo and air and wind and this and that, because this can instead of giving a real help to what is needed, just misleads

the people and let the people spend, waste their whole life on fantasies like that. That is why it is not encouraged or not popular. When tummo, if we understand correctly how the energy enters and which way its is channelized into the central nadi and how it enters and when it enters what kind of signs occur and how it abides and how it absorbs and then how this can generate the real, the subtle heat then by increasing the heat through the central channel how this causes the melting of the Bodhichitta or the blissful fruit from the center in the head and how then this, when this pours through the central channel and then what a blissful sensation, the different stages of bliss, how we experience and how this then helps the mind to realize shunyata and so on. If we understand the path correctly then there is no danger of misconceptions and misunderstandings, and even if we cannot put into practice right

away, all these stages of meditation, then if one prepares in right way from now, with all the necessary preparations, the development of Bodhichitta, meditation on the deity, and practice of the guru yoga, and meditation on the deity, stage of generation and so on. If one proceeds in the right way from now, even though we don't reach to that state in this lifetime, still one is on the right way. And even if one does not accomplish in this lifetime as a result of one's preparation in this lifetime, definitely in the future, in the next life, one will encounter with all the right circumstances, all the masters and every possibility and our progress, real spiritual progress will go on in a correct way, without any mistake and without any waste of time. So when the respiration stops, external expiration stops and the energies have absorbed in the central channel, then we should still observe if our, if our

belly is moving. If the belly, although the respiration has completely stopped, but if the belly is slightly still moving, then that is a sign that the energy has not entered at all in the central channel. When energy really enters into the central channel and abides there, then not only the outer breath stops but also this movement of the belly, the rising and falling stops. This is caused by wind, air, by energy. In the tranquil abiding, the ordinary tranquil abiding meditation like even in the non-tantric tranquil abiding meditation when one practices some other meditation and tries to fix the mind, the fixation of the mind, then when there again some misleading experiences. When the distraction, this very wide, this distraction, wideness of the mind sort of comes slightly, comes down, then the mind becomes very peaceful and sort of pleasant and relaxed. But because of this relaxation of the mind, and

sort of little concentration of the mind, then what is called subtle dullness of the mind. The subtle dullness of the mind occurs in the meditation which is in fact a kind of hindrance. But there are people who are misled by this kind of experience and this kind of subtle dullness is very relaxing, so comfortable, like a floating experience and one is very comfortable, and one concentrates not very badly, so not agitated. So one thinks this is a very high samadhi or some kind of very high state of samadhi and they just go on with this for days, for a day or two like that and with this kind of dullness developing in the mind and at that time also a good way to check, if this is a real good experience of the meditation or kind of dullness is again to check the belly. So therefore a real practitioner of tranquil abiding meditation must be very alert and attentive all the time to guard himself, his mind from

the distraction on one side and at the same time this kind of dullness by recognizing what is the real end and not miss the understanding of this kind of hindrances and recognizing and then immediately applying the antidote to get rid of them. But this practice of tranquil abiding is, one has to be skillful, very skillful, so therefore it is more difficult. It is sort of hard. On the contrary, just to sit in meditation in a position and just think nothing and just remain sort of completely blank mind, this is not very difficult and it is very comfortable and very quiet. One doesn't need to worry about anything, simply to close your mind completely and stay like that. This kind of practice is not, is completely not only wrong tranquil abiding, or wrong kind of meditation, but it is a very bad course to take very unfortunate in animal realms in future lives because this kind of practice completely closes the door of our analytical mind and thus the way to develop wisdom is completely closed. So therefore one takes rebirth in 62

very ignorant animal who just spends even in animal, also some types of animal who just all time sleeping, all time sleeping without much activity of the mind, that sort of animal we can become. So when we practice tranquil abiding in a very correct way, with a correct method, and when we accomplish tranquil abiding meditation, then one must experience what is called shenjung that is, shenjung that is like complete suppleness of the body and mind. It is a very blissful sensation physically and mentally. That is a sign or result of the tranquil abiding, accomplishment of tranquil abiding meditation. If someone just keeps on developing this subtle mental dullness then how long one meditates one can never experience that kind of bliss. So tranquil abiding meditation or accomplishment of tranquil abiding meditation to attain samadhi or full concentration of the mind and also the bliss of the mind is very beneficial, because the mind which is fully concentrated can be used for various purposes and can be very helpful. However, the one great difficulty that we face to accomplish the tranquil abiding meditation is our, although we try to make effort to concentrate and practice tranquil abiding meditation, the reason why we don't accomplish easily is the ground of tranquil abiding meditation is not very strong. So the ground of samadhi or tranquil abiding

meditation, accomplishment of tranquil abiding meditation is the shela. Shela is very important. Shela of body, speech and mind is a very important foundation for samadhi. There is a second danger in relation with the tranquil abiding meditation which is quite definitely quite far away for us, that is if we accomplish tranquil abiding meditation there is a danger, or can be a danger. That is if we concentrate immediately, sort of direct one's now the fully concentrated mind, this samadhi tool, a way to develop the Bodhichitta and this kind of Bodhisattva qualities, then tranquil abiding meditation just tranquil abiding mind, the mind which is in the state of samadhi, can easily turn to just into, turn to the inferior part, the path leading to the individual liberation attaining nirvana through the realization of shunyata. Of course for that one needs concentration mind. Just satisfied with the

realization of shunyata then one sort of again gets carried away, in a different way, leading to the individual liberation or nirvana from the samsara. Then it is of course a good goal. However it is not the right goal that we are seeking. The reason why this is sort of considered as a danger is that when we accomplish tranquil abiding meditation, and vipassana, then through this combination of tranquil abiding-vipassana mind meditation on shunyata, realize shunyata and through the realization of shunyata one completely gets rid of one's ignorance and then all other delusions and attachments and so on, all the delusions and by this karma is ceased and by this the conditioned rebirth in samsara is brought to an end and one has attained what one attains. The liberation from the samsara and the nirvana from the samsara. So this is the end of the problem for the individual person. However when one attains this

kind of goal for oneself then because this goal is very comfortable and it is very comfortable then one gets this inclination to help oneself, to help oneself and to think for one's welfare is the principal thing. Once our mind is very strongly inclined with this it is very difficult, after that again, to change from there to a Bodhisattva path. It takes a very long time for an arhat to again, although they finally will attain a fully enlightened state of Buddhahood going through the Bodhisattva path, but for them to change from their state to Bodhisattva takes a very long time, much longer than a person who begins with the Bodhisattva path and by doing certain mistakes, falling into the hell realms, spending a lot of time in hell realms, again coming back and attain fully enlightenment is still shorter than somebody who attains nirvana state first and from there to attain the fully enlightenment. There are many

also scripture sources for it in various sutras and so on, however they are too long to be quoted now. So Rinpoche will give one story. That is the Shariputra was a great master, a great disciple of Buddha, a great arhat. So there was a person who has certain karmic cause in him that if Shariputra teaches him or gives him the teaching of dharma and let him, give him the instruction of meditation, this person would immediately accomplish all the stages of meditation, tranquil abiding, vipassana and all that and would immediately attain the nirvana or the individual liberation. There was a person who had that kind of potentiality. Shariputra seeing this potentiality in that person with his clairvoyance then for now I will give the teaching of dharma to this person and establish him to the state of nirvana to the complete liberation. So in between the Manjushri Bodhisattva went to the same person and

gave a lot of teachings of Redbago. Bodhisattva taught him all the Bodhisattva conducts and good deeds, vast and profound practices, paramitas and all the sacrifices and so on and this person was completely shocked with the teaching, and that was completely too much and therefore there is no use for a person to become like Bodhisattvas, do all those things like Bodhisatvas, that is really completely beyond his ability and so on. So a wrong view has developed in him towards the teaching.

[...] ...all the usual agitations of the various conceptions. So then one still continues to meditate and all the energy in our body completely dissolves and absorbs into the central channel except for a very subtle energy and then one goes through the actual process of dissolution like at the time of the death,

then that subtle energy, most subtle energy which is inseparable from our subtle consciousness then finally awakens from the state of clear light. It produces a body which cannot be seen from outside, it is only for yourself, can only be perceived by yourself in form of White Vajradhara which goes out of one's body and performs various activities. That illusory body in White Vajradhara form goes out, goes out of one's body and performs various activities, accumulating merit and making offerings for the Buddhas and so on. And, after then it again comes back, returns and enters into through the crown of the old body and as soon as it enters through the crown of the head then one again comes to life in our usual body and then one engages in post- meditation practices like eating, walking, sitting and also then teaching asita, all these kind of activities. Then again one meditates, enters into the actual session of meditation where one leaves this body in that White Vajradhara form and this has to repeat for a long time. These three processes, the process of dissolution and clear light state, then the body of energy, energy body in White Vajradhara form, and again returning back into the old body. These three processes are the actual method, the actual path which eradicates our ordinary death bardo and birth. These are the cause to, also the cause to attain the three kayas, three bodies of the Buddha. But in order to accomplish these we must practice in the stage of generation these three

transformations. Transformations of the birth, death and bardo into Dharmakaya, Sambogakaya and Nirmanakaya, which is the principals of the practice of the sadhana. Although it is in one's mental, in your imagination, but still these are very important preparations, important cause for the accomplish of the actual, the path. So therefore, the three transformations in the stage of generation in your visualization, it is the preparation, or it is the cause to attain the actual path and also this is something which corresponds to our basic, our ordinary birth, death and 63

bardo and these are also cause to attain the actual, these three states, and on the path. In the stage of generation, to practice these three transformations in your mind is a very indispensable sort of ground or preparation to actually accomplish them in the stage of completion. Even if one practices that properly, even if one cannot attain the stage of completion in that life, still these transformations in this, mental transformations will be very helpful when actual death and bardo and birth occurs at the end of our life. So the principal practice in the stage of completion is through the

concentration on the point and also then the meditation on the emptiness, absorption into the emptiness, then one goes through the process of dissolution and reaches the clear light state, awake the clear light state of the consciousness and experience all those age different inner science, like mirage, smoke and so on, all these experiences. At first they are not very clear, and they are quite vague and so they are not very real, not very vivid. Also this awakening, then from clear light awakening in a body, in a separate body, at first it is very vague, and it's more in your mind. But after these become,

after continuous effort and continuous practice of meditation they become more and more real until they one can really create one's real body, body of energy. So those two, the practice of the generation of the clear light state and the illusory body are the two principal practices in the stage of completion. Then one should still continue to practice, to meditate with the vajra recitation and all these various techniques and for the energy to cause, for the energy to enter more and more, more completely in the central channel and so one has to, can never give up one's effort, one should still put much effort and continue to meditate. Then still if you will progress further. So when one practices the meditation, depending on what sort of tantra or

particular method one is practicing, sometimes with six chakras, sometimes with five chakras. However, when concentrating and meditating in this way the energy entering into the channel then it causing the heat to increase and then causing the blissful fluid to fall down, melting and falling down from the crown of the head. First when the bliss, the fluid fills the highest chakra in the crown of the head there are certain experiences that the meditator, experiences certain appearances. When it fills the head chakra then one sees, one gets visions of countless forms of Vairocana, the White Vairocana filling the whole space, so many appearing to us. But this time we are not having a real direct vision or contact or appearing of the form of the Buddha, it is not yet. This kind of experience occurs due to the energy and the bliss fluid filling the crown chakra.

In the practice, when we practice with energy with the nadis, then various appearances one sometimes one perceives various appearances, although they are not real. Sometimes one sort of gets impression that one cannot see anything, like becomes blind. Or sometimes one sees lots of sentient beings and one

gets the impression that one is seeing all the sentient beings of the six realms. Different impressions like this one gets, but they are not real, they are still kind of illusion caused by the energy entering into the various nadis. Now at the end of the solid mind, end of that state, then all the energy in the body has entered into the central channel, all except for the all-pervading one which only enters at the time of real death, normally. So still one is living, therefore that still remains. All the rest of the energy is in the central channel and one experiences very great bliss and also one's mind realizes shunyata very clearly, although it is still not a direct perception or direct realization of the shunyata, but still the shunyata, the void nature of phenomena becomes very clear to your mind. That meditator who is in that state, who is all energy, completely enters into the central channel except for this subtle all-pervading energy and what happens at the real death is hardly any difference, hardly any difference. Except for this little energy still in the body it is just like death. All these gross level of the consciousness, these energies, they are all absorbed into the true the most subtle consciousness and most subtle energy which is, which dwells always in the center of the heart chakra. Into these two potentialities then all the other energies absorb. Now a person who is dying, then all the energy absorbs into the subtle energy, all the gross mind is absorbed into the subtle mind, the

subtlest mind, then that energy, the subtle energy they leave this body, and subtle energy then produces the bardo body and then there is no more return to the old body. But now here in the meditation the practitioner, by the power of his own meditation, then one goes through the same process of dissolution all the gross level of consciousness, all the 80 gross level of consciousness, they all dissolve with that energy also and clear light state awakens. However, in place of now bardo taking the intermediate stage, bardo stage, after ones meditation, by the power of one's meditation then the energy creates this illusory body which can return to the old body. In order to do, to bring our mind to such a state and to accomplish that stage, the practice of meditation alone is not enough. One also needs a great power of merit. So here when we have reached that advanced state in the path of tantra, the accumulation of merit is no more dependent on the external activities of accumulating virtues and merit. Simply meditating on shunyata, the mind meditating on shunyata experiencing the great bliss, so the union of bliss and void itself is complete to accumulate both merit and wisdom. The bliss aspect of that mind is to, it helps to accumulate merit and the void aspect of the mind, the realization of the voidness is a way to accumulate wisdom. Therefore one mind can in the tantra, in the path of tantra, one mind can accumulate both sides, merit and wisdom. That is one of the reasons why in the tantric path it is

much faster, much shorter, much faster to attain enlightenment because here the advanced practitioner then can accumulate both collections, the collection of merit and the collection of wisdom by in one meditation, by one state of the mind. So it has a great power. While in the paramita, the ordinary paramitayana, the path of paramitayana then when one meditates on shunyata, one just meditates on shunyata single pointedly. There is no way, that is a collection of wisdom, developing wisdom. But when one wishes to accumulate the collection of merit then one has to engage in various outer activities of the Bodhisattva, such as the paramitas, the giving and chela and patience and all the paramitas, so they are not one state of mind, but different states of mind, different activities. Because of that, that way takes longer to fulfill. Here in tantra one practices the meditation of union of bliss and void and by just continuing to meditate, developing this meditation alone, then one accumulates both collections. Therefore, one does not need, no more dependent to the external methods of accumulating merit, activities like accumulation of merit after the meditation. When a Bodhisattva, following the ordinary path of the paramita, then reach when they reach the eighth stage of the Bodhisattva then one has realized the direct realization of shunyata and the shunyata that one realizes there, and also in the tantra, this is what is realized by the arhats or shivakas. But the shunyata itself there is no difference, there are

no different levels of shunyata, it is always one major shunyata. But there is a different in the state of the mind. A Bodhisattva who is developing himself on the paramita path then meditates on shunyata with the ordinary state of mind, our usual state of mind fully concentrated on it. Therefore it is unable to accumulate the merit at the same time. So therefore, it happens sometimes that the Bodhisattva in eighth bumi meditates in full samadhi or absorption of 64

shunyata. Sometimes the Buddha must appear and awake the Bodhisattva from that state of meditation in order to make him accumulate more merit through other paramitas. In tantra yana this difficulty is not present. Actually this kind of process of dissolution is something which occurs in reality at the time of death and also a very similar one occurs at the time when we sleep, when we go to sleep then there also occurs a similar process of dissolution, but very very short.

Like an ordinary being, go through those process of dissolution at the time of death and experience all those various appearances and go through the bardo then the birth. Without, unconsciously one goes without any control, without any will one just is carried away through these experiences and they just come and go. In the same way, when we go to sleep these similar stage of experiences also occurs. Because it is very short and very vague we do not notice anything. Also when we sleep again we are sort of powerless. Our mind is no more conscious and we are not aware of what really is happening. Therefore, again, in a similar away we are sort of carried away into sleep and as soon as we sleep then the dreams start to manifest. It is similar to the bardo and there is also a body in the dream and also we experience various kinds of sufferings and happiness and so on, encounter various objects and so on. It is similar to bardo. We also pass through, like in the bardo, without much, without being really conscious of what is going on, and when we awake, the mind again manifesting the awaken from the sleep state and come to life. It is similar to taking birth. When one reaches that state, the state of completion,

then one will be able to practice what is called the nine-fold mixing, literally means mixing, sera is mixing, like integration, nine integrations. So there is the three integrations, in awaken state three integrations, in the sleeping state three integrations, and death state. The last three of the death state is something which is should be practiced only at the time of death, but the other six, the three of the awaking state and three of the sleep is then practiced by the practitioner all the time. In the day when he is awake, then he meditates and in meditation he goes through the process of dissolution and also awakes himself in the body and then enters back into his old body and like that, that is again mixing or integration, integrating with the Dharmakaya,

Sambhogakaya and Nirmanakaya in the awaking state. In the same way when the practitioner sleeps, goes to sleep, at that time again he integrates the process of dissolution which occurs when one goes to sleep with the Dharmakaya. Then this dream, the manifestation of the dream body, then leaving his body, his physical body, then going through performing lots of different things, going through lots of different experiences, that is integrating with the Sambogakaya. Then after the dream body when he wants to awake, he enters back into the physical body and then awake, and that is integrating with the Nirmanakaya. All is done with full control and full consciously. Therefore all time is spent in a very useful way. At the present we have not the ability

to do that and so there is very limited time for our real practice of dharma. Therefore when we go to sleep we are unable to practice. But when one reaches that stage of completion then the three stages of the awaking state complements the three stages of the sleeping state and vice versa, and like this there is no moment where one is not really practicing, so all time is spent used in a very good way, a very powerful way to develop one's mind and this way one accomplishes the fully enlightenment very soon. From now one can transform one's sleep into a virtuous sleep. That one can do. If one sleeps with a very virtuous state of mind, with a development of Bodhichitta or compassion or any other aspect of the, any other qualities like that, then a sleep which is

sustained by such a state of mind, such a motivation, the sleep is also virtuous. It is a virtuous sleep. If one sleeps with a very unwholesome state of mind where tetrandra and so on, that changes the sleep also to an unwholesome sleep. So this is in our head, that one can already practice one now. But in the kind of transformation which is practiced in the stage of completion is very different. Actually in the stage of generation there are already many different yogas, many different practices, some for the waking state like practicing of the sadhana and so on, these meditations, and all of them, any yogas, the sleeping yogas, the eating yogas and so on, there are many many yogas, different kind of yogas for different activities. If one practices them

they are very beneficial, very beneficial to transform our ordinary state, the ordinary state of our life into something more useful, and it is also the preparation for the stage of completion. Je Rinpoche didn't have time so far to explain all these other yogas. The other yogas such as the yoga of sleeping, then washing and eating, and lying and all these kind of yogas Rinpoche doesn't have time to explain. Actually the training of the sleeping yoga is something which we can do for now in order to train ourself to remain conscious, conscious of dream, conscious of sleep. So this is a kind of training, or practice, the training which is done with a great power of motivation and there are certain methods, certain techniques. Usually the dream body, when we

go to sleep the dream body manifests, but usually it remains in this physical body. It cannot leave the physical body. Still to train to practice this kind of training, to remain conscious of one's sleep and one's dream is very helpful to us because this can be very useful at the time of death. If we are really able to be conscious of our sleep we will be able to also to remain conscious when we die, and if we are able to remain conscious while we are dreaming that will help at the time of bardo. That is one way of controlling the sleep, that is by the power of motivation, by the power of meditation, mental meditation. That is one way. Still there is a superior way to control, that is by controlling the sleep and dream by the power of energy, with lumo

energy control. That is more powerful because with this then the dream body actually can leave this physical body and travel around very very speedily, everywhere, go to China, India, go everywhere. In a few minutes one can very speedily make a great trip and return to our body. Now days we latch on to make a journey, make a trip around the country, even while we sleep. While we sleep we don't know even what's happening just next to ourself. Even if somebody takes something we don't know. We can’t remember. It is because the dream is uncontrolled and it is only going on inside our head in our body. So there was a very great scholar, a very famous man in Tibet who was called Potu Rinpoche. Potu Rinpoche and he was a very great scholar who lived little

before Je Tsongkapa. Je Tsongkapa was born after six years of the death of Potu Rinpoche. Anyway this great scholar, great master, he had full control of his sleep and dream and so by the power of the energy. Therefore he memorizes most of the texts in his sleep. So before going to bed he puts so many, all of the scriptures which he has to memorize, all around him then he goes to sleep. Then by the power of his energy he manifests in his dream body and the dream body memorizes and it has a tremendous power to memorizing and it works much more speedily than the usual way, so he studies of course in the daytime and then much more in the dream or in the sleeping, so that's how he became an extraordinary great pundit. Dream activities in the dream are much more

speedy than our what's done in the waking state because it is the mental, it's all mental body and is all, it runs with the speed of the mind, therefore everything goes very quickly. For example if we have to write something with the hand it takes a very long time. To read is a little faster. Even just to look through like this 65

with our eyes is still much, more faster, so it is something like that. For such practice one must be able to perfect, to do to separate one's gross body and subtle body. That is quite difficult and to do that with just the power of meditation or power of motivation is difficult, so one needs the control of the energy in order to separate them. In Tibet, in Seung in West of Tibet there lived a master, who the master himself has not gained control of his sleep and dreams, but he had a disciple who has mastered this technique, this method. Another disciple of this lama went to pilgrimage journey to central Tibet. That master took a very long time on his pilgrimage so the master start to worry about his disciple has died or faced some bad luck on his journey. Therefore he called his other disciple who has [...]

[...] So here one, for the Prana Vajra recitation then one concentrates in the heart center and depending on the different practice of tantra, sometimes visualize a syllable, sometimes an implement, and various different, can be different. However then one begins the Vajra recitation like, similar to Je Rinpoche explained yesterday at the recitation part in the sadhana, so with one's energy going here, it is not going out, no more breath going out like before. Instead, the energy goes from the heart center up to the crown of the head and then again going with the OM sound, it's going up. With OM it comes down into the heart, with AH it rests there, and with HUM it goes back, it goes up. So this way one practices the Vajra recitation and then after this abiding in the heart, the duration abiding increases and of coming and going gets shorter and shorter, and abiding increases longer and longer. This recitation, now the energy going into the central channel, going up and down, up and down like that and by this then it opens the central channel and all those defects are all completely restored and notice recitation is not verbal. One should think that this is the natural sound of the energy itself, of coming, abiding and going and so the sound and the energy are inseparable. So generally one can, when we recite mantra, verbal recitation of mantra, when we recite mantra in general is very beneficial any time. But if one does it while oneself is in the form of the deity with the mantra circled in the chest,

this is more powerful than just doing recitation without the circle of mantra in the heart. Like in the stage of generation to recite the mantra with a clear visualization of oneself as the deity and the mantra circled, that is very powerful. But still, still the Vajra recitation is still even more powerful. When one attains, accomplishes this inner pranayama vajra recitation, then one does not need any more malas. Then there is no more vocal (?) recitation, that's end of vocal (?) recitation, no more recitation of malas and rosary. When one attains the illusory body no more prostrations and circumambulations and so on. Actually vajra recitation, when one does vajra recitation, the energy can like before it can go out. But here now, we don't let it out, it just keep it within the body and goes up and down. The reason for that is that in order to keep the energy within, collected, keep the

energy within the body and channelize all the energy into the nadi without letting the slightest bit out of the body. That is why here we do it all inwardly. Also now when we practice sadhana like that, we, when we make offerings, then offering deities are produced, send out from our chest, but each time we must, at end we must think that they come back. Whatever one has sent out from one's body must be collected and that is very important. It is a very important preparation or very important sort of symbol for the future in the state of completion. At that stage when one has reached, that stage one is already very advanced and one can now accomplish various other powers of clairvoyance and so on at this stage. Now the experience of the great bliss through the, by the fluid falling into the central channel has no comparison to any kind of bliss, that ordinary bliss experience by us now days at the

present. That until now we have never experienced that great bliss, that type of bliss. So the reason why we haven't until now, we have never experienced the great bliss of the union is that although there is the union, of ordinary sexual union, that is a certain type of bliss. But this is very short and very subject to downfall, very temporary. Also is not real complete bliss because although the fluid, the white in the man and red in the woman, although the certain fluid is melted, but is not from the highest chakras. They are melting from certain secondary nadis, not from the central channel, from secondary nadis below the level of navel. Therefore it is inferior melting and the bliss is also very short. As soon as the fluid leaves one's body the bliss has completely gone. The experience of bliss which is generated through the practice of meditation, that is much superior than the ordinary

experience, the very short temporary experience of the bliss. So this is something which is generated by the power of one's meditation and it comes not only from the lower part of the body but it also comes right from the top of the crown of the head through the central channel. So stage by stage the experience of the bliss increases and is very strong and very great and when it reaches at the end of the, the lower end of the nadi in the end of the organ, it is not emitted, it is not let out, rather the end of the nadi is closed with the letter PA, so this stops the fluid going out. From there it again goes reverse upward, then again from the end of the nadi to the, from the end of the organ to the root, then again to the navel, then to the heart, then to the neck and up to the crown of the head. This reverse order, during this reverse order of the fluid, one experiences even greater bliss that the

when it falls down. When the fluid has completely reached on top then it abides there and it never decreases. The bliss also never degenerates and bliss is maintained for kalpas and kalpas without ever degeneration, so it is very different from the ordinary type of sexual bliss. So Je Rinpoche says now for tonight he would like to stop here. Still not very much is left from the stage of completion. The third, fourth and fifth grades are still to be explained tomorrow and the last is yugananda which is very important. It is said in the tantra to even to have understanding. Just understanding of the yugananda is a great accumulation of merit, even greater than somebody who is accomplished in the stage of generation. So it is considered very powerful and very great accumulation of merit. So therefore, it is important to know this and try to understand as good as we can, and Je Rinpoche will try to explain. Of course

to explain the complete stage of completion is, it is too vast, it is too complex and too vast to be shortened into few words, in few sessions of teaching. It may last for months and months, even the text concerning the stage of completion. For example there is a great commentary by Je Tsongkhapa which is a big volume and then for example the great Indian masters Chandrakirti. Chandrakirti has composed great text on the commentary on tantra which is very big volume. Chandrakirti has composed various other texts but there are two which are most outstanding in his works which are known among the great Indian pundits as the Sun and Moon of the World, that is his great commentary which is to the Madhyamaka which is called The Clear Word. Then this commentary on tantra which is called The Clear Light. Those two are the most outstanding works and like that they are great many works and commentaries by great masters

of India like Nagarjuna, Nagabodhi, Chandrakirti, Aryadeva and so on. And in Tibet also there are many commentaries on tantra, but a few outstanding ones are those of the great 66

translator Marpa. There are a few works on tantra, and then in the later time Je Tsongkhapa composed. He composed various texts covering various aspects of the dharma. Out of those, the most outstanding one is his work on Madhyamaka which is called Tnungya, Tnungya is a great commentary about the view. Then his great work on what is called The Path of The Tantra, then specifically on the stage of completion is there is a commentary which is called also The Clear Lamp is a big volume. Those are very outstanding works where he has taken the essence of all the great tantras and their commentaries of the great

Indian masters and put into, compiled into a very precise, clear commentary which is a very good text to study. So there are, the stage of completion is not at all a simple thing to just explain in a short time. It is a very, to understand it correctly one really needs to do intensive studies about this. However, tomorrow Je Rinpoche will explain some of the main points about the stage of completion. That's all for tonight.

Concerning the stage of completion, there are different ways, different tantras, like if there are five rays, stages of completion according to Guhyasamaja tantra, and then the same five stages according to Chakrasamvara tantra, and also Yamantaka tantra and others. So all they are slightly different in certain aspects, certain emphasis and so on. However they are all complete, all these five stages. Whatever one practices all leads to the same goal. In Kalachakra tantra it is known as the joining to the six-limb of liberation, that is the whole stage of completion. Except for a few little differences and

certain particular terminologies and so on and a few ways of classifying certain things, the Kalachakra tantra also has the same five stages of the stage of completion, all complete. Then there is a specific matter developing the stage of completion according to the position of Naropa which is called the Six Practices of Naropa and there are six practices on Naropa and six practices on Neguma and there are two traditions. However the six practices of Naropa is very, is something which is in all schools, all four schools of Tibetan Buddhism. All those six practices of Naropa which are practiced in Tibet, they are all identical, they are all from one tradition and it is the same. It is the kind of practice which is more suiting, more fit to a person who is practicing the Chakrasamvara tantra. So the Guhyasamaja tantra of both the stage of generation and completion is more complex. There are more elaborated, there are more things in there. In Chakrasamvara there are a few different traditions within Chakrasamvara beginning from various Indian siddhis and that Reprada,

the tradition of Reprada is most elaborate. According to the tradition of the Gandabarda, the Indian siddhi, all five stages they are all complete, but they are not easier, they are more up to the point. For the practice of Vajrayogini and then Tara Chittimani in their tantra the stage of completion is very concise, it is not complicated to practice and very concise. They also contain all the main points. Also much less recitation, much less to visualize, but very essential, that all the points, nothing is missing, all in there. There are so many different ways one can take, but all lead to the same goal, that is the state of the ultimate yugananda Buddhahood. To explain all aspects of the practice is quite impossible. In a short time however, Je Rinpoche has tried to explain the most essential things, important things, as much as he could, and also he very compassionately thinks that the translator is reliable so therefore he feels to say some things, more things. It is not obligatory when you have received the teaching on basis of the Guhyasamaja then

you are not obliged to practice, but this Guhyasamaja tantra, although it is hard, of course if one can practice, if one has good stock of intentions and patience and effort it is very very beneficial, very good. If not, then still one can take something which is more suiting to one's mind and all these important points of the tantra will anyway be applicable to any of the path one takes. Then one should learn about these practices, must learn about these practices and then try to put into practice. But to practice a lot of different things simultaneously is a cause for confusion. At the beginning you have great enthusiasm and very excited about something to practice. Therefore we take lots, whatever comes by, we take everything and now after we get complete, we take lots of notes and after we read this mess we are not able to read our own notes. Even if we are able then we don't understand what it means because there is some, sometimes they are taken in little odd ways. So then we face lots of complications like this. Therefore it is better to take few practices, but do it as precisely and as properly and sincerely as one can. Tomorrow morning there will be one more session of the teaching, then in the evening tomorrow is the 10th of the 12th month which is an important day, a tantric day, so therefore we will offer puja, Sok offering.

There is a question which says if one realizes shunyata perfectly he doesn't immediately generate Bodhichitta. It seems that it should occur because you have seen a quality, the suffering nature of all sentient beings. But Je Rinpoche says it is not necessary then that when one realizes shunyata that it automatically leads to the development of Bodhichitta. Shunyata means the ultimate true nature of every phenomena. That one can realize if one has enough power of the wisdom and concentration of mind and so on. Of course that doesn't mean that one remains still ignorant about suffering of the sentient beings. Suffering of the sentient beings is realized and however it does not lead automatically to generate the Bodhichitta. To generate the Bodhichitta one needs a special effort, because generation of Bodhichitta is not enough just to see the suffering of sentient beings, but one must build the courage in one's mind, to exchange oneself with other sentient beings, to take the full responsibility of separating all sentient beings from their suffering and to establish them to the ultimate state of happiness by oneself. It needs an extra courage of mind. It is not just enough to realize the ultimate nature of all phenomena. Therefore it is a method aspect which needs a special effort, needs a special courage. So that is why even though the aurea chiveacaws and pritakas have realized shunyata, but still they have not developed a Bodhichitta because it needs a separate effort. But it doesn't mean they are ignorant about the suffering of the sentient beings. They are concerned about sentient beings, they also help sentient beings in various ways, with the full boundless mind and so on. But still, the help is very limited compared to that of the Bodhisatva.

Je Rinpoche said about the recitation of sadhana we will do a short Guhyasamaja sadhana so that we can record it and learn the melody and so on. Je Rinpoche says that if one can practice, of course, the longest version it is very good which basis that Rinpoche gave this teaching. But it is rather long

and there is a medium one which is in that prayer book if one can find it, that is the medium one. Still there are very short ones. Of course they are not the complete sadhana at all. However, it would be still good if one can recite the life-fulfilling kind of commitment. It is good to recite one very short one which is also in that book just with 3 pages of something. Short one so this is good. Je Rinpoche says that we will not recite 67

tomorrow because there is not much time, but any of us can read it and you can record it, that is alright. The names of the Indian guru you can get, I can show you in the text.

Je Rinpoche has taught us yesterday that when the practitioner of the stage of generation meditates on that subtle point in the end of the nadi and so by this one, the experience is great bliss. This blissful state of mind fully realizing shunyata, fully absorbing shunyata and realizing shunyata, then the wisdom or the mind, wisdom of bliss and void in union itself then appearing in forms of the deities and so on. As soon as the practitioner can generate this kind of manifestation then he becomes a practitioner of the stage of completion. In the stage of generation all the deities in form that we generate,

they are all mental image, they are all in mental image. Therefore the stage of generation is called a practice which is sort of made up, which is sort of created, or made up practice, because here one makes up all these forms by one's mind. They are visualized all. That practitioner meditating on the subtle point and channelizing the energy into the central channel, and the energy entering in the central channel, abiding there and begins to absorb. The mind experiences all the stages of dissolution, then also then the fluid from the crown of the head falling down through the central channel and as it comes and reaches these different chakras at different places, then what experience joy, the supreme joy, the extraordinary joy and the joy of the bliss of union. That fourth stage of bliss, and when one experiences the fourth stage of bliss, and that mind, that state of mind then fully realizing shunyata and absorbs shunyata. All these things are not visualizing. Then in the stage of completion they are actually taking place, they are happening in reality, not only just in mental image. When the practitioner of the completion continues to meditate and the energy continues to enter, abides and absorbs into the central channel, then for still to -clear the central channel from all the subtle obstacles one practices the pranayama of the vajra recitation and so this pranayama practice is the second stage which is called the solitude, solitude speech. Then still by continuing to meditate then all the energy in the body

will enter into the central channel except for a very subtle what is called the all pervading the energy, except for a very subtle level of that all the rest of the energy in the body all enters into the central channel. Then the real process of the dissolution occurs exactly like at the time of the death. During the stage of the solitude body the energy enters into the central channel and begins to abide there and absorb. Then through the practice of solitude speech that is the pranayama vajra recitation, then the central channel is completely opened and by this all energy in our body they are all entered in the central channel and they all absorb there. Then as a result of that all the usual gross conception, all the conception of an object, and subject and so on, all these conceptions, normal conceptions they all stop because the mount of these conceptions which is the energies they are already channelized and they are already absorbed, so therefore there are no more conceptions. So the mind in that state of mind is free from all the

[...] So in Tibet there were no hotels or no motels, so everyone, most of the travelers they carry all what they need on their back, and travel and stop wherever necessary and then make a fire and make tea and so on. So that pilgrim he was sleeping in a cave. He has finished his tea and so he has the tea bag and used it as a pillow and just sleeping very quietly in a cave. This other disciple roamed around the whole country everywhere, every possible place he searched. One night he searched everywhere and he found him in a cave. He was already on his way back somewhere, but anyway he was quite near from that place, there in a cave. So that disciple reported to his guru and his guru made a note of that date, that day when he finished the tea and so on. So he made a note and after the return of that pilgrim then he asked about it and it was exactly, it happened exactly on that very day that he finished his tea and he lied in that cave with the empty bag and everything was proved to be very correct. So from the beginning of entering into the practice of the stage of completion, if one begins also to practice the transformation, the three transformations also in the sleep, then one makes progress very speedily because all ones time is spent in meditation, in waking and sleeping state.

At one time a great Indian siddha after attaining the realization of the stage of completion then he just slept for 12 years. So he was actually very busy during all those 12 years of sleep although outwardly he was just like a person lying there all time, but for himself he has generated this illusory body and this illusory body has been working hard for all this time with the accumulation of merit and everything. After 12 years when he woke he has already reached the very advanced stage in the stage of completion, the solitude mind, he has already attained that.

The practice of transforming the sleep is quite clear. Je Rinpoche has no time now to explain in detail, but it is quite precise in the commentary of Six Practices of Naropa. There are generally six practices of Naropa and six practices of Niguma. Niguma was a very great yogini and who has also compiled all the essence, all the tantra into six practices. It is called Six Nigu Practice, and Naropa has also done in a similar way for the essence of the tantras, in particularly the Chakrasamvara Tantra. Then also with the oral transmission, direct instruction from the Vajrayogini who has appeared to Naropa, then he has compiled all the essential practice into six points. So these stages of completion it is same in all the practices of Anutara tantra, such as Guhyasamaja, Yamantaka, Chakrasamvara, Vajrayogini, Hevajra and all the practices in all the different parts, they are the same process of stage of completion.

Now the practitioner attained the solitude mind where ones, all the energies have entered and absorbed into the central channel and one experiences exactly like at the time of death all these process of dissolution. The first entrance into the stage of completion, there are slight differences in different tantras, like Guhyasamaja and it is that concentration on that subtle point which is visualized in the end of the lower nadi. In Yamataka tantra the subtle point is placed in the navel chakra. Although there are slightly different approaches like that, but 68

they all led to the same goal. That is to loosen the knot in the heart chakra. That is the actual aim, but to begin immediately from the heart is a great risk and it can cause great dangers. Therefore, in different tantras one begins from different chakras. Now we are in the stage of the solitude mind. Around here in the solitude speech the need of the union of the consort is then sometimes there comes the need of the union with the consort in order to

help still to further to open the chakra, the nadis and so on. However, then one goes through various different methods, one goes through these process of dissolution and so on and reach the clear light state. Then out of that clear light state, then the subtle energy generates in the form of White Vajradhara and separating it from all the body, actually going out. That is illusory body. When we manifest in this White Vajradhara illusory body, leaving our old body, that is the moment where all the energies even the all-pervading one, also dissolve and also enter into the channel. So it is exactly like real death. This illusory body is something which is very subtle which has been explained with various different examples, sometimes like a reflection of moon in the lake, and so on. Many, twelve different examples are given to help us to understand this illusory body, but it is still very hard to understand

because we are so acquainted with the physical body. So we always think in terms of the physical body, but in fact it is completely different. This illusory body has been explained with twelve different examples and so on, but that will take a very long time to explain those details. However, it is body of energy which can travel very speedily to any Buddhafields and like these and make offerings to the Buddhas and so on, so all engaged in various activities by accumulation of merit. Then it can return to the old body and then again come to life as usual. However, this illusory body is called impure one because we are still not completely free from the defilements, the mental defilements. Although they are subdued but they are not completely eradicated. This is something which is produced by a kind of energy which is still together with the mind which is still with the defilements, so therefore

it is also sort of impure production, that's why it is called impure body. This illusory body is completely, it exists of the nature of energy, completely free of all the matter and no, it is non-physical form. It is very pure in that sense. However, since it is in union with the mind, the subtle mind which is still not free from the defilements, so it is called impure body. So this impure body cannot actually become the Buddha's body. This impure body is something which has to be ceased, so therefore one applies two samadhis, one is called je shig subsequent, literally subsequent dissolution, dissolving, and then the other one is called Renzin, that means grasping, or ceasing as a whole. So there are two samadhis, we apply those two samadhis. The first means first one let dissolve all the mandalas and one’s body, outer body, inner body, all these kind of things from outside, going more deeper and deeper

inside into the HUM and the HUM also completely disappears stage by stage into emptiness. That is called the subsequent dissolving. The second one is, the whole complete ceasing is one that dissolves all the body completely instead of successful dissolution dissolving at simultaneous dissolving. So one must apply these two different methods still in the impure body, illusory body, one must meditate. First it is, dissolution takes place in the mind, after that still meditating on shunyata and making or going through the process of dissolving and meditating on shunyata by the power of the absorption in shunyata, then finally one completely eradicates all the delusions, all the kleisha avarana will be completely eradicated. When that happens then together this impure illusory body will also cease to exist. By the continuation of the meditation, the absorption into shunyata and then kind of visualizing the process

of meditation where one becomes HUM and HUM also dissolving only nada becomes emptiness. Then again go through the process of dissolution. First in mind, then through acquainting more and developing the acquaintance after it happens in reality. That completely ceases the illusory body, is completely ceased and once more the clear light state is realized. This clear light state which is realized with the cessation of this impure illusory body is called the actual clear light or the clear light of the meaning of the fourth stage of completion, in the path of completion. So this absorption of shunyata, it is in one session. The first part of the session is called "uninterrupted part" and the second part of the meditation is called "fully liberated part" and with the power of the fully liberated part then one eradicates all the kleisha avarana and one becomes an arhat. After abiding in this clear light state, in

actual clear light, after remaining in that state for a while then once again one we must awake from there, then again the energy, there is now the pure energy which is free from obstacle, free from defilement, that pure energy then produces once again a body an interested body.

Je Rinpoche says there are a few discussions about this point which are not necessary to be translated. Now the mind which is now free from all the delusions and has attained that cessation of all the kleisha avaranas and so attaining the state of an arhat. Now this is again in union with a subtle energy which is now called "pure energy" because it is free from defilements. This energy again produces an illusory body which is pure illusory body and

also in White Vajradhara with a consort. So this illusory body now is together with the state of mind which is free from delusion-obstructions (klesha avarana) which is in the state of clear light and is now together with the illusory body at the same time. That is called the first union or the first yugananda or the yugananda of the training. Why it is called yugananda of the union of the training is still the jenera yugananda or the subtle imprint of the delusions are still not abandon. So therefore, it is not fully perfect, but very near the Buddhahood. So here then the practitioner engages in what is called chirpa, this charia of the tantric, this charia engages in various activities, all the practices, all the activities, extraordinary, abnormal activities. So this extraordinary or abnormal activities of the herias, that helps very much the person in his meditation. As we see in the life of the

many great masters of the past, Indiana and Tibetans, for example the great Indian siddhas if we read, most of them have been monks who observed all the shelas very precisely, every little shela very precisely, and who has been already very great scholars and studied all the dharma very extensively and gained a very good learning, and after they have put all these into practice and attained all the realizations on the common path. And on the basis of that then they enter into the path of the tantra and first practice the stage of generation, practice very appropriately, accomplish it and then stage of completion. And when some of them have attained very advanced state of mind, then they leave all their usual way of life, and they change their life completely and then they roam around the country doing all kinds of crazy things. Because at that moment they have reached the actual state where this kind

of behavior is a very beneficial factor, every important factor to increase their realization and meditation. So they have reached that level. They are not doing because they went crazy or something, but it is a necessary point. For example there was a great Indian master who was called Chalvarey, called his Chalvarey, and he was also very great pundit at first, very great master and after he began his practice of tantra and stage of generation and completion and so he had a Tibetan disciple, a Tibetan who was called a great master Turnbo, Turnbo Azure and he came several times to see this master, this siddha, and he saw him the first time, second time, then the third time 69


when his master had reached a very advanced state of the stage of completion and reached that point where one has to engage in this abnormal activities or behaviors. So third time when Turnbo Azure went to see his master, then his master is living in a cave with wife and children and then also hunting, lots of animals, deers and so on, especially on the day of arrival of his disciple he had hunted lots of animals and he has skinned them and so very bloody atmosphere, his master was waiting for the disciple. But his master being very practice of devotion, very strong and faithful, very firm didn't change anything, didn't occur even a doubt about this, and when he went to his guru and guru then gave him few very important teachings and instructions and he returned to Tibet and practiced them and he himself also attained very advanced state, he became very advanced yogi of the tantra. Soon after, Chalvarey

the Indian master has attained also yugananda state, Buddhahood. Before one attains full enlightenment, that person who is developing the yugananda, or the union, attains the eight qualities of Ishvara, that is like powerful, like extraordinary powers. When that person attains these eight Ishvara powers, that means literally like eight powers lordship, something like lordship, Ishvara lordship. Then when he attains these great powers it also causes great disturbance in all the abode of maras, shakes the land of the maras and so on and causes a great disturbance there and they already begin to worry and so on. However, they are eight such great qualities and at that point then one has to make a great offering to ones guru. So one should make a great offering to the guru and receive the final instruction. This final instruction is received at the end of the day and as night begins one receives the final

instructions and then begins the meditation and after midnight then one attains full enlightenment, the full yugananda. Now the body still remains in the same form, the form is the same. It is a Vajradhara form which is pure in its essence. It is the appearance of the Wisdom and now this, not only the body but the mind also is not free from all the obstacles, even the last one the jenera avarana. So therefore, one becomes Buddha. By the power of vajra-like meditation, then one completely destroys the last obstacle, the jenera avarana and when this is eradicated, when this last obstacle is purified, then one’s body actually becomes the real ultimate, fully enlightened body of the Buddha, Vajradhara, and the mind becomes, as soon as these obstacles have been eradicated, immediately the mind becomes omniscient, that means simultaneously perceiving all phenomena without exception in their ultimate nature. Then

the mind attains this quality then attains all the other qualities of the Buddha such as the seven aspects of the unions. Then one attains all these qualities of the ultimate bliss, the great union and everlasting and full of compassion, sort of ever-steady, permanent, ever-steady, eternity, all these kind of qualities attained and from then on there is no end to all the omniscient mind of the Buddha. So they are uninterrupted or unbroken stream, they have attained the quality of unbroken stream. That means this body is everlasting, that means it never really comes to an end and it prevails all phenomena and all, its body becomes all- pervading, that means infinite. So this kind of extraordinary body of the Buddha will be seven qualities, something which can be seen, which can be perceived only by aurea Bodhisattvas. Let alone the ultimate body of the Buddha, even the impure illusory body is beyond the

ordinary perception. The illusory body is something which can be perceived between each other and those who are higher or more advanced, but those with lower development cannot see it, cannot have contact with it, the illusory body. To attain that state of the yugananda is not, although there are generally what is called [...]

[...] ...not indispensable, that to attain the yugananda one must engage in that kind of behavior. For example the great master Je Tsongkhapa has attained the ultimate solitude mind, and he didn't take a physical consort. When he had reached the third stage the solitude mind, and there in place of taking a consort, physical consort, then he entered into parinirvana. He passed away. So he used instead of the union with a physical consort, he has integrated

that attainment, that inner attainment of this realization with the process of actual physical death. So he showed the deed of attaining enlightenment. At the time of his death when all the energies also enter into the channel and so on, he integrated that process with his practices of development of the path of completion and integrating the two then in place of bardo he generated himself in the illusory body.

There is a different explanation where when he died, at that time a second manifestation then appeared and that engaging all these victorious, these behavior and then attained the yugananda. That is another explanation. Another explanation is that although in ordinary view he didn't have a physical consort. However, he entered in union with the secret consort, with Goddess Sariswati, then attained enlightenment. However, these are only performance of the guru for the benefit of sentient beings. In reality Je Tsongkhapa has already attained enlightenment. He himself came into the world as a manifestation

of a Buddha, not an ordinary being seeking liberation. Because Je Tsongkhapa has followed such a life, a life of purity, of the pure shela giving great, a pure shela as a safeguard against all the misunderstandings and all the miss practices of ordinary sentient beings. He has led a very pure life. Also he has also followed the great masters, has also took the same example and kept their practice of ultimate practice of tantra in themself and not made it very public and doing all sort of odd things.

For example, the two great disciples as we see two sided Je Rinpoche, Je Song Rinpoche and Kato Rinpoche, they also were great advanced practitioners of the tantra, see those and they have attained fully enlightenment. Actually these two great disciples of Je Rinpoche are Avalokiteshvara, manifestation of Avalokiteshvara. Je Song Rinpoche on the right side of him is Avalokiteshvara and Kato Rinpoche on the left side of Je Tsongkhapa is Vajrapani in their true nature.

There was a great yogi, disciple of Je Tsongkhapa, tantric disciple who was Konjatanyato Tomen Jatanyato and he was also a great practitioner of tantra, but outwardly he was a simple, very pure simple monk, but inwardly he was a great practitioner of tantra and he meditated for a very long time for many years in a cave in a place where no one could reach, for a very long time he meditated there and accomplished his practices and came back and helped so many so sentient beings and established center of dharma and so on.

Also a younger brother of Kato Rinpoche who was called Paso Shayeltson, he was a great practitioner of tantra and attained illusory body in his life. And his disciple of Chergydorgy took siddha trigidacta. He also was a practitioner of tantra and especially of Guhyasamaja and he also attained illusory body in that life. By attaining the illusory body his body remained permanent or ever-lasting, he attained ever-lasting, so he never passed into Parinirvana,

and he still lives and sometimes in conference with fortunate beings. In West of Tibet in the valley of Param there is a great mountain and he is still meditating in this mountain all the time. Not only him, but he had many hundreds of great disciples who were all great yogis who had attained advanced realizations in the tantra. There have been a lot of people who have come into contact with this living master. So he is like, he blessed his body in such a way like the sixteen arhats. The sixteen arhats they also had never entered into Parinirvana and living for the benefit of sentient beings still now.

So there are many stories like that, however it staking time and maybe just like tales, ten tales, stories, just reading like a story. So there is not much use to speak a lot. So Je Tsongkhapa, among his great number of disciples, of course there have been more who have attained enlightenment without knowing why other people, but there are already 120 who have attained enlightenment which is noticeable which is approved by everybody.

There was a Nyingma master who lived in the West of Tibet, name was Lama Chimi Laje. On time he was a little bit sick. He has composed biography of Je Tsongkhapa, a very beautiful one. So his disciples, the disciples of this Lama, then reading the life of Je Tsongkhapa who was, their master had composed and said that Je Tsongkhapa was definitely a very great master and has attained enlightenment, he is really an enlightened being. However, it doesn't seem that he had a lot of disciples who has attained highest advanced state of tantra, all very enlightened and so on, although he didn't have a great many

siddhas or yogis around and so on. So their master into eradicate or eliminate this wrong view of his disciples, then he composed again another text, counting all those enlightened disciples of Tsongkhapa so there are 120 in this biography of the disciples of Je Tsongkhapa, it is called The Golden Rosary. Like that Je Tsongkhapa and his disciples they were, a lot of them who had attained through the power of the tantra the state of yugananda.

Likewise in other traditions like for example, in Kadampa with, following the great master Atisha, there were also so many great masters that came after him and who many of them have already attained enlightenment in their very life. Also in the Nyngma tradition, the great master Padmasambava came from India to Tibet for the benefit of sentient beings, although he didn't live very long in Tibet. He didn't compose a lot of texts or give lots of extensive

teachings and so on, but he was a great siddha himself and he lived during that short stay in Tibet. He has helped so many sentient beings and so many great masters. Like the 25, the direct disciple of Padmasambava, who have all attained enlightenment in their life. And like that in all the traditions there have been so many siddhas and yogis who have attained enlightenment in their very life. For example in the Sakya tradition before that in their line

for practitioner of old tantra or Nyngma tantra. Also there were a lot of great yogis before then. And Quintoyelbo had a son who is called Kunganengbo. Then after this Kunganengbo who has founded in this present Sakya lineage has decided that tradition. After him until now there have been so many great masters, great many yogis in this tradition. In Tibet many of these great masters, not only among the disciples of Je Rinpoche, but all the other

traditions too, most of the great masters they outwardly lived as a very pure person observing all the pure shelas. Inwardly then a great practitioner of tantra and who accomplished the stage of generation and completion. Although their attainments are very high they are never boasting about it and never show-making, never showing off that inner realization, or claiming that I see a god and demons and spirits and this and that and this way cheating people

and they never have those often have done anything like that. So there was a great master Janasantiluf, he lived for very long time over 100 and he grew very old and outwardly he looked like very very old monk who was even little bit like he was reading praise and shaking and outwardly very pure very old monk. But inwardly attained the yugananda state of the tantra and enlightened in that very life. And now about the great deeds of the masters. For example, among the Indian pundits. Nagarjuna, he lived for 600 years of our time. So compared to that long life of Nagarjuna, Tsongkhappa who came in our time who

lived only 54 years old. Although he lived much shorter, but the services by another he could offer and help and he could give for the sentient beings equals that of the great masters. He offered a very great service to the dharma and sentient beings. Even now days there are many great living masters who have attained so many great qualities which of course cannot be seen from the outside but they have attained inwardly very high realizations, but the most of them the authentic great masters they all outwardly do not claim any high realizations or high powers and like this nor they show any extraordinary

miracles and powers and so on. They just lead a very pure life. So now in this age of degeneration in person which like himself who doesn't know anything, without any qualification and qualities also have to take the position of a guru so however, although he doesn't know a lot, however one thing he never does is to tell lies. It is sometimes unfortunate to see that because of the age of degeneration there are many, for a lot of people, going around and claiming oneself very highly realized being and showing odd behaviors and so on and pretending to be very highly realized master. Je Rinpoche says of you

that by your own past very wholesome karma you have come to the dharma and you have a great interest, different from most of the people, have a great enthusiasm and interest and desire to learn and practice dharma. That is very very good. Also by your wholesome karma you encounter with the good teachers and good guidance and so on. That is very, you should know you are very fortunate. That is a very great gift. So therefore, one should practice as much as one can and also at the same time one must be very careful about finding gurus and this kind of thing. Because of the kind of danger that Je Rinpoche has

mentioned before now, the more he sees people and meets people the more he hears about this kind of dangers, this kind of pitfalls, one can fall very easily. So everyone must be intelligent to disconnect. In all the teachings of the dharma there is a great emphasis about the need of developing virtuous state of mind and observe the law of karma and fruit and developing Bodhichitta. This is a general ways of the dharma. And one should not, although they are not the same qualities, in other doctrines or in other religions or in other traditions, but it is still wrong for us to criticize just like that to

despise about it and sort of completely abuse. That is not proper. Although there are many more practices in some religions, like killing animals, killing lots of animals, sacrificing, offering to their gods and so on, and these are surely not correcting to do. However, they are doing with some motivation to attain some kind of happiness and some kind of liberation with their own point of view and they are doing it. Of course through 71

following such a way, such a practice it is quite impossible to attain a real permanent liberation or to attain enlightenment through such a method. For example in Christianity, in the Christian religion they all speak a lot about God, for example God. Of course this is something beyond our comprehension.

It is beyond our ordinary comprehension. Whether such a God exists or not, this is something beyond our ordinary comprehension, so lead that aside. However, there are lots of people following the Christian religion who sincerely work for the welfare of sentient beings, the welfare to help people, suffering people and so on. Rinpoche doesn't know whether they have some real profound practice of meditation or not, he does not know. So whatever their philosophical view, or whatever their profound view is, anyway what some noticeable good qualities in some of the practition of the Christian religion is

their sincerity in helping other sentient beings. Also to tolerance, patience and also emphasis on the teaching, teaching emphasizing on love and compassion and patience. For example if someone hits on your right cheek, show the left cheek and so on. This kind of teaching, this aspect of teaching he finds very good. So the practitioner of the dharma should develop the right wholesome character, wholesome behaviors of one’s body, speech and mind and if that is developing, then one definitely is a true practitioner of dharma and practice of dharma is going on the right way. Although how much we practice,

how long we practice, if our behaviors of body, speech and mind are running downward then there is something wrong. There is a person from Switzerland with red hair, tall guy, he was seeking some kind of spiritual help and he encountered somebody, somewhere in India he has encountered with a guru, master. The guru and a circle of some kind of practitioner and he received some kind of mantras and some kind of practices and he practiced them very sincerely with the rest of his group. So finally he realized their main object is to use these kind of mantras to cause trouble to others, bring sickness and bad luck and

so on to others. When they do that, when that works then of course they get a chance to help them and this way they make a good business. Then after he completed the solution about this whole group and what they are doing and then he left them finally. He came to India. Je Rinpoche met him in Dharmsala after he returned from his first visit to the West and he was very sick and already became a little bit crazy. So he couldn't, Je Rinpoche couldn't help very much. At that moment in Dharmsala it is difficult for someone who already so much confused like that and has been so badly misled by a wrong master

and like that. However, Je Rinpoche found him already in Moongod, arrival Je Rinpoche's already there. Then in Moongod Je Rinpoche had to keep him, he kept him there and fed him, he had had nothing to eat also. So like that he kept him there for some time. Of course he was not really suitable or fit student to teaching because he has no enthusiasm for learning dharma and he already with his previous gurus and so on so much, his mind so closed, plus he is also not very well mentally. So he couldn't help very much in that respect, so Je Rinpoche did some pujas and some prayers and get him some protections to wear on

his body and so on. Gradually it helped him and he became much more calm. As soon as he got better he never stayed. He again left and go somewhere, he went somewhere and then he returns. Then as soon as he gets some trouble then he returns to Rinpoche to help him, then he gets better and goes away. This happens already three or four times. Now he is away, at this moment he is away somewhere. Of course if someone in such condition is really in a great need to practice refuge and these kind of things, but isn't interested in them, so he is wasting his life a lot. Anyway Je Rinpoche will go on to help him

whenever he can. Maybe he expects to see him again when he returns. His mind is full of confusions and illusions. When he is in a good state of mind, when he is in a calm state of mind all he does is play a flute. He plays it for everybody, sometimes for the dogs and so on. When he is in a disturbed state of mind then he complains a lot about seeing god and demons, this and that, all kinds of things around him. So there is not very much hope in him because unless he changes his mind sometime and really begins to do something seriously.

However, the reason why Je Rinpoche has explained all this is the great importance of being very careful in searching for one’s spiritual guides. In searching ones spiritual guides is a very important and very dangerous issue, therefore one should be very careful about this. Therefore in the future it

is so you should not just run in anywhere wherever there is some teaching or something going on, then running there like a dog usually runs wherever there is some food or smell or something. Not that way, but before one goes to look for a real spiritual guide and teaching and so on, first analyze. Also try to get as much information first about the teaching and everything. When one is satisfied then one decides. Also when you take the teaching of dharma for your

practice, you take something which is fit to your state of mind, to your level of capacity. You should not take anything which is very fantastic and which is really very powerful and very high. Although something is really very high, very powerful but it may not really fit to ones capacity of the mind. So then there is not much use, so one should take what one can take. So it is important to meditate on impermanence and sufferings and impermanence as a basis

and also to develop a real concern for the future instead of just sticking to this life, then generate, taking refuge and develop Bodhichitta for the benefit of sentient beings. Then it is a very good path. One should also begin to practice tantra. But on the basis of the development of Bodhichitta, without this foundation the practice of tantra has no meaning. So practice Bodhichitta as principal object to develop then practice the tantric meditation

as much as one can or recite the mantra, recite the prayers, practice the sadhana. From time to time do some short retreat and like that then the practice will go very well, and all what one does will be fruitful. Then a very important thing is to keep the precept of the tantra and vows and samayas as good as one can, because if one keeps these vows of the tantra and Bodhisattva vows then even without developing very much in this lifetime one has still the

possibility to attain enlightenment in sixteen lifetimes. Then of course at the time of death if one can integrate the process with the three transformations of the practice of tantra that is best. If not, if one can die in the state of mind, with the mindfulness of the guru, mindfulness of the deity and the guru and Bodhichitta that is already a very good way to leave this life and go to the next. The best way is to live and to die out of a state

of Bodhichitta. And in this way then out future will be even more fortunate, even more favorable and more fortunate then the present one. Because one has accumulated very great imprints of dharma in this lifetime so these definitely will give a very great root. In India there was a great master Pasobandu. He was a very great master and he lived in a cave. He was a very great pundit and he knows so many texts and sutras by heart and all night he is chanting,

chanting all these texts. He was such a great memorizer that he knows by heart that his 99 hundred thousand stanzas by heart. So when he was very old then he still continued to recite these texts that he memorized, so it is very difficult and is very weak and difficult to recite so much non-stop reciting, reciting so he filled a big pot with a kind of oil and he sat in it up to the neck in the oil and then he recites and in 15 days he completes his 72

all the sutras that he has memorized. All this oil which he sits in absorbs in his body and helps his body to maintain his strength. Just above his cave is a nest for a pigeon. That pigeon always hears all time his recitation of sutras and so on. After some time that pigeon died and has taken rebirth as a human being. From very young age that child could recite a lot of sutras and like that, many verses from the text. Everyone was very surprised and asked what incarnation you are and so on. He said my master is Pasobandu [...]

[...] ...and so already still Arjuna the monk was still very young by his past karmic imprint he has memorize, he could memorized so much text that he could recite by heart 46 hundred thousand stanzas. Finally he became a great master who was called Norjutempas, in Sanskrit Saudramati and became a very great siddha. Therefore we have also received a lot of teachings of dharma, of various levels we have received many teachings. So all these teachings have also left a very great imprint in us. If we make effort and if we generate the right motivation and offer the right prayer, this will be fulfilled. Je Rinpoche

will also pray for our accomplishments. Many of you when come to see Rinpoche he will always ask to come back again, you live long and so on. But of course no one has any freedom of control or power over the death, so there is no real freedom, they cannot make any choice about this. One of course has a wish to live long and also pray, so prayers and so on, but Je Rinpoche says that he is already now 77 years old. Anyway of course he prefers to live, still some time it is good for him to. Of course if he lives still for sometime there is no doubt that he would like to return here. He also enjoys coming back here

in place of Geshela. He is taking care of so much like own parents, taking care. So he is having a good time. Also wherever he visits in other centers of dharma he is very well treated. In India also the Tibetans they look after him very well. So therefore for him also to live some time is a very good opportunity. Whether he lives or dies, Je Rinpoche says if you practice, try to practice as much as you can what you have learned from him or have received from him or received the teaching, if you try to put it into practice that would make him most pleased, give him the greatest happiness. Until now Je Rinpoche has no disease of any kind in his body. From his birth until now he has never spent even one day in a hospital in India, Tibet or in the West. Of course he can't, this is not a all a reason that he will be healthy all the time and not die, because even very healthy strong people die all of a sudden. So therefore if he still lives for some time he may again come around. Wherever he is, anyway he will never forget all his disciples or his friends, dharma friends. So therefore, he includes everybody in his prayers, in his prayer and protection and the people that he met here in the West and also the people

in India and also in Nepal and also in the corners of India and so on. Wherever he has visited sometimes he would even take notes of the names of the people. He can't do that for everybody, however whenever he prays and makes pujas and so on he thinks of everybody. He is obliged to do that because when he meets people, the people ask him to pray for them and he always says yes and yes. If he doesn't do that it would be cheating people. That would be very wrong on his part, so he has to do that. Sometimes he also does pujas, sometimes when it is necessary he does special pujas or like that for people.

Because he receives a letter and people ask him. For example the German lady who was here some days ago, she had a daughter and this daughter had lots of problems and difficulties, nearly coming to suicide one time and so on. Much much problems like that. So that German lady came to see Rinpoche last time when he was in England. That daughter is again, she wasn't a Buddhist or a practitioner of dharma, but she was also involved in some kind of spiritual thing and going to some old lady giving some kind of practices. The mother, the lady who came here, she lives in Munich in Germany and the daughter lives

in Japan. Then that girl was very very sick, and so no one could help, that old lady couldn't help and finally when the doctors said that she would die in a few days. So then the mother called her and gave the address of Rinpoche in India and told her to write to Rinpoche. Of course Rinpoche didn't know at that time what was going on. He has received a letter from this girl explaining her conditions and asking for some prayers. Je Rinpoche has written, it is very difficult to do something immediately when somebody is so far away and so on. So Je Rinpoche immediately sent a letter saying that you should take refuge. Then Rinpoche did a little puja, even in India did some puja and making some offerings and some puja. Gradually she began to recover and she got better and better and finally she recovered from the trouble that she had. But she didn't know how to do really the refuge but she didn't have any

instructions about that. Quite recently now, the mother and daughter both of them have come to India to see Rinpoche, traveling to Rinpoche's college to ask Rinpoche to be there at the time of their arrival. So they came and Rinpoche gave a few teachings. Rinpoche had to go somewhere to another monastery and they followed him there and they stayed around there for some days. Both of them were well and happy and then they went back. Last time she saw

Rinpoche she said that everybody is fine. When then came, when that daughter came to India Rinpoche taught the power of meditation, Tara mantras and refuge, how to do refuge and she is ready now. So when someone does sincerely the prayers and take refuge and so on definitely has an effect, do pujas and so on, it definitely has an effect.

There is man whose name is Tibetan, Sanje Tenzin, and he had some trouble, he cannot sit properly and he had also trouble with the lung. This lung problem this agitation in his mind. When Rinpoche was in Switzerland this fellow, this Tibetan, came to see him. At that time he was not in really good condition, but was not so bad. Rinpoche gave him protections mandalas to wear on his body. Then he said he, that person told him that he would come to India and

become monk and so on and he didn't show up. Anyway he got better, now he is recovered from this lung problem, this mental trouble. One day he lost his protection mandala. He had a terrible father who was a drunkard, always drinking and always fighting with the people. Then the son again was again agitated.

Therefore what Je Rinpoche wants to say is that he prays, he includes everybody in prayers and there is no problem for him to pray for everybody and also give these protections and blessings if necessary. However, he cannot answer every letters. Even he couldn't write one single letter to Geshela. Unless there are very important things, usually letters Rinpoche says that they are not much use, they are just to say I am well, I hope you are well and just a piece of paper. So he doesn't see there is much need to do that. I am well, I hope you are well and I hope to see you again, with best wishes and so, and then put that in an envelope and spend few money on that, put stamps, and all these things. Je Rinpoche thinks it is not


very important, it is not very necessary to do very often. If someone has a real difficulty, or some real need they will surely write then we will know it and if there is something we can do then we do it. Also sometimes without receiving a letter, one hears about this already before. Therefore these are some personal things he just felt to say, if ever some of you writes to Rinpoche and doesn't receive an answer and doesn't hear anything, then don't think that he has forgotten you completely or something like that. As he told you before I always remember everybody and pray for everybody. He will pray. A prayer is a prayer and he is not sure whether it will always be effective or not. However, what is really definitely effective is if you practice from your own side as much as you can, that definitely has an effect on you and if that combines with his prayer the results will be very extraordinary, very good. If from your side, make no effort let alone development of Bodhichitta, even take no refuge anything at all like this, then from his side even going on praying, praying, praying that isn't, there is not going to be very much result of this prayer. Then it would be like Rinpoche praying for completely dried wood, a flower to grow on a completely dried wood.

So now Je Rinpoche will not go to speak very much, it is just to waste time and anyway keep whatever is in your mind and all the time try to practice, try to be sincere in your practice and make effort as much as you can. Most important thing is to develop a wholesome state of mind, develop Bodhichitta. On the basis of that, if you can, go practice some sadhana like this, try to do some tantric meditations, do retreat and so on, that is very beneficial, very

helpful. If this is all too complicated and you don't have the time and everything, you cannot practice all that, then just concentrate on Avilokitishvara. Avilokitishvara is seen as the embodiment of all the Buddhas and all the gurus and everything. And recite OM MANI PADME HUM all the wholesome state of mind for the benefit of all sentient beings, recite OM MANI PADME HUM as many as you can up to 100 million times. If one recites 100 million times OM MANI PADME HUM, Avilokitishvara has guaranteed that person will take rebirth into Sukarati.

[reading question] so this has already been answered. It says "wishing Rinpoche, Dear Dorje Chang, thank you very much for all your kindness. Please live long for the benefit of all sentient beings, with deep respect and devotion", Chambaradis. So Je Rinpoche has already answered that. Je Rinpoche will try to try, of course, to fulfill such a wish and he will pray and also you also need to pray since we have developed a guru-disciple link or like bond,

relation. So on that very pure relation then undamage to the pure like or relation then if one expresses a good sincere wish for the benefit of each other it definitely will be fulfilled. So the puja this evening will start at 7:00pm. It cannot start earlier because some people cannot be here earlier than that.